This is a modern-English version of The Borgias: Celebrated Crimes, originally written by Dumas, Alexandre.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
[image]
[image]
TABLE OF CONTENTS
Prologue
On the 8th of April, 1492, in a bedroom of the Carneggi Palace, about three miles from Florence, were three men grouped about a bed whereon a fourth lay dying.
OnOn April 8, 1492, in a bedroom of the Carneggi Palace, located about three miles from Florence, three men gathered around a bed where a fourth man was dying.
The first of these three men, sitting at the foot of the bed, and half hidden, that he might conceal his tears, in the gold-brocaded curtains, was Ermolao Barbaro, author of the treatise 'On Celibacy', and of 'Studies in Pliny': the year before, when he was at Rome in the capacity of ambassador of the Florentine Republic, he had been appointed Patriarch of Aquileia by Innocent VIII.
The first of the three men, sitting at the foot of the bed and partly concealed by the gold-brocaded curtains to hide his tears, was Ermolao Barbaro, the author of the treatise 'On Celibacy' and 'Studies in Pliny.' The year before, while he was in Rome as the ambassador of the Florentine Republic, he had been appointed Patriarch of Aquileia by Innocent VIII.
The second, who was kneeling and holding one hand of the dying man between his own, was Angelo Poliziano, the Catullus of the fifteenth century, a classic of the lighter sort, who in his Latin verses might have been mistaken for a poet of the Augustan age.
The second person, who was kneeling and holding one of the dying man's hands, was Angelo Poliziano, the Catullus of the fifteenth century, a classic poet known for his lighter style, whose Latin verses could easily be mistaken for those of a poet from the Augustan era.
The third, who was standing up and leaning against one of the twisted columns of the bed-head, following with profound sadness the progress of the malady which he read in the face of his departing friend, was the famous Pico della Mirandola, who at the age of twenty could speak twenty-two languages, and who had offered to reply in each of these languages to any seven hundred questions that might be put to him by the twenty most learned men in the whole world, if they could be assembled at Florence.
The third person, leaning against one of the twisted columns of the headboard, watched with great sadness as he saw the illness on his dying friend's face. This was the famous Pico della Mirandola, who at just twenty could speak twenty-two languages and had offered to answer any seven hundred questions from the twenty most knowledgeable men in the world, if they could come together in Florence.
The man on the bed was Lorenzo the Magnificent, who at the beginning of the year had been attacked by a severe and deep-seated fever, to which was added the gout, a hereditary ailment in his family. He had found at last that the draughts containing dissolved pearls which the quack doctor, Leoni di Spoleto, prescribed for him (as if he desired to adapt his remedies rather to the riches of his patient than to his necessities) were useless and unavailing, and so he had come to understand that he must part from those gentle-tongued women of his, those sweet-voiced poets, his palaces and their rich hangings; therefore he had summoned to give him absolution for his sins—in a man of less high place they might perhaps have been called crimes—the Dominican, Giralamo Francesco Savonarola.
The man lying on the bed was Lorenzo the Magnificent, who at the beginning of the year had been hit by a severe and lasting fever, worsened by gout, a hereditary condition in his family. He finally realized that the treatments with dissolved pearls prescribed by the quack doctor, Leoni di Spoleto (who seemed to care more about catering to his patient’s wealth than his actual needs), were useless and ineffective. So, he understood that he had to say goodbye to the gentle-voiced women in his life, those sweet-voiced poets, his palaces, and their extravagant decorations. Therefore, he called on the Dominican, Giralamo Francesco Savonarola, to grant him absolution for his sins—what might have been considered crimes for someone of lower status.
It was not, however, without an inward fear, against which the praises of his friends availed nothing, that the pleasure-seeker and usurper awaited that severe and gloomy preacher by whose words all Florence was stirred, and on whose pardon henceforth depended all his hope for another world.
Yet, despite the outward confidence, the pleasure-seeker and usurper waited for that serious and somber preacher with a deep fear that the compliments from his friends couldn’t ease. The preacher's words had stirred all of Florence, and all his hope for the afterlife now rested on his forgiveness.
Indeed, Savonarola was one of those men of stone, coming, like the statue of the Commandante, to knock at the door of a Don Giovanni, and in the midst of feast and orgy to announce that it is even now the moment to begin to think of Heaven. He had been born at Ferrara, whither his family, one of the most illustrious of Padua, had been called by Niccolo, Marchese d'Este, and at the age of twenty-three, summoned by an irresistible vocation, had fled from his father's house, and had taken the vows in the cloister of Dominican monks at Florence. There, where he was appointed by his superiors to give lessons in philosophy, the young novice had from the first to battle against the defects of a voice that was both harsh and weak, a defective pronunciation, and above all, the depression of his physical powers, exhausted as they were by too severe abstinence.
Savonarola was definitely one of those tough characters, coming in like the statue of the Commandante to knock on the door of a Don Giovanni, and right in the middle of a feast and wild party to say it was time to start thinking about Heaven. He was born in Ferrara, where his family, one of the most prominent in Padua, had been called by Niccolo, Marchese d'Este. At the age of twenty-three, driven by an irresistible calling, he left his father's house and took vows in the Dominican monastery in Florence. There, where his superiors assigned him to teach philosophy, the young novice had to struggle from the very beginning against a voice that was both rough and weak, awkward pronunciation, and especially the frailty of his body, worn down by excessive abstinence.
Savonarola from that time condemned himself to the most absolute seclusion, and disappeared in the depths of his convent, as if the slab of his tomb had already fallen over him. There, kneeling on the flags, praying unceasingly before a wooden crucifix, fevered by vigils and penances, he soon passed out of contemplation into ecstasy, and began to feel in himself that inward prophetic impulse which summoned him to preach the reformation of the Church.
From that time on, Savonarola completely isolated himself, retreating into the depths of his convent as if the stone of his tomb had already sealed him in. There, kneeling on the floor and praying constantly in front of a wooden crucifix, worn out from sleepless nights and self-denial, he soon moved from deep contemplation into ecstasy, starting to feel within himself the prophetic urge that inspired him to preach the Church's reform.
Nevertheless, the reformation of Savonarola, more reverential than Luther's, which followed about five-and-twenty years later, respected the thing while attacking the man, and had as its aim the altering of teaching that was human, not faith that was of God. He did not work, like the German monk, by reasoning, but by enthusiasm. With him logic always gave way before inspiration: he was not a theologian, but a prophet. Yet, although hitherto he had bowed his head before the authority of the Church, he had already raised it against the temporal power. To him religion and liberty appeared as two virgins equally sacred; so that, in his view, Lorenzo in subjugating the one was as culpable as Pope Innocent VIII in dishonouring the other. The result of this was that, so long as Lorenzo lived in riches, happiness, and magnificence, Savonarola had never been willing, whatever entreaties were made, to sanction by his presence a power which he considered illegitimate. But Lorenzo on his deathbed sent for him, and that was another matter. The austere preacher set forth at once, bareheaded and barefoot, hoping to save not only the soul of the dying man but also the liberty of the republic.
Despite this, Savonarola's reformation, which was more courteous than Luther's and came about twenty-five years later, aimed at changing human teachings rather than questioning faith in God. He didn't rely on reason like the German monk but was fueled by passion. For him, logic often took a backseat to inspiration: he wasn't a theologian but a prophet. Although he had previously submitted to the authority of the Church, he had begun to resist secular power. To him, religion and freedom were equally sacred concepts; therefore, in his view, Lorenzo's oppression of one was just as wrong as Pope Innocent VIII's dishonoring of the other. This led Savonarola to reject Lorenzo's illegitimate power as long as he lived in wealth, joy, and splendor, despite any requests for his presence. However, when Lorenzo was on his deathbed, he called for Savonarola, and that changed everything. The austere preacher set out immediately, bareheaded and barefoot, hoping to save not only the soul of the dying man but also the freedom of the republic.
Lorenzo, as we have said, was awaiting the arrival of Savonarola with an impatience mixed with uneasiness; so that, when he heard the sound of his steps, his pale face took a yet more deathlike tinge, while at the same time he raised himself on his elbow and ordered his three friends to go away. They obeyed at once, and scarcely had they left by one door than the curtain of the other was raised, and the monk, pale, immovable, solemn, appeared on the threshold. When he perceived him, Lorenzo dei Medici, reading in his marble brow the inflexibility of a statue, fell back on his bed, breathing a sigh so profound that one might have supposed it was his last.
Lorenzo, as we mentioned, was waiting for Savonarola to arrive with a mix of impatience and anxiety. So, when he heard the sound of footsteps, his pale face grew even paler, and he propped himself up on his elbow, telling his three friends to leave. They immediately obeyed, and just as they exited through one door, the curtain of the other door was pulled aside, revealing the monk, pale, still, and serious, standing in the doorway. When Lorenzo dei Medici saw him and noticed the unyielding expression on his marble-like face, he fell back onto his bed, letting out a sigh so deep it felt like it could be his last.
The monk glanced round the room as though to assure himself that he was really alone with the dying man; then he advanced with a slow and solemn step towards the bed. Lorenzo watched his approach with terror; then, when he was close beside him, he cried:
The monk glanced around the room, as if to make sure he was really alone with the dying man. Then, he walked slowly and solemnly toward the bed. Lorenzo anxiously watched him approach, but when the monk was right next to him, he shouted:
"O my father, I have been a very great sinner!"
"Oh my father, I’ve sinned a lot!"
"The mercy of God is infinite," replied the monk; "and I come into your presence laden with the divine mercy."
"God's mercy is limitless," replied the monk; "and I stand here before you filled with divine compassion."
"You believe, then, that God will forgive my sins?" cried the dying man, renewing his hope as he heard from the lips of the monk such unexpected words.
"So, you really believe God will forgive my sins?" the dying man exclaimed, his hope renewed as he heard such unexpected words from the monk.
"Your sins and also your crimes, God will forgive them all," replied Savonarola. "God will forgive your vanities, your adulterous pleasures, your obscene festivals; so much for your sins. God will forgive you for promising two thousand florins reward to the man who should bring you the head of Dietisalvi, Nerone Nigi, Angelo Antinori, Niccalo Soderini, and twice the money if they were handed over alive; God will forgive you for dooming to the scaffold or the gibbet the son of Papi Orlandi, Francesco di Brisighella, Bernardo Nardi, Jacopo Frescobaldi, Amoretto Baldovinetti, Pietro Balducci, Bernardo di Banding, Francesco Frescobaldi, and more than three hundred others whose names were none the less dear to Florence because they were less renowned; so much for your crimes." And at each of these names which Savonarola pronounced slowly, his eyes fixed on the dying man, he replied with a groan which proved the monk's memory to be only too true. Then at last, when he had finished, Lorenzo asked in a doubtful tone:
"God will forgive all your sins and crimes," Savonarola said. "God will forgive your vanity, your forbidden pleasures, your inappropriate festivals; that takes care of your sins. God will forgive you for offering two thousand florins to anyone who brings you the head of Dietisalvi, Nerone Nigi, Angelo Antinori, Niccolo Soderini, and double the amount if they’re delivered alive; God will forgive you for condemning to the scaffold or gallows the son of Papi Orlandi, Francesco di Brisighella, Bernardo Nardi, Jacopo Frescobaldi, Amoretto Baldovinetti, Pietro Balducci, Bernardo di Banding, Francesco Frescobaldi, and over three hundred others whose names were still cherished in Florence even though they aren't as famous; that covers your crimes." With each name Savonarola pronounced slowly, his eyes focused on the dying man, and the response was a groan that confirmed the monk’s memory was painfully accurate. Finally, when he finished, Lorenzo asked in a hesitant tone:
"Then do you believe, my father, that God will forgive me everything, both my sins and my crimes?"
"Do you think, Dad, that God will forgive me for everything, including my sins and crimes?"
"Everything," said Savonarola, "but on three conditions."
"Everything," Savonarola said, "but with three conditions."
"What are they?" asked the dying man.
"What are they?" the dying man asked.
"The first," said Savonarola, "is that you feel a complete faith in the power and the mercy of God."
"The first thing," said Savonarola, "is that you must have complete faith in God's power and mercy."
"My father," replied Lorenzo eagerly, "I feel this faith in the very depths of my heart."
"Dad," Lorenzo said eagerly, "I feel this belief deep in my heart."
"The second," said Savonarola, "is that you give back the property of others which you have unjustly confiscated and kept."
"The second," said Savonarola, "is that you give back the property of others that you have wrongfully taken and kept."
"My father, shall I have time?" asked the dying man.
"Dad, will I have time?" the dying man asked.
"God will give it to you," replied the monk.
"God will provide it for you," the monk answered.
Lorenzo shut his eyes, as though to reflect more at his ease; then, after a moment's silence, he replied:
Lorenzo closed his eyes, as if to think more clearly; then, after a brief pause, he replied:
"Yes, my father, I will do it."
"Sure, Dad, I got it."
"The third," resumed Savonarola, "is that you restore to the republic her ancient independence and her former liberty."
"The third," Savonarola continued, "is that you restore the republic's ancient independence and former freedom."
Lorenzo sat up on his bed, shaken by a convulsive movement, and questioned with his eyes the eyes of the Dominican, as though he would find out if he had deceived himself and not heard aright. Savonarola repeated the same words.
Lorenzo sat up in bed, startled by a sudden movement, and looked at the Dominican, trying to check if he had been wrong and hadn't really heard correctly. Savonarola repeated the same words.
"Never! never!" exclaimed Lorenzo, falling back on his bed and shaking his head,—"never!"
"Never! Never!" Lorenzo yelled, falling back onto his bed and shaking his head—"never!"
The monk, without replying a single word, made a step to withdraw.
The monk quietly stepped back to leave.
"My father, my father," said the dying man, "do not leave me thus: have pity on me!"
“Dad, Dad,” said the dying man, “please don’t leave me like this: have mercy on me!”
"Have pity on Florence," said the monk.
"Have compassion for Florence," the monk said.
"But, my father," cried Lorenzo, "Florence is free, Florence is happy."
"But, Dad," Lorenzo shouted, "Florence is free, Florence is happy."
"Florence is a slave, Florence is poor," cried Savonarola, "poor in genius, poor in money, and poor in courage; poor in genius, because after you, Lorenzo, will come your son Piero; poor in money, because from the funds of the republic you have kept up the magnificence of your family and the credit of your business houses; poor in courage, because you have robbed the rightful magistrates of the authority which was constitutionally theirs, and diverted the citizens from the double path of military and civil life, wherein, before they were enervated by your luxuries, they had displayed the virtues of the ancients; and therefore, when the day shall dawn which is not far distant," continued the monk, his eyes fixed and glowing as if he were reading in the future, "whereon the barbarians shall descend from the mountains, the walls of our towns, like those of Jericho, shall fall at the blast of their trumpets."
"Florence is a slave, Florence is poor," shouted Savonarola, "poor in talent, poor in money, and poor in courage; poor in talent because after you, Lorenzo, comes your son Piero; poor in money because you have upheld the grandeur of your family and the reputation of your businesses with public funds; poor in courage because you have taken away the rightful authority of the magistrates, which was theirs by law, and misled the citizens in their dual roles in military and civic life, where, before being weakened by your luxuries, they had demonstrated the virtues of the ancients; and so, when the day comes, which isn’t too far off," the monk continued, his eyes fixed and glowing as if he could see into the future, "when the barbarians descend from the mountains, the walls of our towns, like those of Jericho, will fall at the sound of their trumpets."
"And do you desire that I should yield up on my deathbed the power that has made the glory of my whole life?" cried Lorenzo dei Medici.
"And do you want me to give up on my deathbed the power that has given glory to my whole life?" shouted Lorenzo dei Medici.
"It is not I who desire it; it is the Lord," replied Savonarola coldly.
"It's not me who wants it; it's the Lord," Savonarola replied flatly.
"Impossible, impossible!" murmured Lorenzo.
"Unbelievable, unbelievable!" murmured Lorenzo.
"Very well; then die as you have lived!" cried the monk, "in the midst of your courtiers and flatterers; let them ruin your soul as they have ruined your body!" And at these words, the austere Dominican, without listening to the cries of the dying man, left the room as he had entered it, with face and step unaltered; far above human things he seemed to soar, a spirit already detached from the earth.
"Alright; then die the way you lived!" shouted the monk. "Surrounded by your courtiers and yes-men; let them destroy your soul just like they've destroyed your body!" At these words, the stern Dominican, ignoring the pleas of the dying man, left the room as he had entered it, with the same expression and pace; he seemed to rise above earthly matters, a spirit already detached from the ground.
At the cry which broke from Lorenzo dei Medici when he saw him disappear, Ermolao, Poliziano, and Pico dellaMirandola, who had heard all, returned into the room, and found their friend convulsively clutching in his arms a magnificent crucifix which he had just taken down from the bed-head. In vain did they try to reassure him with friendly words. Lorenzo the Magnificent only replied with sobs; and one hour after the scene which we have just related, his lips clinging to the feet of the Christ, he breathed his last in the arms of these three men, of whom the most fortunate—though all three were young—was not destined to survive him more than two years. "Since his death was to bring about many calamities," says Niccolo Macchiavelli, "it was the will of Heaven to show this by omens only too certain: the dome of the church of Santa Regarata was struck by lightning, and Roderigo Borgia was elected pope."
When Lorenzo dei Medici let out a cry as he saw him disappear, Ermolao, Poliziano, and Pico della Mirandola, who had heard everything, returned to the room and found their friend gripping a beautiful crucifix he had just taken from the bedpost. They tried to console him with gentle words, but Lorenzo the Magnificent could only respond with tears. An hour after the earlier scene, with his lips against the feet of Christ, he took his last breath in the arms of these three men—none of whom, despite their young age, would live more than two years after him, with the luckiest among them lasting a bit longer. "Since his death was bound to lead to many tragedies," Niccolo Machiavelli states, "it was the will of Heaven to reveal this through clear omens: the dome of the Santa Regarata church was struck by lightning, and Roderigo Borgia was elected pope."
CHAPTER 1
Towards the end of the fifteenth century—that is to say, at the epoch when our history opens the Piazza of St. Peter's at Rome was far from presenting so noble an aspect as that which is offered in our own day to anyone who approaches it by the Piazza dei Rusticucci.
TtowardsAt the end of the fifteenth century—specifically when our story begins—the Piazza of St. Peter's in Rome didn’t look anything like the impressive scene it presents today to anyone arriving from the Piazza dei Rusticucci.
In fact, the Basilica of Constantine existed no longer, while that of Michael Angelo, the masterpiece of thirty popes, which cost the labour of three centuries and the expense of two hundred and sixty millions, existed not yet. The ancient edifice, which had lasted for eleven hundred and forty-five years, had been threatening to fall in about 1440, and Nicholas V, artistic forerunner of Julius II and Leo X, had had it pulled down, together with the temple of Probus Anicius which adjoined it. In their place he had had the foundations of a new temple laid by the architects Rossellini and Battista Alberti; but some years later, after the death of Nicholas V, Paul II, the Venetian, had not been able to give more than five thousand crowns to continue the project of his predecessor, and thus the building was arrested when it had scarcely risen above the ground, and presented the appearance of a still-born edifice, even sadder than that of a ruin.
The Basilica of Constantine no longer existed, and Michelangelo's masterpiece, which took thirty popes, three centuries, and cost two hundred sixty million, hadn’t been built yet. The old structure, which had stood for eleven hundred forty-five years, was in danger of collapsing around 1440. Nicholas V, the artistic predecessor to Julius II and Leo X, had it demolished, along with the temple of Probus Anicius next to it. In its place, he had the foundations of a new temple laid by architects Rossellini and Battista Alberti. However, a few years later, after Nicholas V passed away, Paul II, from Venice, could only contribute five thousand crowns to continue his predecessor's project. As a result, construction was halted before it even got above ground, leaving it to resemble a stillborn building, even more melancholy than a ruin.
As to the piazza itself, it had not yet, as the reader will understand from the foregoing explanation, either the fine colonnade of Bernini, or the dancing fountains, or that Egyptian obelisk which, according to Pliny, was set up by the Pharaoh at Heliopolis, and transferred to Rome by Caligula, who set it up in Nero's Circus, where it remained till 1586. Now, as Nero's Circus was situated on the very ground where St. Peter's now stands, and the base of this obelisk covered the actual site where the vestry now is, it looked like a gigantic needle shooting up from the middle of truncated columns, walls of unequal height, and half-carved stones.
As for the piazza itself, it didn’t yet have, as you can tell from the previous explanation, the beautiful colonnade by Bernini, the dancing fountains, or that Egyptian obelisk which, according to Pliny, was originally erected by the Pharaoh at Heliopolis and brought to Rome by Caligula, who placed it in Nero's Circus, where it remained until 1586. Since Nero's Circus was right where St. Peter's now stands, and the base of this obelisk covered the exact spot where the vestry is now, it looked like a huge needle rising from a mix of broken columns, uneven walls, and partially carved stones.
On the right of this building, a ruin from its cradle, arose the Vatican, a splendid Tower of Babel, to which all the celebrated architects of the Roman school contributed their work for a thousand years: at this epoch the two magnificent chapels did not exist, nor the twelve great halls, the two-and-twenty courts, the thirty staircases, and the two thousand bedchambers; for Pope Sixtus V, the sublime swineherd, who did so many things in a five years' reign, had not yet been able to add the immense building which on the eastern side towers above the court of St. Damasius; still, it was truly the old sacred edifice, with its venerable associations, in which Charlemagne received hospitality when he was crowned emperor by Pope Leo III.
Next to this building, a remnant from its early days, stood the Vatican, an incredible Tower of Babel, to which all the famous architects of the Roman school contributed for a thousand years. At that time, the two grand chapels didn’t exist, nor did the twelve great halls, the twenty-two courts, the thirty staircases, and the two thousand bedrooms. Pope Sixtus V, the remarkable pig farmer who achieved so much in his five-year reign, hadn’t yet managed to add the massive structure that rises on the eastern side above the courtyard of St. Damasus. However, it was truly the old sacred building with a significant history, where Charlemagne was welcomed when he was crowned emperor by Pope Leo III.
All the same, on the 9th of August, 1492, the whole of Rome, from the People's Gate to the Coliseum and from the Baths of Diocletian to the castle of Sant' Angelo, seemed to have made an appointment on this piazza: the multitude thronging it was so great as to overflow into all the neighbouring streets, which started from this centre like the rays of a star. The crowds of people, looking like a motley moving carpet, were climbing up into the basilica, grouping themselves upon the stones, hanging on the columns, standing up against the walls; they entered by the doors of houses and reappeared at the windows, so numerous and so densely packed that one might have said each window was walled up with heads. Now all this multitude had its eyes fixed on one single point in the Vatican; for in the Vatican was the Conclave, and as Innocent VIII had been dead for sixteen days, the Conclave was in the act of electing a pope.
Still, on August 9, 1492, all of Rome—from the People's Gate to the Coliseum and from the Baths of Diocletian to the castle of Sant' Angelo—seemed to gather in this piazza. The crowd was so massive that it spilled into all the nearby streets, which radiated out from this center like the rays of a star. The sea of people, resembling a colorful moving carpet, flowed into the basilica, clustered on the stones, hung on the columns, and leaned against the walls. They entered through house doors and reappeared at the windows, so numerous and tightly packed that it looked like every window was sealed with heads. All these people had their eyes fixed on one single point in the Vatican; for in the Vatican was the Conclave, and with Innocent VIII having died sixteen days earlier, the Conclave was in the process of electing a new pope.
Rome is the town of elections: since her foundation down to our own day—that is to say, in the course of nearly twenty-six centuries—she has constantly elected her kings, consuls, tribunes, emperors, and popes: thus Rome during the days of Conclave appears to be attacked by a strange fever which drives everyone to the Vatican or to Monte Cavallo, according as the scarlet-robed assembly is held in one or the other of these two palaces: it is, in fact, because the raising up of a new pontiff is a great event for everybody; for, according to the average established in the period between St. Peter and Gregory XVI, every pope lasts about eight years, and these eight years, according to the character of the man who is elected, are a period either of tranquillity or of disorder, of justice or of venality, of peace or of war.
Rome is the city of elections: from its founding until now—over nearly twenty-six centuries—it has continually elected its kings, consuls, tribunes, emperors, and popes. During the Conclave, Rome seems to be caught up in a strange excitement that pulls everyone to either the Vatican or Monte Cavallo, depending on where the gathering of the cardinal assembly occurs. The election of a new pope is a major event for everyone; on average, from the time of St. Peter to Gregory XVI, each pope serves about eight years, and those eight years can bring either stability or chaos, fairness or corruption, peace or conflict, depending on who gets elected.
Never perhaps since the day when the first successor of St. Peter took his seat on the, pontifical throne until the interregnum which now occurred, had so great an agitation been shown as there was at this moment, when, as we have shown, all these people were thronging on the Piazza of St. Peter and in the streets which led to it. It is true that this was not without reason; for Innocent VIII—who was called the father of his people because he had added to his subjects eight sons and the same number of daughters—had, as we have said, after living a life of self-indulgence, just died, after a death-struggle during which, if the journal of Stefano Infessura may be believed, two hundred and twenty murders were committed in the streets of Rome. The authority had then devolved in the customary way upon the Cardinal Camerlengo, who during the interregnum had sovereign powers; but as he had been obliged to fulfil all the duties of his office—that is, to get money coined in his name and bearing his arms, to take the fisherman's ring from the finger of the dead pope, to dress, shave and paint him, to have the corpse embalmed, to lower the coffin after nine days' obsequies into the provisional niche where the last deceased pope has to remain until his successor comes to take his place and consign him to his final tomb; lastly, as he had been obliged to wall up the door of the Conclave and the window of the balcony from which the pontifical election is proclaimed, he had not had a single moment for busying himself with the police; so that the assassinations had continued in goodly fashion, and there were loud cries for an energetic hand which should make all these swords and all these daggers retire into their sheaths.
Never before, from the day the first successor of St. Peter took his seat on the papal throne until the current interregnum, had there been such significant unrest as there was at this moment. As we've mentioned, countless people were gathered in St. Peter's Square and the streets leading to it. This chaos was understandable; Innocent VIII—known as the father of his people for adding eight sons and eight daughters to his subjects—had just died after a life of indulgence. His death followed a struggle during which, according to Stefano Infessura's journal, two hundred and twenty murders occurred in the streets of Rome. Authority then passed as usual to the Cardinal Camerlengo, who held absolute power during the interregnum. However, he was occupied with fulfilling his duties—minting money in his name with his emblem, removing the fisherman's ring from the deceased pope's finger, dressing, shaving, and preparing the body, having it embalmed, and, after nine days of mourning, placing the coffin into the temporary niche where the last deceased pope stays until his successor arrives to take his place and entomb him. Finally, he had to seal the door of the Conclave and the window from which the papal election is announced. As a result, he had no time to manage the police, allowing the killings to continue without restraint. There were loud demands for a firm hand to put away all these swords and daggers.
Now the eyes of this multitude were fixed, as we have said, upon the Vatican, and particularly upon one chimney, from which would come the first signal, when suddenly, at the moment of the 'Ave Maria'—that is to say, at the hour when the day begins to decline—great cries went up from all the crowd mixed with bursts of laughter, a discordant murmur of threats and raillery, the cause being that they had just perceived at the top of the chimney a thin smoke, which seemed like a light cloud to go up perpendicularly into the sky. This smoke announced that Rome was still without a master, and that the world still had no pope; for this was the smoke of the voting tickets which were being burned, a proof that the cardinals had not yet come to an agreement.
The crowd’s attention was focused, as we noted, on the Vatican, specifically on one chimney, waiting for the first sign. Suddenly, at the moment of the 'Ave Maria'—when the day begins to wind down—loud shouts erupted from the crowd, mixed with laughter, creating a chaotic blend of threats and teasing. The reason for all this commotion was that they had just seen thin smoke rising from the top of the chimney, looking like a light cloud drifting straight up into the sky. This smoke signaled that Rome still had no leader, and that the world still lacked a pope; it was the smoke from the burned voting ballots, indicating that the cardinals had not yet made a decision.
Scarcely had this smoke appeared, to vanish almost immediately, when all the innumerable crowd, knowing well that there was nothing else to wait for, and that all was said and done until ten o'clock the next morning, the time when the cardinals had their first voting, went off in a tumult of noisy joking, just as they would after the last rocket of a firework display; so that at the end of one minute nobody was there where a quarter of an hour before there had been an excited crowd, except a few curious laggards, who, living in the neighbourhood or on the very piazza itself; were less in a hurry than the rest to get back to their homes; again, little by little, these last groups insensibly diminished; for half-past nine had just struck, and at this hour the streets of Rome began already to be far from safe; then after these groups followed some solitary passer-by, hurrying his steps; one after another the doors were closed, one after another the windows were darkened; at last, when ten o'clock struck, with the single exception of one window in the Vatican where a lamp might be seen keeping obstinate vigil, all the houses, piazzas, and streets were plunged in the deepest obscurity.
As soon as the smoke appeared and quickly disappeared, the huge crowd, realizing there was nothing left to wait for and that everything was set until ten o'clock the next morning—when the cardinals would cast their first votes—left with a loud uproar of laughter, like after the last firework of a show. Within a minute, no one was left where an excited crowd had gathered just fifteen minutes earlier, except for a few curious stragglers who lived nearby or right in the piazza and weren’t in as much of a hurry to head home. Gradually, these last groups disappeared, as it was now half-past nine, and the streets of Rome were starting to feel unsafe. Following these groups were some lone pedestrians hurrying along; doors began to close one by one, and windows darkened in succession. Finally, when ten o'clock struck, aside from one window in the Vatican where a lamp stubbornly burned, all the houses, piazzas, and streets were wrapped in complete darkness.
At this moment a man wrapped in a cloak stood up like a ghost against one of the columns of the uncompleted basilica, and gliding slowly and carefully among the stones which were lying about round the foundations of the new church, advanced as far as the fountain which, formed the centre of the piazza, erected in the very place where the obelisk is now set up of which we have spoken already; when he reached this spot he stopped, doubly concealed by the darkness of the night and by the shade of the monument, and after looking around him to see if he were really alone, drew his sword, and with its point rapping three times on the pavement of the piazza, each time made the sparks fly. This signal, for signal it was, was not lost: the last lamp which still kept vigil in the Vatican went out, and at the same instant an object thrown out of the window fell a few paces off from the young man in the cloak: he, guided by the silvery sound it had made in touching the flags, lost no time in laying his hands upon it in spite of the darkness, and when he had it in his possession hurried quickly away.
At that moment, a man in a cloak stood like a ghost against one of the columns of the unfinished basilica. He moved slowly and carefully among the stones scattered around the foundations of the new church, making his way to the fountain in the center of the piazza, which was located exactly where the obelisk we mentioned earlier now stands. When he reached this spot, he stopped, concealed in the darkness of the night and the shadow of the monument. After making sure he was truly alone, he drew his sword and tapped its tip three times on the pavement of the piazza, each tap sending sparks flying. This signal did not go unnoticed: the last lamp still lighting the Vatican dimmed, and at that exact moment, an object thrown from a window landed a few steps away from the cloaked man. He quickly moved toward it, using the silvery sound it made when it hit the ground as his guide, and swiftly grabbed it despite the darkness before hurrying away.
Thus the unknown walked without turning round half-way along the Borgo Vecchio; but there he turned to the right and took a street at the other end of which was set up a Madonna with a lamp: he approached the light, and drew from his pocket the object he had picked up, which was nothing else than a Roman crown piece; but this crown unscrewed, and in a cavity hollowed in its thickness enclosed a letter, which the man to whom it was addressed began to read at the risk of being recognised, so great was his haste to know what it contained.
The stranger walked halfway down the Borgo Vecchio without looking back; then he turned right and took a street that ended at a Madonna holding a lamp. He moved closer to the light and took out the object he had found, which was a Roman coin. This coin could be unscrewed, and inside it was a letter in a hollow space. The man it was addressed to began to read it, risking recognition because he was so eager to find out what it said.
We say at the risk of being recognised, for in his eagerness the recipient of this nocturnal missive had thrown back the hood of his cloak; and as his head was wholly within the luminous circle cast by the lamp, it was easy to distinguish in the light the head of a handsome young man of about five or six and twenty, dressed in a purple doublet slashed at the shoulder and elbow to let the shirt come through, and wearing on his head a cap of the same colour with a long black feather falling to his shoulder. It is true that he did not stand there long; for scarcely had he finished the letter, or rather the note, which he had just received in so strange and mysterious a manner, when he replaced it in its silver receptacle, and readjusting his cloak so as to hide all the lower part of his face, resumed his walk with a rapid step, crossed Borgo San Spirito, and took the street of the Longara, which he followed as far as the church of Regina Coeli. When he arrived at this place, he gave three rapid knocks on the door of a house of good appearance, which immediately opened; then slowly mounting the stairs he entered a room where two women were awaiting him with an impatience so unconcealed that both as they saw him exclaimed together:
We say this knowing we might be recognized because the person receiving this late-night message had eagerly thrown back his cloak hood. The lamp fully illuminated his head, making it clear that he was a handsome young man, about twenty-five or twenty-six, dressed in a purple doublet that was slashed at the shoulders and elbows to reveal the shirt underneath, and wearing a matching cap decorated with a long black feather that hung to his shoulder. It’s true he didn’t stay there long; as soon as he finished reading the letter, or rather the note, he had received in such a strange and mysterious way, he placed it back in its silver holder. Adjusting his cloak to cover the lower part of his face, he quickly continued his walk, crossed Borgo San Spirito, and took the street of Longara, which he followed until he reached the church of Regina Coeli. Upon arrival, he knocked quickly three times on the door of a well-kept house, which opened immediately. Then, he slowly climbed the stairs and entered a room where two women were waiting for him, their impatience so obvious that they both exclaimed together upon seeing him:
"Well, Francesco, what news?"
"Hey Francesco, what’s the news?"
"Good news, my mother; good, my sister," replied the young man, kissing the one and giving his hand to the other. "Our father has gained three votes to-day, but he still needs six to have the majority."
"Great news, Mom; awesome, Sis," said the young man, giving one a kiss and shaking hands with the other. "Dad got three votes today, but he still needs six more to win the majority."
"Then is there no means of buying them?" cried the elder of the two women, while the younger, instead of speaking, asked him with a look.
"Is there really no way to buy them?" the older woman exclaimed, while the younger one silently questioned him with her gaze.
"Certainly, my mother, certainly," replied the young man; "and it is just about that that my father has been thinking. He is giving Cardinal Orsini his palace at Rome and his two castles of Monticello and Soriano; to Cardinal Colanna his abbey of Subiaca; he gives Cardinal Sant' Angelo the bishopric of Porto, with the furniture and cellar; to the Cardinal of Parma the town of Nepi; to the Cardinal of Genoa the church of Santa Maria-in-Via-Lata; and lastly, to Cardinal Savelli the church of Santa Maria Maggiore and the town of Civita Castellana; as to Cardinal Ascanio-Sforza, he knows already that the day before yesterday we sent to his house four mules laden with silver and plate, and out of this treasure he has engaged to give five thousand ducats to the Cardinal Patriarch of Venice."
"Of course, Mom, of course," the young man replied. "And that's exactly what Dad has been thinking about. He's giving Cardinal Orsini his palace in Rome and his two castles in Monticello and Soriano; to Cardinal Colanna, his abbey in Subiaca; he’s giving Cardinal Sant' Angelo the bishopric of Porto, along with the furniture and wine cellar; to the Cardinal of Parma, the town of Nepi; to the Cardinal of Genoa, the church of Santa Maria-in-Via-Lata; and finally, to Cardinal Savelli, the church of Santa Maria Maggiore and the town of Civita Castellana. As for Cardinal Ascanio-Sforza, he already knows that we sent four mules filled with silver and valuables to his house the day before yesterday, and from that treasure, he has promised to give five thousand ducats to the Cardinal Patriarch of Venice."
"But how shall we get the others to know the intentions of Roderigo?" asked the elder of the two women.
"But how are we going to inform the others about what Roderigo is planning?" asked the older of the two women.
"My father has provided for everything, and proposes an easy method; you know, my mother, with what sort of ceremonial the cardinals' dinner is carried in."
"My dad has handled everything and recommends a straightforward approach; you know, Mom, how the cardinals' dinner is served with all the ceremony."
"Yes, on a litter, in a large basket with the arms of the cardinal for whom the meal is prepared."
"Yes, on a stretcher, in a large basket with the cardinal's coat of arms for whom the meal is made."
"My father has bribed the bishop who examines it: to-morrow is a feast-day; to the Cardinals Orsini, Colonna, Savelli, Sant' Angelo, and the Cardinals of Parma and of Genoa, chickens will be sent for hot meat, and each chicken will contain a deed of gift duly drawn up, made by me in my father's name, of the houses, palaces, or churches which are destined for each."
"My dad has bribed the bishop overseeing things: tomorrow is a feast day; hot meals of chickens will be sent to Cardinals Orsini, Colonna, Savelli, and Sant' Angelo, as well as the Cardinals of Parma and Genoa. Each chicken will have a properly drafted deed of gift made by me in my dad's name for the specific houses, palaces, or churches designated for each."
"Capital!" said the elder of the two women; "now, I am certain, all will go well."
"Capital!" said the older of the two women; "now, I’m sure everything will turn out fine."
"And by the grace of God," added the younger, with a strangely mocking smile, "our father will be pope."
"And by the grace of God," the younger one added with a oddly mocking smile, "our dad will be pope."
"Oh, it will be a fine day for us!" cried Francesco.
"Oh, it's going to be an awesome day for us!" shouted Francesco.
"And for Christendom," replied his sister, with a still more ironical expression.
"And for Christianity," his sister replied, her expression even more sarcastic.
"Lucrezia, Lucrezia," said the mother, "you do not deserve the happiness which is coming to us."
"Lucrezia, Lucrezia," the mother said, "you don't deserve the happiness that's about to come our way."
"What does that matter, if it comes all the same? Besides, you know the proverb; mother: 'Large families are blessed of the Lord'; and still more so our family, which is so patriarchal."
"What does it matter if it all ends up the same? Besides, you know the saying, mom: 'Large families are blessed by the Lord'; and our family is even more blessed, being so traditional."
At the same time she cast on her brother a look so wanton that the young man blushed under it: but as at the moment he had to think of other things than his illicit loves, he ordered that four servants should be awakened; and while they were getting armed to accompany him, he drew up and signed the six deeds of gift which were to be carried the next day to the cardinals; for, not wishing to be seen at their houses, he thought he would profit by the night-time to carry them himself to certain persons in his confidence who would have them passed in, as had been arranged, at the dinner-hour. Then, when the deeds were quite ready and the servants also, Francesco went out with them, leaving the two women to dream golden dreams of their future greatness.
At the same time, she gave her brother a look so suggestive that he blushed. However, since he had more important things to focus on than his forbidden romance, he ordered four servants to be woken up. While they got ready to accompany him, he prepared and signed six deeds of gift that were to be delivered to the cardinals the next day. Not wanting to be seen at their homes, he thought he could take advantage of the night to personally deliver them to some trusted individuals who were supposed to submit them during dinner, as planned. Once the deeds were ready and the servants were prepared, Francesco left with them, letting the two women dream about their bright future ahead.
From the first dawn of day the people hurried anew, as ardent and interested as on the evening before, to the Piazza of the Vatican, where; at the ordinary time, that is, at ten o'clock in the morning,—the smoke rose again as usual, evoking laughter and murmuring, as it announced that none of the cardinals had secured the majority. A report, however, began to be spread about that the chances were divided between three candidates, who were Roderigo Borgia, Giuliano dellaRovera, and Ascanio Sforza; for the people as yet knew nothing of the four mules laden with plate and silver which had been led to Sforza's house, by reason of which he had given up his own votes to his rival. In the midst of the agitation excited in the crowd by this new report a solemn chanting was heard; it proceeded from a procession, led by the Cardinal Camerlengo, with the object of obtaining from Heaven the speedy election of a pope: this procession, starting from the church of Ara Coeli at the Capitol, was to make stations before the principal Madonnas and the most frequented churches. As soon as the silver crucifix was perceived which went in front, the most profound silence prevailed, and everyone fell on his knees; thus a supreme calm followed the tumult and uproar which had been heard a few minutes before, and which at each appearance of the smoke had assumed a more threatening character: there was a shrewd suspicion that the procession, as well as having a religious end in view, had a political object also, and that its influence was intended to be as great on earth as in heaven. In any case, if such had been the design of the Cardinal Camerlengo, he had not deceived himself, and the effect was what he desired: when the procession had gone past, the laughing and joking continued, but the cries and threats had completely ceased.
At the break of dawn, the crowd hurried once again, just as eager and lively as the night before, to the Vatican Piazza. At the usual time—ten in the morning—the smoke rose again, causing laughter and murmurs, signaling that no cardinal had secured a majority. However, rumors started to spread that the votes were divided among three candidates: Roderigo Borgia, Giuliano della Rovera, and Ascanio Sforza. The people were still unaware of the four mules carrying silver and valuables that had been sent to Sforza's house, prompting him to withdraw his own votes in favor of his rival. Amid the excitement stirred by this new information, solemn chanting emerged from a procession led by the Cardinal Camerlengo, intended to request a swift election of a pope from Heaven. This procession, starting at the Ara Coeli church on the Capitol, was meant to stop at the main Madonnas and the most frequented churches. As soon as the silver crucifix appeared at the forefront, a deep silence fell, and everyone knelt; thus, a profound calm followed the chaos and noise that had just taken place, which had grown increasingly tense with each puff of smoke. There was a strong suspicion that the procession, while having a religious purpose, also had political motivations, hoping for influence both on earth and in heaven. In any case, if that was indeed the Cardinal Camerlengo's aim, he was successful, as the outcome turned out as he desired: after the procession passed, laughter and banter returned, but the shouts and threats had completely ceased.
The whole day passed thus; for in Rome nobody works. You are either a cardinal or a lacquey, and you live, nobody knows how. The crowd was still extremely numerous, when, towards two o'clock in the afternoon, another procession, which had quite as much power of provoking noise as the first of imposing silence, traversed in its turn the Piazza of St. Peter's: this was the dinner procession. The people received it with the usual bursts of laughter, without suspecting, for all their irreverence, that this procession, more efficacious than the former, had just settled the election of the new pope.
The whole day went by like this; in Rome, nobody works. You’re either a cardinal or a servant, and somehow you manage. The crowd was still pretty big when, around two o'clock in the afternoon, another procession, just as loud as the first one was quiet, moved through St. Peter's Square: this was the dinner procession. People greeted it with their usual bursts of laughter, not realizing that, despite their irreverence, this procession, which was more important than the first, had just decided the election of the new pope.
The hour of the Ave Maria came as on the evening before; but, as on the evening before, the waiting of the whole day was lost; for, as half-past eight struck, the daily smoke reappeared at the top of the chimney. But when at the same moment rumours which came from the inside of the Vatican were spread abroad, announcing that, in all probability, the election would take place the next day, the good people preserved their patience. Besides, it had been very hot that day, and they were so broken with fatigue and roasted by the sun, these dwellers in shade and idleness, that they had no strength left to complain.
The hour of the Ave Maria arrived just like the evening before; however, just like the evening before, the long wait of the entire day felt pointless. As the clock struck 8:30, the familiar smoke rose from the top of the chimney. At the same time, news came out from inside the Vatican saying that the election would likely take place the next day, and the good people stayed patient. Besides, it had been really hot that day, and they were so tired and burned by the sun—these people who usually lived in the shade and idleness—that they had no energy left to complain.
The morning of the next day, which was the 11th of August, 1492, arose stormy and dark; this did not hinder the multitude from thronging the piazzas, streets, doors, houses, churches. Moreover, this disposition of the weather was a real blessing from Heaven; for if there were heat, at least there would be no sun. Towards nine o'clock threatening storm-clouds were heaped up over all the Trastevere; but to this crowd what mattered rain, lightning, or thunder? They were preoccupied with a concern of a very different nature; they were waiting for their pope: a promise had been made them for to-day, and it could be seen by the manner of all, that if the day should pass without any election taking place, the end of it might very well be a riot; therefore, in proportion as the time advanced, the agitation grew greater. Nine o'clock, half-past nine, a quarter to ten struck, without anything happening to confirm or destroy their hopes. At last the first stroke of ten was heard; all eyes turned towards the chimney: ten o'clock struck slowly, each stroke vibrating in the heart of the multitude. At last the tenth stroke trembled, then vanished shuddering into space, and, a great cry breaking simultaneously from a hundred thousand breasts followed the silence "Non v'e fumo! There is no smoke!" In other words, "We have a pope."
The morning of August 11, 1492, was stormy and dark; however, that didn’t stop the crowd from filling the piazzas, streets, doorways, homes, and churches. The weather was actually a blessing from Heaven; at least if it was hot, there wouldn’t be any sun. By around nine o'clock, ominous storm clouds gathered over all of Trastevere; but what did rain, lightning, or thunder matter to this crowd? They were focused on something much more important; they were waiting for their pope: a promise had been made for today, and it was clear from everyone's actions that if the day went by without an election, it could easily lead to a riot; so, as time passed, their agitation grew. Nine o'clock, half-past nine, and a quarter to ten came and went without anything happening to confirm or dispel their hopes. Finally, the first chime of ten rang out; all eyes turned toward the chimney: ten o'clock struck slowly, each toll resonating in the hearts of the crowd. At last, the tenth stroke quivered, then faded into silence, and a great cry arose simultaneously from a hundred thousand voices, "Non v'e fumo! There is no smoke!" In other words, "We have a pope."
At this moment the rain began to fall; but no one paid any attention to it, so great were the transports of joy and impatience among all the people. At last a little stone was detached from the walled window which gave on the balcony and upon which all eyes were fixed: a general shout saluted its fall; little by little the aperture grew larger, and in a few minutes it was large enough to allow a man to come out on the balcony.
At that moment, it began to rain; however, no one noticed because everyone was filled with excitement and anticipation. Finally, a small stone came loose from the walled window overlooking the balcony that everyone was watching: a collective cheer welcomed its fall; gradually, the opening grew wider, and within just a few minutes, it was large enough for a man to step out onto the balcony.
The Cardinal Ascanio Sforza appeared; but at the moment when he was on the point of coming out, frightened by the rain and the lightning, he hesitated an instant, and finally drew back: immediately the multitude in their turn broke out like a tempest into cries, curses, howls, threatening to tear down the Vatican and to go and seek their pope themselves. At this noise Cardinal Sforza, more terrified by the popular storm than by the storm in the heavens, advanced on the balcony, and between two thunderclaps, in a moment of silence astonishing to anyone who had just heard the clamour that went before, made the following proclamation:
Cardinal Ascanio Sforza showed up, but just as he was about to step outside, frightened by the rain and lightning, he hesitated for a moment and then backed away. Instantly, the crowd erupted like a storm, shouting, cursing, and howling, threatening to tear down the Vatican and go find the pope themselves. At this noise, Cardinal Sforza, more scared by the chaos of the people than by the storm above, stepped out onto the balcony, and between two thunderclaps, in a moment of silence that surprised anyone who had just heard the uproar, made the following announcement:
"I announce to you a great joy: the most Eminent and most Reverend Signor Roderigo Lenzuolo Borgia, Archbishop of Valencia, Cardinal-Deacon of San Nicolao-in-Carcere, Vice-Chancellor of the Church, has now been elected Pope, and has assumed the name of Alexander VI."
"I'm thrilled to share some amazing news: the highly respected Signor Roderigo Lenzuolo Borgia, Archbishop of Valencia, Cardinal-Deacon of San Nicolao-in-Carcere, Vice-Chancellor of the Church, has just been elected Pope, and he has chosen the name Alexander VI."
The news of this nomination was received with strange joy. Roderigo Borgia had the reputation of a dissolute man, it is true, but libertinism had mounted the throne with Sixtus IV and Innocent VIII, so that for the Romans there was nothing new in the singular situation of a pope with a mistress and five children. The great thing for the moment was that the power fell into strong hands; and it was more important for the tranquillity of Rome that the new pope inherited the sword of St. Paul than that he inherited the keys of St. Peter.
The news of this nomination was received with unexpected joy. Roderigo Borgia was known as a reckless man, but it was true that a life of excess had become normal under Sixtus IV and Innocent VIII. For the people of Rome, having a pope with a mistress and five children was no shock. What mattered most at that moment was that power was in capable hands; it was more important for the peace of Rome that the new pope wielded the sword of St. Paul than that he held the keys of St. Peter.
And so, in the feasts that were given on this occasion, the dominant character was much more warlike than religious, and would have appeared rather to suit with the election of some young conqueror than the exaltation of an old pontiff: there was no limit to the pleasantries and prophetic epigrams on the name of Alexander, which for the second time seemed to promise the Romans the empire of the world; and the same evening, in the midst of brilliant illuminations and bonfires, which seemed to turn the town into a lake of flame, the following epigram was read, amid the acclamation of the people:
During the celebrations for this occasion, the overall vibe was more focused on war than on religion, and it felt more appropriate for the election of a young conqueror than the honoring of an old pope. People exchanged countless jokes and clever poems about the name Alexander, which once again seemed to hint at the Romans claiming the empire of the world. That evening, with bright lights and bonfires that made the town look like a lake of fire, the following poem was recited to the cheers of the crowd:
"Rome during Caesar's time in ancient stories
He achieved victories both at home and worldwide;
Yet Alexander's legacy still stands strong:
Caesar was human, but Alexander was god-like."
As to the new pope, scarcely had he completed the formalities of etiquette which his exaltation imposed upon him, and paid to each man the price of his simony, when from the height of the Vatican he cast his eyes upon Europe, a vast political game of chess, which he cherished the hope of directing at the will of his own genius.
Regarding the new pope, he had just completed the necessary formalities that came with his role and settled the payments for everyone involved in his appointment. Then he looked out from the Vatican at Europe, viewing it as a massive political chess game that he hoped to manipulate with his own intelligence.
CHAPTER 2
The world had now arrived at one of those supreme moments of history when every thing is transformed between the end of one period and the beginning of another: in the East Turkey, in the South Spain, in the West France, and in the North German, all were going to assume, together with the title of great Powers, that influence which they were destined to exert in the future over the secondary States. Accordingly we too, with Alexander VI, will cast a rapid glance over them, and see what were their respective situations in regard to Italy, which they all coveted as a prize.
TheThe world had come to one of those pivotal moments in history when everything transitions from the end of one era to the beginning of another: in the East, Turkey; in the South, Spain; in the West, France; and in the North, Germany—all were poised to not just claim the title of great Powers, but also to gain the influence they were meant to have over the lesser States in the future. So, we too, alongside Alexander VI, will briefly review these countries and explore their positions regarding Italy, which they all sought as a prize.
Constantine, Palaeologos Dragozes, besieged by three hundred thousand Turks, after having appealed in vain for aid to the whole of Christendom, had not been willing to survive the loss of his empire, and had been found in the midst of the dead, close to the Tophana Gate; and on the 30th of May, 1453, Mahomet II had made his entry into Constantinople, where, after a reign which had earned for him the surname of 'Fatile', or the Conqueror, he had died leaving two sons, the elder of whom had ascended the throne under the name of Bajazet II.
Constantine Palaeologos Dragozes, encircled by three hundred thousand Turks and having called for help from all over Christendom without success, refused to survive after losing his empire. He was discovered among the dead near the Tophana Gate. On May 30, 1453, Mahomet II entered Constantinople, where he ruled and earned the title 'Fatile' or the Conqueror before his death, leaving behind two sons. The older son ascended to the throne as Bajazet II.
The accession of the new sultan, however, had not taken place with the tranquillity which his right as elder brother and his father's choice of him should have promised. His younger brother, D'jem, better known under the name of Zizimeh, had argued that whereas he was born in the purple—that is, born during the reign of Mahomet—Bajazet was born prior to his epoch, and was therefore the son of a private individual. This was rather a poor trick; but where force is all and right is naught, it was good enough to stir up a war. The two brothers, each at the head of an army, met accordingly in Asia in 1482. D'jem was defeated after a seven hours' fight, and pursued by his brother, who gave him no time to rally his army: he was obliged to embark from Cilicia, and took refuge in Rhodes, where he implored the protection of the Knights of St. John. They, not daring to give him an asylum in their island so near to Asia, sent him to France, where they had him carefully guarded in one of their commanderies, in spite of the urgency of Cait Bey, Sultan of Egypt, who, having revolted against Bajazet, desired to have the young prince in his army to give his rebellion the appearance of legitimate warfare. The same demand, moreover, with the same political object, had been made successively by Mathias Corvinus, King of Hungary, by Ferdinand, King of Aragon and Sicily, and by Ferdinand, King of Naples.
The rise of the new sultan wasn't as smooth as his status as the older brother and his father's choice would suggest. His younger brother, D'jem, known as Zizimeh, claimed he was born into royalty—during Mahomet's reign—while Bajazet was born before that time as the son of a commoner. This was a pretty sneaky argument, but when power decides right, it was enough to ignite a war. The two brothers, each leading an army, faced off in Asia in 1482. D'jem was defeated after a seven-hour battle and was pursued by his brother, who didn’t give him a chance to regroup. He had to escape from Cilicia and sought refuge in Rhodes, pleading with the Knights of St. John for protection. They, fearing the risks of sheltering him so close to Asia, sent him to France, where they kept him under surveillance in one of their commanderies, despite urgent requests from Cait Bey, the Sultan of Egypt, who had rebelled against Bajazet and wanted D'jem to strengthen his cause. Similar appeals for D'jem's support came from Mathias Corvinus, King of Hungary, as well as Ferdinand, King of Aragon and Sicily, and Ferdinand, King of Naples.
On his side Bajazet, who knew all the importance of such a rival, if he once allied himself with any one of the princes with whom he was at war, had sent ambassadors to Charles VIII, offering, if he would consent to keep D'jem with him, to give him a considerable pension, and to give to France the sovereignty of the Holy Land, so soon as Jerusalem should be conquered by the Sultan of Egypt. The King of France had accepted these terms.
Bajazet, knowing how important a rival could be, sent ambassadors to Charles VIII. He realized that if he formed an alliance with any of the princes he was fighting, it could alter everything. He offered Charles a generous pension if he agreed to keep D'jem with him and promised to give France control of the Holy Land as soon as Jerusalem was captured by the Sultan of Egypt. The King of France agreed to these terms.
But then Innocent VIII had intervened, and in his turn had claimed D'jem, ostensibly to give support by the claims of the refugee to a crusade which he was preaching against the Turks, but in reality to appropriate the pension of 40,000 ducats to be given by Bajazet to any one of the Christian princes who would undertake to be his brother's gaoler. Charles VIII had not dared to refuse to the spiritual head of Christendom a request supported by such holy reasons; and therefore D'jem had quitted France, accompanied by the Grand Master d'Aubusson, under whose direct charge he was; but his guardian had consented, for the sake of a cardinal's hat, to yield up his prisoner. Thus, on the 13th of March, 1489, the unhappy young man, cynosure of so many interested eyes, made his solemn entry into Rome, mounted on a superb horse, clothed in a magnificent oriental costume, between the Prior of Auvergne, nephew of the Grand Master d'Aubusson, and Francesco Cibo, the son of the pope.
But then Innocent VIII stepped in and took D'jem, supposedly to support the crusade he was promoting against the Turks, but really to secure the 40,000 ducat pension that Bajazet was offering to any Christian prince willing to take care of his brother. Charles VIII didn’t dare refuse a request from the spiritual leader of Christendom backed by such noble reasons; so D'jem left France, accompanied by Grand Master d'Aubusson, who was directly responsible for him. However, his guardian agreed to hand over his prisoner for the sake of a cardinal's hat. Thus, on March 13, 1489, the unfortunate young man, the focus of many interested eyes, made his grand entrance into Rome, riding a beautiful horse and wearing a stunning oriental outfit, flanked by the Prior of Auvergne, the Grand Master d'Aubusson's nephew, and Francesco Cibo, the pope’s son.
After this he had remained there, and Bajazet, faithful to promises which it was so much his interest to fulfil, had punctually paid to the sovereign pontiff a pension of 40,000 ducats.
After this, he stayed there, and Bajazet, true to his beneficial promises, consistently paid the pope a pension of 40,000 ducats.
So much for Turkey.
Goodbye, Turkey.
Ferdinand and Isabella were reigning in Spain, and were laying the foundations of that vast power which was destined, five-and-twenty years later, to make Charles V declare that the sun never set on his dominions. In fact, these two sovereigns, on whom history has bestowed the name of Catholic, had reconquered in succession nearly all Spain, and driven the Moors out of Granada, their last entrenchment; while two men of genius, Bartolome Diaz and Christopher Columbus, had succeeded, much to the profit of Spain, the one in recovering a lost world, the other in conquering a world yet unknown. They had accordingly, thanks to their victories in the ancient world and their discoveries in the new, acquired an influence at the court of Rome which had never been enjoyed by any of their predecessors.
Ferdinand and Isabella were in charge of Spain and laying the groundwork for a powerful empire that would, twenty-five years later, allow Charles V to declare that the sun never set on his reign. These two monarchs, historically known as the Catholic Monarchs, gradually reclaimed nearly all of Spain and expelled the Moors from Granada, their final stronghold. Meanwhile, two remarkable figures, Bartolome Diaz and Christopher Columbus, achieved significant successes that greatly benefited Spain—the former by rediscovering a long-lost world and the latter by conquering a new, unfamiliar one. As a result of their victories in the old world and discoveries in the new, they gained influence at the Roman court that none of their predecessors had ever known.
So much for Spain.
Guess that's Spain.
In France, Charles VIII had succeeded his father, Louis XI, on the 30th of August, 1483. Louis by dint of executions, had tranquillised his kingdom and smoothed the way for a child who ascended the throne under the regency of a woman. And the regency had been a glorious one, and had put down the pretensions of princes of the blood, put an end to civil wars, and united to the crown all that yet remained of the great independent fiefs. The result was that at the epoch where we now are, here was Charles VIII, about twenty-two years of age, a prince (if we are to believe La Tremouille) little of body but great of heart; a child (if we are to believe Commines) only now making his first flight from the nest, destitute of both sense and money, feeble in person, full of self-will, and consorting rather with fools than with the wise; lastly, if we are to believe Guicciardini, who was an Italian, might well have brought a somewhat partial judgment to bear upon the subject, a young man of little wit concerning the actions of men, but carried away by an ardent desire for rule and the acquisition of glory, a desire based far more on his shallow character and impetuosity than on any consciousness of genius: he was an enemy to all fatigue and all business, and when he tried to give his attention to it he showed himself always totally wanting in prudence and judgment. If anything in him appeared at first sight to be worthy of praise, on a closer inspection it was found to be something nearer akin to vice than to virtue. He was liberal, it is true, but without thought, with no measure and no discrimination. He was sometimes inflexible in will; but this was through obstinacy rather than a constant mind; and what his flatterers called goodness deserved far more the name of insensibility to injuries or poverty of spirit.
In France, Charles VIII succeeded his father, Louis XI, on August 30, 1483. Louis had stabilized his kingdom through a series of executions, clearing the way for a young ruler who began his reign under a woman's guidance. This regency was impressive; it suppressed the ambitions of noble princes, ended civil wars, and brought all remaining independent fiefs under the crown. At this point, Charles VIII, around twenty-two years old, was described by La Tremouille as short in stature but big in heart; Commines depicted him as a child just starting to find his independence, lacking wisdom and wealth, physically weak, self-willed, and surrounding himself more with fools than the wise. Additionally, Guicciardini, an Italian who may have been biased, noted that he wasn't very perceptive of people's actions but was driven by a strong desire for power and glory, a wish that stemmed more from his impulsive nature than from any real talent: he avoided hard work and responsibilities, and when he tried to focus on them, he consistently showed a lack of prudence and judgment. What seemed admirable at first glance often turned out, upon closer inspection, to be more vice than virtue. He was indeed generous, but thoughtlessly, without restraint or discernment. At times, he was stubborn, but this came from obstinacy rather than steadfastness; what his admirers called kindness was better described as insensitivity to offense or a lack of spirit.
As to his physical appearance, if we are to believe the same author, it was still less admirable, and answered marvellously to his weakness of mind and character. He was small, with a large head, a short thick neck, broad chest, and high shoulders; his thighs and legs were long and thin; and as his face also was ugly—and was only redeemed by the dignity and force of his glance—and all his limbs were disproportionate with one another, he had rather the appearance of a monster than a man. Such was he whom Fortune was destined to make a conqueror, for whom Heaven was reserving more glory than he had power to carry.
If we trust the same author, his physical appearance was even less remarkable and reflected his weakness of mind and character. He was short, had a large head, a short and thick neck, a broad chest, and high shoulders; his thighs and legs were long and thin; and with an ugly face—slightly improved by the dignity and strength of his gaze—and mismatched limbs, he resembled more of a monster than a man. This was the person whom Fortune was meant to make a conqueror, for whom Heaven was reserving more glory than he could manage.
So much for France.
That's it for France.
The Imperial throne was occupied by Frederic III, who had been rightly named the Peaceful, not for the reason that he had always maintained peace, but because, having constantly been beaten, he had always been forced to make it. The first proof he had given of this very philosophical forbearance was during his journey to Rome, whither he betook himself to be consecrated. In crossing the Apennines he was attacked by brigands. They robbed him, but he made no pursuit. And so, encouraged by example and by the impunity of lesser thieves, the greater ones soon took part in the robberies. Amurath seized part of Hungary. Mathias Corvinus took Lower Austria, and Frederic consoled himself for these usurpations by repeating the maxim, Forgetfulness is the best cure for the losses we suffer. At the time we have now reached, he had just, after a reign of fifty-three years, affianced his son Maximilian to Marie of Burgundy and had put under the ban of the Empire his son-in-law, Albert of Bavaria, who laid claim to the ownership of the Tyrol. He was therefore too full of his family affairs to be troubled about Italy. Besides, he was busy looking for a motto for the house of Austria, an occupation of the highest importance for a man of the character of Frederic III. This motto, which Charles V was destined almost to render true, was at last discovered, to the great joy of the old emperor, who, judging that he had nothing more to do on earth after he had given this last proof of sagacity, died on the 19th of August, 1493; leaving the empire to his son Maximilian.
The Imperial throne was held by Frederic III, known as the Peaceful, not because he always maintained peace, but because he had faced so many defeats that he was constantly forced to pursue it. His first display of philosophical patience was during his trip to Rome for consecration. While crossing the Apennines, he was ambushed by bandits who robbed him, but he made no effort to pursue them. This example and the lack of consequences for smaller thieves soon led to larger ones getting involved in the robberies. Amurath took part of Hungary, while Mathias Corvinus seized Lower Austria. Frederic consoled himself for these losses by repeating the saying, "Forgetting is the best cure for the losses we suffer." At this time, after a reign of fifty-three years, he had just arranged for his son Maximilian to marry Marie of Burgundy and placed his son-in-law, Albert of Bavaria, who claimed ownership of Tyrol, under the ban of the Empire. He was too focused on family matters to concern himself with Italy. Additionally, he was busy searching for a motto for the house of Austria, a task that was very significant for someone like Frederic III. This motto, which Charles V was destined to fulfill, was finally discovered, much to the old emperor's delight, who felt he had completed all he needed to on earth after this last display of wisdom. He died on August 19, 1493, leaving the empire to his son Maximilian.
This motto was simply founded on the five vowels, a, e, i, o, u, the initial letters of these five words
This motto was based on the five vowels, a, e, i, o, u, which are the initial letters of these five words.
"AUSTRIA HAS THE POWER TO RULE THE WHOLE WORLD."
This means
This indicates
"It is the destiny of Austria to rule over the whole world."
"Austria's destiny is to rule the entire world."
So much for Germany.
That's it for Germany.
Now that we have cast a glance over the four nations which were on the way, as we said before, to become European Powers, let us turn our attention to those secondary States which formed a circle more contiguous to Rome, and whose business it was to serve as armour, so to speak, to the spiritual queen of the world, should it please any of these political giants whom we have described to make encroachments with a view to an attack, on the seas or the mountains, the Adriatic Gulf or the Alps, the Mediterranean or the Apennines.
Now that we've examined the four nations that were on their way to becoming European powers, let's turn our attention to the smaller states around Rome. Their role was to serve as a safeguard, so to speak, for the spiritual queen of the world, in case any of the political giants we discussed decided to launch an attack, whether on the seas or in the mountains, the Adriatic Sea or the Alps, the Mediterranean or the Apennines.
These were the kingdom of Naples, the duchy of Milan, the magnificent republic of Florence, and the most serene republic of Venice.
These included the Kingdom of Naples, the Duchy of Milan, the remarkable Republic of Florence, and the Most Serene Republic of Venice.
The kingdom of Naples was in the hands of the old Ferdinand, whose birth was not only illegitimate, but probably also well within the prohibited degrees. His father, Alfonso of Aragon, received his crown from Giovanna of Naples, who had adopted him as her successor. But since, in the fear of having no heir, the queen on her deathbed had named two instead of one, Alfonso had to sustain his rights against Rene. The two aspirants for some time disputed the crown. At last the house of Aragon carried the day over the house of Anjou, and in the course of the year 1442, Alfonso definitely secured his seat on the throne. Of this sort were the claims of the defeated rival which we shall see Charles VIII maintaining later on. Ferdinand had neither the courage nor the genius of his father, and yet he triumphed over his enemies, one after another he had two rivals, both for superior in merit to him self. The one was his nephew, the Count of Viana, who, basing his claim on his uncle's shameful birth, commanded the whole Aragonese party; the other was Duke John of Calabria, who commanded the whole Angevin party. Still he managed to hold the two apart, and to keep himself on the throne by dint of his prudence, which often verged upon duplicity. He had a cultivated mind, and had studied the sciences—above all, law. He was of middle height, with a large handsome head, his brow open and admirably framed in beautiful white hair, which fell nearly down to his shoulders. Moreover, though he had rarely exercised his physical strength in arms, this strength was so great that one day, when he happened to be on the square of the Mercato Nuovo at Naples, he seized by the horns a bull that had escaped and stopped him short, in spite of all the efforts the animal made to escape from his hands. Now the election of Alexander had caused him great uneasiness, and in spite of his usual prudence he had not been able to restrain himself from saying before the bearer of the news that not only did he fail to rejoice in this election, but also that he did not think that any Christian could rejoice in it, seeing that Borgia, having always been a bad man, would certainly make a bad pope. To this he added that, even were the choice an excellent one and such as would please everybody else, it would be none the less fatal to the house of Aragon, although Roderigo was born her subject and owed to her the origin and progress of his fortunes; for wherever reasons of state come in, the ties of blood and parentage are soon forgotten, and, 'a fortiori', relations arising from the obligations of nationality.
The kingdom of Naples was ruled by the old Ferdinand, whose birth was not only illegitimate but also likely from close relatives. His father, Alfonso of Aragon, was crowned by Giovanna of Naples, who named him as her heir. However, fearing she would not have an heir, the queen named two successors instead of one on her deathbed, so Alfonso had to defend his claim against Rene. The two claimants fought over the crown for a while. Ultimately, the house of Aragon won against the house of Anjou, and by the end of 1442, Alfonso secured his place on the throne. The claims from the defeated rival would later appear in Charles VIII. Ferdinand lacked the courage and brilliance of his father, yet he managed to outsmart his enemies— he faced two rivals, both of whom were more qualified than he was. One was his nephew, the Count of Viana, who rallied the entire Aragonese faction by emphasizing his uncle’s disgraceful birth; the other was Duke John of Calabria, who led the entire Angevin faction. Nevertheless, he succeeded in keeping both rivals at bay and maintained his position on the throne through cleverness that often bordered on deceit. He was well-educated and had studied various subjects, especially law. He was of average height, with a notably handsome head and a broad forehead framed by beautiful white hair that fell nearly to his shoulders. Although he rarely showcased his strength in battle, he was remarkably strong; once, while in the Mercato Nuovo square in Naples, he grabbed a bull by the horns after it had escaped and stopped it, despite the animal's desperate attempts to break free. The election of Alexander caused him significant anxiety, and despite his usual caution, he couldn't help but express his displeasure to the messenger by saying that he not only didn’t rejoice at this election but believed no Christian could, as Borgia had always been a bad man and would undoubtedly make a bad pope. He added that even if the choice had been excellent and favored by everyone else, it would still be disastrous for the house of Aragon, even though Roderigo was born a subject of hers and owed his rise to her; because when state matters are involved, family ties and national bonds are quickly forgotten, and, 'a fortiori', the obligations of nationality take precedence.
Thus, one may see that Ferdinand judged Alexander VI with his usual perspicacity; this, however, did not hinder him, as we shall soon perceive, from being the first to contract an alliance with him.
It's clear that Ferdinand saw through Alexander VI as he always does; however, as we will soon see, that didn't stop him from being the first to ally with him.
The duchy of Milan belonged nominally to John Galeazzo, grandson of Francesco Sforza, who had seized it by violence on the 26th of February, 1450, and bequeathed it to his son, Galeazzo Maria, father of the young prince now reigning; we say nominally, because the real master of the Milanese was at this period not the legitimate heir who was supposed to possess it, but his uncle Ludovico, surnamed 'il Moro', because of the mulberry tree which he bore in his arms. After being exiled with his two brothers, Philip who died of poison in 1479, and Ascanio who became the cardinal, he returned to Milan some days after the assassination of Galeazzo Maria, which took place on the 26th of December 1476, in St. Stephen's Church, and assumed the regency for the young duke, who at that time was only eight years old. From now onward, even after his nephew had reached the age of two-and-twenty, Ludovico continued to rule, and according to all probabilities was destined to rule a long time yet; for, some days after the poor young man had shown a desire to take the reins himself, he had fallen sick, and it was said, and not in a whisper, that he had taken one of those slow but mortal poisons of which princes made so frequent a use at this period, that, even when a malady was natural, a cause was always sought connected with some great man's interests. However it may have been, Ludovico had relegated his nephew, now too weak to busy himself henceforward with the affairs of his duchy, to the castle of Pavia, where he lay and languished under the eyes of his wife Isabella, daughter of King Ferdinand of Naples.
The duchy of Milan was officially owned by John Galeazzo, the grandson of Francesco Sforza, who had taken it by force on February 26, 1450, and passed it down to his son, Galeazzo Maria, the father of the young prince currently in charge. We say "officially" because, during this time, the real ruler of Milan wasn't the rightful heir but his uncle Ludovico, known as 'il Moro' because of the mulberry branch he carried. After being exiled with his two brothers—Philip, who died from poison in 1479, and Ascanio, who became a cardinal—Ludovico returned to Milan shortly after Galeazzo Maria was assassinated on December 26, 1476, in St. Stephen's Church. He took on the role of regent for the young duke, who was only eight years old at the time. From then on, even after his nephew turned 22, Ludovico continued to govern, and it seemed likely he would hold power for a long time. Just days after the young man expressed a desire to take control himself, he became ill, and there were loud rumors suggesting he had consumed one of those slow-acting but deadly poisons that princes often used back then; it was rumored that even when someone fell ill naturally, people would look for a deeper cause linked to the interests of powerful figures. Regardless of what was true, Ludovico had sent his nephew, now too weak to manage his duchy, to the castle of Pavia, where he lingered under the watchful eye of his wife Isabella, the daughter of King Ferdinand of Naples.
As to Ludovico, he was an ambitious man, full of courage and astuteness, familiar with the sword and with poison, which he used alternately, according to the occasion, without feeling any repugnance or any predilection for either of them; but quite decided to be his nephew's heir whether he died or lived.
Ludovico was an ambitious man—brave and clever, proficient with both a sword and poison, using whichever was required without any hesitation or favoritism; he was set on becoming his nephew's heir, regardless of whether his nephew lived or died.
Florence, although she had preserved the name of a republic, had little by little lost all her liberties, and belonged in fact, if not by right, to Piero dei Medici, to whom she had been bequeathed as a paternal legacy by Lorenzo, as we have seen, at the risk of his soul's salvation.
Florence, although it still referred to itself as a republic, had slowly lost all its freedoms and effectively belonged, if not officially, to Piero dei Medici, who had inherited it like a family legacy from Lorenzo, as we’ve mentioned, even at the risk of his soul's salvation.
The son, unfortunately, was far from having the genius of his father: he was handsome, it is true, whereas Lorenzo, on the contrary, was remarkably ugly; he had an agreeable, musical voice, whereas Lorenzo had always spoken through his nose; he was instructed in Latin and Greek, his conversation was pleasant and easy, and he improvised verses almost as well as the so-called Magnificent; but he was both ignorant of political affairs and haughtily insolent in his behaviour to those who had made them their study. Added to this, he was an ardent lover of pleasure, passionately addicted to women, incessantly occupied with bodily exercises that should make him shine in their eyes, above all with tennis, a game at which he very highly excelled: he promised himself that, when the period of mourning was fast, he would occupy the attention not only of Florence but of the whole of Italy, by the splendour of his courts and the renown of his fetes. Piero dei Medici had at any rate formed this plan; but Heaven decreed otherwise.
The son, sadly, was nowhere near his father's level of genius: he was indeed good-looking, whereas Lorenzo was quite unattractive; he had a nice, melodic voice, while Lorenzo always spoke nasally; he was educated in Latin and Greek, his conversations were charming and effortless, and he could improvise verses almost as well as the so-called Magnificent; however, he was completely oblivious to political matters and arrogantly dismissed those who dedicated themselves to studying them. On top of that, he was a passionate lover of pleasure, madly infatuated with women, and constantly involved in physical activities to catch their attention, especially tennis, a game he excelled at: he envisioned that once the mourning period ended, he would draw the attention of not just Florence but all of Italy with the grandeur of his courts and the fame of his festivities. Piero dei Medici had at least come up with this plan; but Heaven had other plans.
As to the most serene republic of Venice, whose doge was Agostino Barbarigo, she had attained, at the time we have reached, to her highest degree of power and splendour. From Cadiz to the Palus Maeotis, there was no port that was not open to her thousand ships; she possessed in Italy, beyond the coastline of the canals and the ancient duchy of Venice, the provinces of Bergamo, Brescia, Crema, Verona, Vicenza, and Padua; she owned the marches of Treviso, which comprehend the districts of Feltre, Belluno, Cadore, Polesella of Rovigo, and the principality of Ravenna; she also owned the Friuli, except Aquileia; Istria, except Trieste; she owned, on the east side of the Gulf, Zara, Spalatra, and the shore of Albania; in the Ionian Sea, the islands of Zante and Corfu; in Greece, Lepanto and Patras; in the Morea, Morone, Corone, Neapolis, and Argos; lastly, in the Archipelago, besides several little towns and stations on the coast, she owned Candia and the kingdom of Cyprus.
In reference to the peaceful republic of Venice, led by Doge Agostino Barbarigo, she had reached her height of power and magnificence. From Cadiz to the Sea of Azov, there was no port that her thousand ships couldn't access. In Italy, beyond the coastlines of the canals and the ancient duchy of Venice, she ruled the provinces of Bergamo, Brescia, Crema, Verona, Vicenza, and Padua; she controlled the Treviso area, which includes the districts of Feltre, Belluno, Cadore, Polesella of Rovigo, and the principality of Ravenna; she also governed Friuli, except for Aquileia; Istria, excluding Trieste; she owned, on the east side of the Gulf, Zara, Spalatra, and the shores of Albania; in the Ionian Sea, the islands of Zante and Corfu; in Greece, Lepanto and Patras; in the Peloponnese, Morone, Corone, Neapolis, and Argos; and finally, in the Aegean, along with several small towns and coastal stations, she controlled Candia and the kingdom of Cyprus.
Thus from the mouth of the Po to the eastern extremity of the Mediterranean, the most serene republic was mistress of the whole coastline, and Italy and Greece seemed to be mere suburbs of Venice.
From the mouth of the Po to the eastern edge of the Mediterranean, the most serene republic controlled the entire coastline, making Italy and Greece feel like mere suburbs of Venice.
In the intervals of space left free between Naples, Milan, Florence, and Venice, petty tyrants had arisen who exercised an absolute sovereignty over their territories: thus the Colonnas were at Ostia and at Nettuna, the Montefeltri at Urbino, the Manfredi at Faenza, the Bentivogli at Bologna, the Malatesta family at Rimini, the Vitelli at Citta di Castello, the Baglioni at Perugia, the Orsini at Vicovaro, and the princes of Este at Ferrara.
In the areas of land between Naples, Milan, Florence, and Venice, small tyrants rose to power, controlling their regions entirely: the Colonnas in Ostia and Nettuna, the Montefeltri in Urbino, the Manfredi in Faenza, the Bentivogli in Bologna, the Malatesta family in Rimini, the Vitelli in Citta di Castello, the Baglioni in Perugia, the Orsini in Vicovaro, and the Este princes in Ferrara.
Finally, in the centre of this immense circle, composed of great Powers, of secondary States, and of little tyrannies, Rome was set on high, the most exalted, yet the weakest of all, without influence, without lands, without an army, without gold. It was the concern of the new pope to secure all this: let us see, therefore, what manner of man was this Alexander VI, for undertaking and accomplishing such a project.
At the center of this large circle of major powers, smaller states, and minor tyrannies, Rome stood out, the most noticeable yet the weakest of them all, lacking influence, territory, an army, and wealth. It was the new pope's job to tackle these issues: let’s examine what kind of person Alexander VI was to take on and accomplish such a challenge.
CHAPTER 3
RODERIGO LENZUOLO was born at Valencia, in Spain, in 1430 or 1431, and on his mother's side was descended, as some writers declare, of a family of royal blood, which had cast its eyes on the tiara only after cherishing hopes of the crowns of Aragon and Valencia. Roderigo from his infancy had shown signs of a marvellous quickness of mind, and as he grew older he exhibited an intelligence extremely apt for the study of sciences, especially law and jurisprudence: the result was that his first distinctions were gained in the law, a profession wherein he soon made a great reputation by his ability in the discussion of the most thorny cases. All the same, he was not slow to leave this career, and abandoned it quite suddenly for the military profession, which his father had followed; but after various actions which served to display his presence of mind and courage, he was as much disgusted with this profession as with the other; and since it happened that at the very time he began to feel this disgust his father died, leaving a considerable fortune, he resolved to do no more work, but to live according to his own fancies and caprices. About this time he became the lover of a widow who had two daughters. The widow dying, Roderigo took the girls under his protection, put one into a convent, and as the other was one of the loveliest women imaginable, made her his mistress. This was the notorious Rosa Vanozza, by whom he had five children—Francesco, Caesar, Lucrezia, and Goffredo; the name of the fifth is unknown.
RODERIGOLENZUOLO was born in Valencia, Spain, in 1430 or 1431. Some writers claim he came from a royal bloodline on his mother's side, which had ambitions for the tiara after hoping for the crowns of Aragon and Valencia. From a young age, Roderigo had a remarkable quickness of mind, and as he matured, he exhibited a sharp intelligence that was perfect for studying sciences, especially law and jurisprudence. This allowed him to gain early recognition in law, where he quickly made a name for himself by tackling the most complex cases. However, he didn't stay in this profession long and suddenly switched to a military career, which his father had followed. After several actions that demonstrated his quick thinking and courage, he became as disenchanted with this career as he had been with the previous one. Around the same time he was feeling this disillusionment, his father passed away, leaving him with a significant fortune. Roderigo then chose to stop working and live according to his own desires. During this period, he became romantically involved with a widow who had two daughters. After the widow died, Roderigo took the girls under his care, placing one in a convent, while he made the other, who was one of the most beautiful women imaginable, his mistress. This was the notorious Rosa Vanozza, with whom he fathered five children—Francesco, Caesar, Lucrezia, and Goffredo; the name of the fifth child remains unknown.
Roderigo, retired from public affairs, was given up entirely to the affections of a lover and a father, when he heard that his uncle, who loved him like a son, had been elected pope under the name of Calixtus III. But the young man was at this time so much a lover that love imposed silence on ambition; and indeed he was almost terrified at the exaltation of his uncle, which was no doubt destined to force him once more into public life. Consequently, instead of hurrying to Rome, as anyone else in his place would have done, he was content to indite to His Holiness a letter in which he begged for the continuation of his favours, and wished him a long and happy reign.
Roderigo, having stepped away from public life, was completely committed to being a lover and a father when he found out that his uncle, who cared for him like a son, had been elected pope and was now called Calixtus III. However, at that moment, he was so overwhelmed by love that it prevented him from chasing his ambitions; in fact, he felt almost scared by his uncle's rise, knowing it would probably pull him back into public affairs. So, instead of hurrying to Rome like most people would, he decided to write a letter to His Holiness, asking for continued support and wishing him a long and happy reign.
This reserve on the part of one of his relatives, contrasted with the ambitious schemes which beset the new pope at every step, struck Calixtus III in a singular way: he knew the stuff that was in young Roderigo, and at a time when he was besieged on all sides by mediocrities, this powerful nature holding modestly aside gained new grandeur in his eyes so he replied instantly to Roderigo that on the receipt of his letter he must quit Spain for Italy, Valencia for Rome.
This hesitation from one of his relatives, in contrast to the ambitious plans surrounding the new pope at every turn, struck Calixtus III in a unique way: he saw the potential in young Roderigo. At a time when he was surrounded by mediocrity, this strong character who stepped back modestly appeared even more impressive to him. So, he immediately replied to Roderigo that upon receiving his letter, he must leave Spain for Italy, Valencia for Rome.
This letter uprooted Roderigo from the centre of happiness he had created for himself, and where he might perhaps have slumbered on like an ordinary man, if fortune had not thus interposed to drag him forcibly away. Roderigo was happy, Roderigo was rich; the evil passions which were natural to him had been, if not extinguished,—at least lulled; he was frightened himself at the idea of changing the quiet life he was leading for the ambitious, agitated career that was promised him; and instead of obeying his uncle, he delayed the preparations for departure, hoping that Calixtus would forget him. It was not so: two months after he received the letter from the pope, there arrived at Valencia a prelate from Rome, the bearer of Roderigo's nomination to a benefice worth 20,000 ducats a year, and also a positive order to the holder of the post to come and take possession of his charge as soon as possible.
This letter pulled Roderigo out of the happy life he had built for himself, where he might have continued living like an ordinary man if luck hadn't stepped in to pull him away. Roderigo was satisfied, Roderigo was wealthy; the negative feelings he often struggled with had been, if not completely erased, at least mellowed out; he was even anxious at the thought of trading his peaceful life for the ambitious, chaotic future that awaited him; and instead of following his uncle's orders, he delayed his plans to leave, hoping that Calixtus would forget about him. That wasn’t the case: two months after he received the letter from the pope, a bishop from Rome arrived in Valencia, carrying Roderigo's nomination to a position worth 20,000 ducats a year, along with a direct order for the current holder of the post to hand over his responsibilities as soon as possible.
Holding back was no longer feasible: so Roderigo obeyed; but as he did not wish to be separated from the source whence had sprung eight years of happiness, Rosa Vanozza also left Spain, and while he was going to Rome, she betook herself to Venice, accompanied by two confidential servants, and under the protection of a Spanish gentleman named Manuel Melchior.
Roderigo could no longer hold back, so he went along with it; however, not wanting to be separated from the source of eight years of happiness, Rosa Vanozza also left Spain. While he traveled to Rome, she headed to Venice, accompanied by two trusted servants and under the protection of a Spanish gentleman named Manuel Melchior.
Fortune kept the promises she had made to Roderigo: the pope received him as a son, and made him successively Archbishop of Valencia, Cardinal-Deacon, and Vice-Chancellor. To all these favours Calixtus added a revenue of 20,000 ducats, so that at the age of scarcely thirty-five Roderigo found himself the equal of a prince in riches and power.
Fortune kept the promises she made to Roderigo: the pope embraced him like a son and successively appointed him Archbishop of Valencia, Cardinal-Deacon, and Vice-Chancellor. Along with these titles, Calixtus provided him with an income of 20,000 ducats, making Roderigo as rich and powerful as a prince by the time he was only thirty-five.
Roderigo had had some reluctance about accepting the cardinalship, which kept him fast at Rome, and would have preferred to be General of the Church, a position which would have allowed him more liberty for seeing his mistress and his family; but his uncle Calixtus made him reckon with the possibility of being his successor some day, and from that moment the idea of being the supreme head of kings and nations took such hold of Roderigo, that he no longer had any end in view but that which his uncle had made him entertain.
Roderigo was unsure about accepting the cardinal position, which left him stranded in Rome. He would have rather been the General of the Church, a role that would allow him more freedom to visit his mistress and family. However, his uncle Calixtus got him to think about the chance of becoming his successor one day, and from that point on, the thought of being the top authority among kings and nations consumed Roderigo, making him focus solely on what his uncle had urged him to chase.
From that day forward, there began to grow up in the young cardinal that talent for hypocrisy which made of him the most perfect incarnation of the devil that has perhaps ever existed; and Roderigo was no longer the same man: with words of repentance and humility on his lips, his head bowed as though he were bearing the weight of his past sins, disparaging the riches which he had acquired and which, according to him, were the wealth of the poor and ought to return to the poor, he passed his life in churches, monasteries, and hospitals, acquiring, his historian tells us, even in the eyes of his enemies, the reputation of a Solomon for wisdom, of a Job for patience, and of a very Moses for his promulgation of the word of God: Rosa Vanozza was the only person in the world who could appreciate the value of this pious cardinal's conversion.
From that day on, the young cardinal began to develop a talent for hypocrisy that made him perhaps the most perfect representation of the devil ever seen; and Roderigo was no longer the same man: with words of regret and humility on his lips, his head bowed as if he were carrying the weight of his past sins, he downplayed the wealth he had accumulated—claiming it was the riches of the poor that should be returned to them. He spent his life in churches, monasteries, and hospitals, earning, as his historian notes, even the respect of his enemies, a reputation for being wise like Solomon, patient like Job, and a true Moses in spreading the word of God: Rosa Vanozza was the only person in the world who could truly recognize the value of this pious cardinal’s transformation.
It proved a lucky thing for Roderigo that he had assumed this pious attitude, for his protector died after a reign of three years three months and nineteen days, and he was now sustained by his own merit alone against the numerous enemies he had made by his rapid rise to fortune: so during the whole of the reign of Pius II he lived always apart from public affairs, and only reappeared in the days of Sixtus IV, who made him the gift of the abbacy of Subiaco, and sent him in the capacity of ambassador to the kings of Aragon and Portugal. On his return, which took place during the pontificate of Innocent VIII, he decided to fetch his family at last to Rome: thither they came, escorted by Don Manuel Melchior, who from that moment passed as the husband of Rosa Vanozza, and took the name of Count Ferdinand of Castile. The Cardinal Roderigo received the noble Spaniard as a countryman and a friend; and he, who expected to lead a most retired life, engaged a house in the street of the Lungara, near the church of Regina Coeli, on the banks of the Tiber. There it was that, after passing the day in prayers and pious works, Cardinal Roderigo used to repair each evening and lay aside his mask. And it was said, though nobody could prove it, that in this house infamous scenes passed: Report said the dissipations were of so dissolute a character that their equals had never been seen in Rome. With a view to checking the rumours that began to spread abroad, Roderigo sent Caesar to study at Pisa, and married Lucrezia to a young gentleman of Aragon; thus there only remained at home Rosa Vanozza and her two sons: such was the state of things when Innocent VIII died and Roderigo Borgia was proclaimed pope.
It turned out to be a lucky break for Roderigo that he had taken on this religious mindset because his protector died after three years, three months, and nineteen days in power. Now, he was relying entirely on his own abilities to fend off the many enemies he had made through his quick rise to power. During the entire reign of Pius II, he stayed out of public affairs and only came back into the spotlight during Sixtus IV’s time, who made him the abbot of Subiaco and sent him as an ambassador to the kings of Aragon and Portugal. Upon his return, which happened during Innocent VIII's papacy, he decided it was finally time to bring his family to Rome. They arrived, accompanied by Don Manuel Melchior, who was then known as the husband of Rosa Vanozza and took on the title Count Ferdinand of Castile. Cardinal Roderigo welcomed the noble Spaniard as a fellow countryman and friend; he, expecting to live a very private life, rented a house on Lungara Street, near the church of Regina Coeli, along the Tiber River. It was there that, after spending his days in prayer and doing good deeds, Cardinal Roderigo would return each evening and drop his façade. It was rumored, although unconfirmed, that infamous activities took place in that house: Reports suggested that the excesses were so immoral that nothing like them had ever been seen in Rome. In an attempt to stop the gossip that was starting to spread, Roderigo sent Caesar to study in Pisa and arranged Lucrezia's marriage to a young man from Aragon; this left only Rosa Vanozza and her two sons at home. This was the situation when Innocent VIII passed away and Roderigo Borgia was declared pope.
We have seen by what means the nomination was effected; and so the five cardinals who had taken no part in this simony—namely, the Cardinals of Naples, Sierra, Portugal, Santa Maria-in-Porticu, and St. Peter-in-Vinculis—protested loudly against this election, which they treated as a piece of jobbery; but Roderigo had none the less, however it was done, secured his majority; Roderigo was none the less the two hundred and sixtieth successor of St. Peter.
We have seen how the nomination took place; and thus the five cardinals who were not part of this corruption—specifically, the Cardinals of Naples, Sierra, Portugal, Santa Maria-in-Porticu, and St. Peter-in-Vinculis—strongly opposed this election, which they saw as a plot; however, Roderigo still found a way to achieve his majority; Roderigo remained the two hundred sixtieth successor of St. Peter.
Alexander VI, however, though he had arrived at his object, did not dare throw off at first the mask which the Cardinal Borgia had worn so long, although when he was apprised of his election he could not dissimulate his joy; indeed, on hearing the favourable result of the scrutiny, he lifted his hands to heaven and cried, in the accents of satisfied ambition, "Am I then pope? Am I then Christ's vicar? Am I then the keystone of the Christian world?"
Alexander VI, even though he had reached his goal, was hesitant to abandon the facade that Cardinal Borgia had upheld for so long. However, when he found out about his election, he couldn't contain his joy; in fact, upon hearing the positive results of the vote, he raised his hands to heaven and exclaimed, with the voice of fulfilled ambition, "Am I really pope? Am I really Christ's representative? Am I truly the cornerstone of the Christian world?"
"Yes, holy father," replied Cardinal Ascanio Sforza, the same who had sold to Roderigo the nine votes that were at his disposal at the Conclave for four mules laden with silver; "and we hope by your election to give glory to God, repose to the Church, and joy to Christendom, seeing that you have been chosen by the Almighty Himself as the most worthy among all your brethren."
"Yes, holy father," replied Cardinal Ascanio Sforza, the same one who had sold Roderigo the nine votes he had at the Conclave for four mules filled with silver; "and we hope that your election will bring glory to God, peace to the Church, and happiness to Christendom, as you have been chosen by the Almighty Himself as the most deserving among all your brothers."
But in the short interval occupied by this reply, the new pope had already assumed the papal authority, and in a humble voice and with hands crossed upon his breast, he spoke:
But in the short time it took to write this reply, the new pope had already assumed the papal authority, and with a humble voice and his hands crossed over his chest, he said:
"We hope that God will grant us His powerful aid, in spite of our weakness, and that He will do for us that which He did for the apostle when aforetime He put into his hands the keys of heaven and entrusted to him the government of the Church, a government which without the aid of God would prove too heavy a burden for mortal man; but God promised that His Spirit should direct him; God will do the same, I trust, for us; and for your part we fear not lest any of you fail in that holy obedience which is due unto the head of the Church, even as the flock of Christ was bidden to follow the prince of the apostles."
"We hope that God will strongly support us, despite our weaknesses, and that He will do for us what He did for the apostle when He gave him the keys to heaven and the leadership of the Church—a responsibility that would be overwhelming for anyone without God's help. But God promised that His Spirit would guide him; I trust God will do the same for us. As for you, we’re not worried that any of you will fail in the holy obedience owed to the head of the Church, just as Christ's followers were instructed to follow the leader of the apostles."
Having spoken these words, Alexander donned the pontifical robes, and through the windows of the Vatican had strips of paper thrown out on which his name was written in Latin. These, blown by the wind, seemed to convey to the whole world the news of the great event which was about to change the face of Italy. The same day couriers started for all the courts of Europe.
After saying this, Alexander put on the ceremonial robes and had strips of paper with his name written in Latin thrown out of the Vatican windows. The wind blew them away, making it look like the news of the important event that was about to change Italy was spreading across the globe. On that same day, messengers were sent to all the courts of Europe.
Caesar Borgia learned the news of his father's election at the University of Pisa, where he was a student. His ambition had sometimes dreamed of such good fortune, yet his joy was little short of madness. He was then a young man, about twenty-two or twenty-four years of age, skilful in all bodily exercises, and especially in fencing; he could ride barebacked the most fiery steeds, could cut off the head of a bull at a single sword-stroke; moreover, he was arrogant, jealous, and insincere. According to Tammasi, he was great among the godless, as his brother Francesco was good among the great. As to his face, even contemporary authors have left utterly different descriptions; for same have painted him as a monster of ugliness, while others, on the contrary, extol his beauty. This contradiction is due to the fact that at certain times of the year, and especially in the spring, his face was covered with an eruption which, so long as it lasted, made him an object of horror and disgust, while all the rest of the year he was the sombre, black-haired cavalier with pale skin and tawny beard whom Raphael shows us in the fine portrait he made of him. And historians, both chroniclers and painters, agree as to his fixed and powerful gaze, behind which burned a ceaseless flame, giving to his face something infernal and superhuman. Such was the man whose fortune was to fulfil all his desires. He had taken for his motto, 'Aut Caesar, aut nihil': Caesar or nothing.
Caesar Borgia learned about his father's election while he was a student at the University of Pisa. He had sometimes imagined such good fortune, but his excitement was nearly overwhelming. At about twenty-two or twenty-four years old, he was skilled in all physical activities, especially fencing; he could ride even the most unbroken horses bareback and could decapitate a bull with a single swing of his sword. On top of that, he was arrogant, jealous, and cunning. According to Tammasi, he stood out among the irreverent, just as his brother Francesco was seen as virtuous among the powerful. Regarding his appearance, even writers of his time gave completely different descriptions; some described him as a hideous monster, while others praised his good looks. This discrepancy arose because, at certain times of the year, especially in the spring, a rash would plague his face, making him horrifying and repulsive until it cleared up. For the rest of the year, he resembled the dark-haired, somber cavalier with pale skin and a reddish beard depicted in Raphael’s beautiful portrait of him. Historians, both chroniclers and artists, agree on his intense and powerful gaze, which held an unquenchable fire, giving his face a somewhat demonic and superhuman quality. Such was the man destined to fulfill all his ambitions. He chose as his motto, 'Aut Caesar, aut nihil': Caesar or nothing.
Caesar posted to Rome with certain of his friends, and scarcely was he recognised at the gates of the city when the deference shown to him gave instant proof of the change in his fortunes: at the Vatican the respect was twice as great; mighty men bowed down before him as before one mightier than themselves. And so, in his impatience, he stayed not to visit his mother or any other member of his family, but went straight to the pope to kiss his feet; and as the pope had been forewarned of his coming, he awaited him in the midst of a brilliant and numerous assemblage of cardinals, with the three other brothers standing behind him. His Holiness received Caesar with a gracious countenance; still, he did not allow himself any demonstration of his paternal love, but, bending towards him, kissed him on the forehead, and inquired how he was and how he had fared on his journey. Caesar replied that he was wonderfully well, and altogether at the service of His Holiness: that, as to the journey, the trifling inconveniences and short fatigue had been compensated, and far more than compensated, by the joy which he felt in being able to adore upon the papal throne a pope who was so worthy. At these words, leaving Caesar still on his knees, and reseating himself—for he had risen from his seat to embrace him—the pope assumed a grave and composed expression of face, and spoke as follows, loud enough to be heard by all, and slowly enough for everyone present to be able to ponder and retain in his memory even the least of his words:
Caesar arrived in Rome with a few friends, and as soon as he was recognized at the city gates, the respect shown to him immediately demonstrated how much his situation had changed: at the Vatican, the respect was even greater; powerful men bowed to him as if he were more powerful than they were. So, in his eagerness, he didn’t take the time to visit his mother or any other family members but went straight to the pope to kiss his feet; the pope, having been warned about his arrival, was waiting for him in a dazzling large gathering of cardinals, with three of his brothers standing behind him. His Holiness greeted Caesar warmly; however, he did not permit any display of paternal affection. Instead, leaning in, he kissed him on the forehead and asked how he was and how his journey had gone. Caesar replied that he was extremely well and completely at the service of His Holiness, adding that any minor inconveniences and slight fatigue during the trip were more than compensated for by the joy he felt in being able to honor a pope so deserving while seated on the papal throne. At these words, leaving Caesar still on his knees and sitting back down—he had stood to embrace him—the pope adopted a serious and calm expression, speaking clearly enough for everyone to hear and slowly enough for all present to think about and remember even the smallest of his words:
"We are convinced, Caesar, that you are peculiarly rejoiced in beholding us on this sublime height, so far above our deserts, whereto it has pleased the Divine goodness to exalt us. This joy of yours is first of all our due because of the love we have always borne you and which we bear you still, and in the second place is prompted by your own personal interest, since henceforth you may feel sure of receiving from our pontifical hand those benefits which your own good works shall deserve. But if your joy—and this we say to you as we have even now said to your brothers—if your joy is founded on ought else than this, you are very greatly mistaken, Caesar, and you will find yourself sadly deceived. Perhaps we have been ambitious—we confess this humbly before the face of all men—passionately and immoderately ambitious to attain to the dignity of sovereign pontiff, and to reach this end we have followed every path that is open to human industry; but we have acted thus, vowing an inward vow that when once we had reached our goal, we would follow no other path but that which conduces best to the service of God and to the advancement of the Holy See, so that the glorious memory of the deeds that we shall do may efface the shameful recollection of the deeds we have already done. Thus shall we, let us hope, leave to those who follow us a track where upon if they find not the footsteps of a saint, they may at least tread in the path of a true pontiff. God, who has furthered the means, claims at our hands the fruits, and we desire to discharge to the full this mighty debt that we have incurred to Him; and accordingly we refuse to arouse by any deceit the stern rigour of His judgments. One sole hindrance could have power to shake our good intentions, and that might happen should we feel too keen an interest in your fortunes. Therefore are we armed beforehand against our love, and therefore have we prayed to God beforehand that we stumble not because of you; for in the path of favouritism a pope cannot slip without a fall, and cannot fall without injury and dishonour to the Holy See. Even to the end of our life we shall deplore the faults which have brought this experience home to us; and may it please God that our uncle Calixtus of blessed memory bear not this day in purgatory the burden of our sins, more heavy, alas, than his own! Ah, he was rich in every virtue, he was full of good intentions; but he loved too much his own people, and among them he loved me chief. And so he suffered this love to lead him blindly astray, all this love that he bore to his kindred, who to him were too truly flesh of his flesh, so that he heaped upon the heads of a few persons only, and those perhaps the least worthy, benefits which would more fittingly have rewarded the deserts of many. In truth, he bestowed upon our house treasures that should never have been amassed at the expense of the poor, or else should have been turned to a better purpose. He severed from the ecclesiastical State, already weak and poor, the duchy of Spoleto and other wealthy properties, that he might make them fiefs to us; he confided to our weak hands the vice-chancellorship, the vice-prefecture of Rome, the generalship of the Church, and all the other most important offices, which, instead of being monopolised by us, should have been conferred on those who were most meritorious. Moreover, there were persons who were raised on our recommendation to posts of great dignity, although they had no claims but such as our undue partiality accorded them; others were left out with no reason for their failure except the jealousy excited in us by their virtues. To rob Ferdinand of Aragon of the kingdom of Naples, Calixtus kindled a terrible war, which by a happy issue only served to increase our fortune, and by an unfortunate issue must have brought shame and disaster upon the Holy See. Lastly, by allowing himself to be governed by men who sacrificed public good to their private interests, he inflicted an injury, not only upon the pontifical throne and his own reputation, but what is far worse, far more deadly, upon his own conscience. And yet, O wise judgments of God! hard and incessantly though he toiled to establish our fortunes, scarcely had he left empty that supreme seat which we occupy to-day, when we were cast down from the pinnacle whereon we had climbed, abandoned to the fury of the rabble and the vindictive hatred of the Roman barons, who chose to feel offended by our goodness to their enemies. Thus, not only, we tell you, Caesar, not only did we plunge headlong from the summit of our grandeur, losing the worldly goods and dignities which our uncle had heaped at our feet, but for very peril of our life we were condemned to a voluntary exile, we and our friends, and in this way only did we contrive to escape the storm which our too good fortune had stirred up against us. Now this is a plain proof that God mocks at men's designs when they are bad ones. How great an error is it for any pope to devote more care to the welfare of a house, which cannot last more than a few years, than to the glory of the Church, which will last for ever! What utter folly for any public man whose position is not inherited and cannot be bequeathed to his posterity, to support the edifice of his grandeur on any other basis than the noblest virtue practised for the general good, and to suppose that he can ensure the continuance of his own fortune otherwise than by taking all precautions against sudden whirlwinds which are want to arise in the midst of a calm, and to blow up the storm-clouds I mean the host of enemies. Now any one of these enemies who does his worst can cause injuries far more powerful than any help that is at all likely to come from a hundred friends and their lying promises. If you and your brothers walk in the path of virtue which we shall now open for you, every wish of your heart shall be instantly accomplished; but if you take the other path, if you have ever hoped that our affection will wink at disorderly life, then you will very soon find out that we are truly pope, Father of the Church, not father of the family; that, vicar of Christ as we are, we shall act as we deem best for Christendom, and not as you deem best for your own private good. And now that we have come to a thorough understanding, Caesar, receive our pontifical blessing." And with these words, Alexander VI rose up, laid his hands upon his son's head, for Caesar was still kneeling, and then retired into his apartments, without inviting him to follow.
"We're sure, Caesar, that you're especially happy to see us here at this remarkable height, far beyond what we deserve, to which divine goodness has chosen to elevate us. Your joy is justified, first and foremost, by the love we have always had for you and still hold, and also by your own interests—you can now be certain of receiving the benefits you deserve from our pontifical authority because of your good deeds. But if your joy is based on anything other than this, as we've already mentioned to your brothers, you are seriously mistaken, Caesar, and you will find yourself sadly deceived. We admit that we may have been ambitious—we honestly acknowledge this—passionately and excessively striving for the dignity of sovereign pontiff, and to achieve this goal, we pursued every avenue available to human effort; but we made a vow within ourselves that once we reached our destination, we would follow only the path that best serves God and advances the Holy See, so that the glorious memory of our future actions may erase the shameful recollection of those we have already committed. Thus, we hope to leave a path for those who follow us where, if they do not find the footsteps of a saint, they may at least walk the path of a true pontiff. God, who has provided the means, demands the fruits from us, and we wish to fully repay this great debt we owe Him; thus, we refuse to provoke His stern judgments through deceit. One thing could undermine our good intentions, and that would be if we became too invested in your fortunes. Therefore, we are prepared in advance against our feelings of love, and have prayed to God beforehand that we do not stumble because of you; because on the path of favoritism, a pope cannot slip without falling, and cannot fall without causing injury and dishonor to the Holy See. Even until the end of our life, we will regret the mistakes that have taught us this lesson; and may it please God that our late uncle Calixtus, of blessed memory, does not bear in purgatory today a heavier burden of our sins than his own! Ah, he was rich in every virtue, filled with good intentions; but he loved his own people too much, and among them, he loved me the most. And so, he let this love lead him astray, all this love for his relatives, who truly were flesh of his flesh, causing him to give benefits to a select few, perhaps the least deserving, which would have been better awarded to many others. In truth, he granted our family treasures that should never have been amassed at the expense of the poor, or should have served a better purpose. He took from the already weak and poor ecclesiastical State the duchy of Spoleto and other wealthy properties to make them fiefs for us; he entrusted to our weak hands the vice-chancellorship, the vice-prefecture of Rome, the generalship of the Church, and all the other most important offices, which should have been given to those who were truly worthy instead of being monopolized by us. Furthermore, some individuals were promoted to high positions through our recommendation, although they had no qualifications other than the undue favoritism we showed them; others were overlooked for no reason except our jealousy towards their virtues. To deprive Ferdinand of Aragon of the kingdom of Naples, Calixtus instigated a terrible war, which, by a fortunate turn, only increased our fortune, while an unfortunate outcome would have brought shame and disaster upon the Holy See. Lastly, by allowing himself to be guided by men who prioritized private interests over the public good, he not only caused damage to the pontifical throne and his own reputation but, worse yet, to his own conscience. Yet, O wise judgments of God! As hard and ceaseless as he labored to secure our fortunes, scarcely had he vacated that supreme seat we occupy today when we were cast down from the pinnacle we had climbed, left at the mercy of the mob’s rage and the vengeful hatred of the Roman barons, who were offended by our kindness to their enemies. Thus, we tell you, Caesar, not only did we plunge headfirst from our lofty status, losing the worldly goods and honors our uncle had piled at our feet, but out of a real threat to our lives, we were sentenced to voluntary exile, and only in this way did we manage to escape the storm that our too-good fortune had stirred against us. Now this is clear proof that God mocks bad human designs. How great a mistake it is for any pope to focus more on protecting a house that cannot endure beyond a few years than on the glory of the Church, which will last forever! What utter folly for any public figure, whose position is not inherited and cannot be passed down, to build their grandeur on anything other than the highest virtues practiced for the common good, believing they can secure their fortune without guarding against sudden storms that tend to arise from calm and unleash furious tempests that are the legions of enemies. Any of these enemies, when they are at their worst, can inflict damage far greater than any aid likely to come from a hundred friends and their empty promises. If you and your brothers follow the virtuous path we are about to open for you, every wish of your heart will be granted; but if you take the other path, if you ever think that our affection would overlook disorderly conduct, then you will soon realize that we are truly a pope, the Father of the Church, not a family father; that, as vicar of Christ, we will act in the best interest of Christendom, not necessarily in the best interest of your personal welfare. And now that we have reached a clear understanding, Caesar, receive our pontifical blessing." And with these words, Alexander VI stood up, placed his hands on his son's head while Caesar was still kneeling, and then went back into his rooms, without inviting him to follow.
The young man remained awhile stupefied at this discourse, so utterly unexpected, so utterly destructive at one fell blow to his most cherished hopes. He rose giddy and staggering like a drunken man, and at once leaving the Vatican, hurried to his mother, whom he had forgotten before, but sought now in his despair. Rosa Vanozza possessed all the vices and all the virtues of a Spanish courtesan; her devotion to the Virgin amounted to superstition, her fondness for her children to weakness, and her love for Roderigo to sensuality. In the depth of her heart she relied on the influence she had been able to exercise over him for nearly thirty years; and like a snake, she knew how to envelop him in her coils when the fascination of her glance had lost its power. Rosa knew of old the profound hypocrisy of her lover, and thus she was in no difficulty about reassuring Caesar.
The young man stood there, shocked by this completely unexpected and devastating conversation that shattered his most treasured hopes in an instant. He got up, feeling dizzy and unsteady like a drunk person, and quickly left the Vatican, rushing to find his mother, whom he had forgotten before but now desperately sought. Rosa Vanozza had all the flaws and strengths of a Spanish courtesan; her devotion to the Virgin bordered on superstition, her affection for her children was weak, and her love for Roderigo was purely physical. Deep down, she trusted the influence she’d had over him for almost thirty years; and like a snake, she knew how to wrap around him when her captivating gaze lost its power. Rosa was well aware of her lover's deep hypocrisy, so she had no trouble comforting Caesar.
Lucrezia was with her mother when Caesar arrived; the two young people exchanged a lover-like kiss beneath her very eyes: and before he left Caesar had made an appointment for the same evening with Lucrezia, who was now living apart from her husband, to whom Roderigo paid a pension in her palace of the Via del Pelegrino, opposite the Campo dei Fiori, and there enjoying perfect liberty.
Lucrezia was with her mom when Caesar showed up; the two young people shared a romantic kiss right in front of her. Before he left, Caesar arranged a date for that evening with Lucrezia, who was now living separately from her husband. Roderigo paid a pension for her in her palace on Via del Pelegrino, across from Campo dei Fiori, where she had complete freedom.
In the evening, at the hour fixed, Caesar appeared at Lucrezia's; but he found there his brother Francesco. The two young men had never been friends. Still, as their tastes were very different, hatred with Francesco was only the fear of the deer for the hunter; but with Caesar it was the desire for vengeance and that lust for blood which lurks perpetually in the heart of a tiger. The two brothers none the less embraced, one from general kindly feeling, the other from hypocrisy; but at first sight of one another the sentiment of a double rivalry, first in their father's and then in their sister's good graces, had sent the blood mantling to the cheek of Francesco, and called a deadly pallor into Caesar's. So the two young men sat on, each resolved not to be the first to leave, when all at once there was a knock at the door, and a rival was announced before whom both of them were bound to give way: it was their father.
In the evening, at the agreed time, Caesar arrived at Lucrezia's place, but he found his brother Francesco there. The two young men had never been friends. Nevertheless, since their interests were quite different, Francesco’s resentment was more like a deer’s fear of a hunter; for Caesar, however, it was a craving for revenge and that thirst for blood that always resides in a tiger's heart. Still, the two brothers embraced—one out of genuine goodwill, the other out of insincerity. But when they saw each other, the rivalry for their father's affection and then for their sister's made Francesco’s face flush while Caesar’s turned pale as a ghost. So the two young men sat there, each determined not to be the first to leave, when suddenly there was a knock at the door, and a rival was announced whom they both had to acknowledge: it was their father.
Rosa Vanazza was quite right in comforting Caesar. Indeed, although Alexander VI had repudiated the abuses of nepotism, he understood very well the part that was to be played for his benefit by his sons and his daughter; for he knew he could always count on Lucrezia and Caesar, if not on Francesco and Goffredo. In these matters the sister was quite worthy of her brother. Lucrezia was wanton in imagination, godless by nature, ambitious and designing: she had a craving for pleasure, admiration, honours, money, jewels, gorgeous stuffs, and magnificent mansions. A true Spaniard beneath her golden tresses, a courtesan beneath her frank looks, she carried the head of a Raphael Madonna, and concealed the heart of a Messalina. She was dear to Roderigo both as daughter and as mistress, and he saw himself reflected in her as in a magic mirror, every passion and every vice. Lucrezia and Caesar were accordingly the best beloved of his heart, and the three composed that diabolical trio which for eleven years occupied the pontifical throne, like a mocking parody of the heavenly Trinity.
Rosa Vanazza was absolutely right to comfort Caesar. Even though Alexander VI had turned down nepotism, he knew exactly how his sons and daughter could help him; he knew he could always count on Lucrezia and Caesar, even if he couldn't rely on Francesco and Goffredo. In this way, the sister was just as valuable as her brother. Lucrezia had a vivid imagination, was naturally irreverent, and was ambitious and cunning: she desired pleasure, admiration, status, wealth, jewels, luxurious items, and grand homes. A true Spaniard beneath her golden hair, a courtesan behind her friendly exterior, she had the face of a Raphael Madonna while hiding the heart of a Messalina. Roderigo valued her both as his daughter and as his mistress, seeing all his passions and vices reflected in her like in a magic mirror. Lucrezia and Caesar were thus the closest to his heart, and together they formed that diabolical trio which, for eleven years, held the papal throne, like a mocking parody of the Holy Trinity.
Nothing occurred at first to give the lie to Alexander's professions of principle in the discourse he addressed to Caesar, and the first year of his pontificate exceeded all the hopes of Rome at the time of his election. He arranged for the provision of stores in the public granaries with such liberality, that within the memory of man there had never been such astonishing abundance; and with a view to extending the general prosperity to the lowest class, he organised numerous doles to be paid out of his private fortune, which made it possible for the very poor to participate in the general banquet from which they had been excluded for long enough. The safety of the city was secured, from the very first days of his accession, by the establishment of a strong and vigilant police force, and a tribunal consisting of four magistrates of irreproachable character, empowered to prosecute all nocturnal crimes, which during the last pontificate had been so common that their very numbers made impunity certain: these judges from the first showed a severity which neither the rank nor the purse of the culprit could modify. This presented such a great contrast to the corruption of the last reign,—in the course of which the vice-chamberlain one day remarked in public, when certain people were complaining of the venality of justice, "God wills not that a sinner die, but that he live and pay,"—that the capital of the Christian world felt for one brief moment restored to the happy days of the papacy. So, at the end of a year, Alexander VI had reconquered that spiritual credit, so to speak, which his predecessors lost. His political credit was still to be established, if he was to carry out the first part of his gigantic scheme. To arrive at this, he must employ two agencies—alliances and conquests. His plan was to begin with alliances. The gentleman of Aragon who had married Lucrezia when she was only the daughter of Cardinal Roderigo Borgia was not a man powerful enough, either by birth and fortune or by intellect, to enter with any sort of effect into the plots and plans of Alexander VI; the separation was therefore changed into a divorce, and Lucrezia Borgia was now free to remarry. Alexander opened up two negotiations at the same time: he needed an ally to keep a watch on the policy of the neighbouring States. John Sforza, grandson of Alexander Sforza, brother of the great Francis I, Duke of Milan, was lord of Pesaro; the geographical situation of this place, on the coast, on the way between Florence and Venice, was wonderfully convenient for his purpose; so Alexander first cast an eye upon him, and as the interest of both parties was evidently the same, it came about that John Sforza was very soon Lucrezia's second husband.
Initially, Alexander's claims of principle in his speech to Caesar went uncontested, and his first year as pope exceeded all of Rome's expectations at the time of his election. He generously organized supplies in the public granaries, creating an incredible abundance that was unprecedented in living memory. To promote prosperity among the lower class, he established numerous handouts funded by his personal wealth, allowing even the poorest to partake in the communal feast they had long been excluded from. From the very beginning of his rule, he ensured the city's safety by setting up a strong and vigilant police force, along with a court of four magistrates of impeccable character, who were authorized to prosecute all nighttime crimes that had become so rampant during the previous papacy that their sheer number guaranteed impunity. These judges showed such strictness that neither the rank nor the wealth of the offender could influence them. This was in stark contrast to the corruption of the previous administration, during which the vice-chamberlain once remarked, in response to complaints about the corruption of justice, "God doesn’t want a sinner to die, but to live and pay," briefly making the capital of the Christian world feel like it had returned to the happier days of the papacy. By the end of a year, Alexander VI had restored that spiritual authority, so to speak, which his predecessors had lost. His political authority still needed to be established for him to carry out the first part of his ambitious plan. To achieve this, he needed to employ two strategies—alliances and conquests. He planned to start with alliances. The man from Aragon who had married Lucrezia when she was just the daughter of Cardinal Roderigo Borgia was not sufficiently powerful, either in terms of birth, wealth, or intellect, to effectively engage in the schemes and plots of Alexander VI; therefore, their separation was converted into a divorce, freeing Lucrezia Borgia to remarry. Alexander initiated two negotiations simultaneously, needing an ally to keep an eye on the policies of neighboring states. John Sforza, grandson of Alexander Sforza and brother of the great Francis I, Duke of Milan, was the lord of Pesaro; the strategic location of this area, on the coast and along the route between Florence and Venice, was ideal for his needs. Hence, Alexander first considered him, and since both parties had a clear mutual interest, John Sforza quickly became Lucrezia's second husband.
At the same time overtures had been made to Alfonso of Aragon, heir presumptive to the crown of Naples, to arrange a marriage between Dana Sancia, his illegitimate daughter, and Goffreda, the pope's third son; but as the old Ferdinand wanted to make the best bargain he could out of it; he dragged on the negotiations as long as possible, urging that the two children were not of marriageable age, and so, highly honoured as he felt in such a prospective alliance, there was no hurry about the engagement. Matters stopped at this point, to the great annoyance of Alexander VI, who saw through this excuse, and understood that the postponement was nothing more or less than a refusal. Accordingly Alexander and Ferdinand remained in statu quo, equals in the political game, both on the watch till events should declare for one or other. The turn of fortune was for Alexander.
At the same time, efforts were underway to connect with Alfonso of Aragon, the heir presumptive to the crown of Naples, to arrange a marriage between his illegitimate daughter Dana Sancia and Goffreda, the pope's third son. However, the old Ferdinand wanted to get the best deal possible, so he stretched out the negotiations for as long as he could, claiming that the two kids were not of marriageable age. Although he felt quite honored by the potential alliance, he insisted there was no rush for the engagement. The situation remained stuck at this point, much to the frustration of Alexander VI, who saw through this excuse and realized that the delay was essentially a refusal. As a result, Alexander and Ferdinand remained in the same position, both equal in the political game, watching for events that could benefit one of them. The turn of fortune was in favor of Alexander.
Italy, though tranquil, was instinctively conscious that her calm was nothing but the lull which goes before a storm. She was too rich and too happy to escape the envy of other nations. As yet the plains of Pisa had not been reduced to marsh-lands by the combined negligence and jealousy of the Florentine Republic, neither had the rich country that lay around Rome been converted into a barren desert by the wars of the Colonna and Orsini families; not yet had the Marquis of Marignan razed to the ground a hundred and twenty villages in the republic of Siena alone; and though the Maremma was unhealthy, it was not yet a poisonous marsh: it is a fact that Flavio Blando, writing in 1450, describes Ostia as being merely less flourishing than in the days of the Romans, when she had numbered 50,000 inhabitants, whereas now in our own day there are barely 30 in all.
Italy, while peaceful, had an instinctive sense that her calmness was just the quiet before the storm. She was too prosperous and too happy to escape the envy of other nations. So far, the plains of Pisa hadn't turned into marshes due to the careless jealousy of the Florentine Republic, nor had the rich lands around Rome become a barren wasteland from the conflicts between the Colonna and Orsini families; the Marquis of Marignan hadn't yet destroyed over a hundred villages in the republic of Siena alone; and although the Maremma was unhealthy, it hadn't yet turned into a toxic swamp. Notably, Flavio Blando, writing in 1450, mentions that Ostia was simply less thriving than in Roman times when it had about 50,000 residents, whereas today barely 30 people live there in total.
The Italian peasants were perhaps the most blest on the face of the earth: instead of living scattered about the country in solitary fashion, they lived in villages that were enclosed by walls as a protection for their harvests, animals, and farm implements; their houses—at any rate those that yet stand—prove that they lived in much more comfortable and beautiful surroundings than the ordinary townsman of our day. Further, there was a community of interests, and many people collected together in the fortified villages, with the result that little by little they attained to an importance never acquired by the boorish French peasants or the German serfs; they bore arms, they had a common treasury, they elected their own magistrates, and whenever they went out to fight, it was to save their common country.
The Italian peasants were arguably the luckiest people on earth: instead of being scattered across the countryside in isolation, they lived in villages surrounded by walls to protect their crops, animals, and tools. Their houses—at least the ones that still exist—show that they lived in much more comfortable and attractive conditions than the average townspeople today. There was also a sense of shared interests, and many individuals came together in these fortified villages, slowly gaining a significance that the rough French peasants or the German serfs never reached. They had weapons, maintained a communal treasury, elected their own leaders, and whenever they went out to fight, it was to defend their shared homeland.
Also commerce was no less flourishing than agriculture; Italy at this period was rich in industries—silk, wool, hemp, fur, alum, sulphur, bitumen; those products which the Italian soil could not bring forth were imported, from the Black Sea, from Egypt, from Spain, from France, and often returned whence they came, their worth doubled by labour and fine workmanship. The rich man brought his merchandise, the poor his industry: the one was sure of finding workmen, the other was sure of finding work.
Commerce was as prosperous as agriculture; Italy at this time was rich in industries like silk, wool, hemp, fur, alum, sulfur, and bitumen. Goods that couldn’t be made in Italy were imported from the Black Sea, Egypt, Spain, and France, often returning to their origins with added value from labor and craftsmanship. The wealthy supplied their products, while the poor provided their labor: the rich could always find workers, and the workers were sure to find jobs.
Art also was by no means behindhand: Dante, Giotto, Brunelleschi, and Donatello were dead, but Ariosto, Raphael, Bramante, and Michael Angelo were now living. Rome, Florence, and Naples had inherited the masterpieces of antiquity; and the manuscripts of AEschylus, Sophocles, and Euripides had come (thanks to the conquest of Mahomet II) to rejoin the statue of Xanthippus and the works of Phidias and Praxiteles. The principal sovereigns of Italy had come to understand, when they let their eyes dwell upon the fat harvests, the wealthy villages, the flourishing manufactories, and the marvellous churches, and then compared with them the poor and rude nations of fighting men who surrounded them on all sides, that some day or other they were destined to become for other countries what America was for Spain, a vast gold-mine for them to work. In consequence of this, a league offensive and defensive had been signed, about 1480, by Naples, Milan, Florence, and Ferrara, prepared to take a stand against enemies within or without, in Italy or outside. Ludovico Sforza, who was more than anyone else interested in maintaining this league, because he was nearest to France, whence the storm seemed to threaten, saw in the new pope's election means not only of strengthening the league, but of making its power and unity conspicuous in the sight of Europe.
Art was definitely thriving: Dante, Giotto, Brunelleschi, and Donatello were gone, but Ariosto, Raphael, Bramante, and Michelangelo were still around. Rome, Florence, and Naples had inherited the masterpieces of the past, and the manuscripts of Aeschylus, Sophocles, and Euripides had come (thanks to Mahomet II’s conquest) to join the statue of Xanthippus and the works of Phidias and Praxiteles. The main rulers of Italy had come to realize, as they looked at the abundant harvests, prosperous villages, booming factories, and stunning churches, and compared them to the poor and rough nations of warriors surrounding them, that one day they were destined to be for other countries what America was for Spain, a massive goldmine for them to exploit. As a result, a defensive and offensive alliance was formed around 1480 by Naples, Milan, Florence, and Ferrara, ready to stand against threats from within or outside, whether in Italy or beyond. Ludovico Sforza, who was particularly invested in keeping this alliance strong because he was closest to France, where danger seemed to loom, saw the new pope's election as a way not only to strengthen the alliance but also to make its power and unity known throughout Europe.
CHAPTER 4
On the occasion of each new election to the papacy, it is the custom for all the Christian States to send a solemn embassy to Rome, to renew their oath of allegiance to the Holy Father. Ludovico Sforza conceived the idea that the ambassadors of the four Powers should unite and make their entry into Rome on the same day, appointing one of their envoys, viz. the representative of the King of Naples, to be spokesman for all four. Unluckily, this plan did not agree with the magnificent projects of Piero dei Medici. That proud youth, who had been appointed ambassador of the Florentine Republic, had seen in the mission entrusted to him by his fellow-citizens the means of making a brilliant display of his own wealth. From the day of his nomination onwards, his palace was constantly filled with tailors, jewellers, and merchants of priceless stuffs; magnificent clothes had been made for him, embroidered with precious stones which he had selected from the family treasures. All his jewels, perhaps the richest in Italy, were distributed about the liveries of his pages, and one of them, his favourite, was to wear a collar of pearls valued by itself at 100,000 ducats, or almost, a million of our francs. In his party the Bishop of Arezzo, Gentile, who had once been Lorenzo dei Medici's tutor, was elected as second ambassador, and it was his duty to speak. Now Gentile, who had prepared his speech, counted on his eloquence to charm the ear quite as much as Piero counted on his riches to dazzle the eye. But the eloquence of Gentile would be lost completely if nobody was to speak but the ambassador of the King of Naples; and the magnificence of Piero dei Medici would never be noticed at all if he went to Rome mixed up with all the other ambassadors. These two important interests, compromised by the Duke of Milan's proposition, changed the whole face of Italy.
OnAt each new election of the pope, it's common for all Christian nations to send a formal group to Rome to reaffirm their loyalty to the Holy Father. Ludovico Sforza proposed that the ambassadors from the four powers should all arrive in Rome on the same day, with the representative of the King of Naples speaking for all four. Unfortunately, this plan conflicted with the grand ambitions of Piero dei Medici. That proud young man, appointed as the ambassador of the Florentine Republic, saw his role as a chance to showcase his own wealth. From the day he was named, his palace buzzed with tailors, jewelers, and merchants selling luxurious fabrics; he commissioned extravagant outfits adorned with precious stones he selected from his family's treasures. His jewels, arguably the most valuable in Italy, were displayed on the uniforms of his attendants, including one, his favorite, who wore a pearl necklace worth about 100,000 ducats, nearly a million francs today. Among his entourage, the Bishop of Arezzo, Gentile, who had once been Lorenzo dei Medici's tutor, was chosen as the second ambassador, tasked with speaking. Gentile had prepared his speech and depended on his eloquence to captivate the audience, just as Piero relied on his wealth to impress them visually. However, Gentile's eloquence would be overshadowed if only the ambassador of the King of Naples spoke, and Piero dei Medici's splendor would go unnoticed if he entered Rome with the other ambassadors. These two crucial interests, threatened by the Duke of Milan's suggestion, changed the entire situation in Italy.
Ludovico Sforza had already made sure of Ferdinand's promise to conform to the plan he had invented, when the old king, at the solicitation of Piero, suddenly drew back. Sforza found out how this change had come about, and learned that it was Piero's influence that had overmastered his own. He could not disentangle the real motives that had promised the change, and imagined there was some secret league against himself: he attributed the changed political programme to the death of Lorenzo dei Medici. But whatever its cause might be, it was evidently prejudicial to his own interests: Florence, Milan's old ally, was abandoning her for Naples. He resolved to throw a counter weight into the scales; so, betraying to Alexander the policy of Piero and Ferdinand, he proposed to form a defensive and offensive alliance with him and admit the republic of Venice; Duke Hercules III of Ferrara was also to be summoned to pronounce for one or other of the two leagues. Alexander VI, wounded by Ferdinand's treatment of himself, accepted Ludovico Sforza's proposition, and an Act of Confederation was signed on the 22nd of April, 1493, by which the new allies pledged themselves to set on foot for the maintenance of the public peace an army of 20,000 horse and 6,000 infantry.
Ludovico Sforza had already secured Ferdinand's commitment to follow the plan he devised when the old king, urged by Piero, suddenly backed out. Sforza found out how this change happened and realized that Piero's influence had overshadowed his own. He couldn’t understand the true reasons behind the shift and suspected there was some secret alliance against him: he connected the change in political strategy to the death of Lorenzo dei Medici. But no matter the reason, it clearly worked against his interests: Florence, Milan's former ally, was turning to Naples. He decided to counter this move; by revealing Piero and Ferdinand's strategy to Alexander, he proposed forming both a defensive and offensive alliance with him, and to include the Republic of Venice as well. Duke Hercules III of Ferrara would be asked to choose between the two alliances. Alexander VI, feeling insulted by Ferdinand's treatment, accepted Ludovico Sforza's proposal, and an Act of Confederation was signed on April 22, 1493, by which the new allies agreed to raise an army of 20,000 cavalry and 6,000 infantry to maintain public peace.
Ferdinand was frightened when he beheld the formation of this league; but he thought he could neutralise its effects by depriving Ludovico Sforza of his regency, which he had already kept beyond the proper time, though as yet he was not strictly an usurper. Although the young Galeazzo, his nephew, had reached the age of two-and-twenty, Ludovico Sforza none the less continued regent. Now Ferdinand definitely proposed to the Duke of Milan that he should resign the sovereign power into the hands of his nephew, on pain of being declared an usurper.
Ferdinand was nervous when he noticed this alliance coming together; still, he thought he could lessen its influence by getting rid of Ludovico Sforza as regent, a role he had occupied for too long, even though he wasn't officially considered an usurper yet. Despite the fact that the young Galeazzo, Ferdinand's nephew, had just turned twenty-two, Ludovico Sforza continued to be regent. Now, Ferdinand strongly suggested to the Duke of Milan that he should hand over his power to his nephew or risk being seen as an usurper.
This was a bold stroke; but there was a risk of inciting Ludovico Sforza to start one of those political plots that he was so familiar with, never recoiling from any situation, however dangerous it might be. This was exactly what happened: Sforza, uneasy about his duchy, resolved to threaten Ferdinand's kingdom.
This was a bold move, but it risked provoking Ludovico Sforza into starting one of his infamous political plans, as he never hesitated to get involved in any situation, regardless of the danger. That's exactly what happened: feeling uneasy about his duchy, Sforza decided to threaten Ferdinand's kingdom.
Nothing could be easier: he knew the warlike notions of Charles VIII, and the pretensions of the house of France to the kingdom of Naples. He sent two ambassadors to invite the young king to claim the rights of Anjou usurped by Aragon; and with a view to reconciling Charles to so distant and hazardous an expedition, offered him a free and friendly passage through his own States.
It couldn't be easier: he got Charles VIII's aggressive plans and France's ambitions for the kingdom of Naples. He sent two ambassadors to invite the young king to claim the Anjou territories that had been taken by Aragon; and to help persuade Charles to take on such a far-off and risky endeavor, he promised him safe and friendly passage through his own lands.
Such a proposition was welcome to Charles VIII, as we might suppose from our knowledge of his character; a magnificent prospect was opened to him as by an enchanter: what Ludovica Sforza was offering him was virtually the command of the Mediterranean, the protectorship of the whole of Italy; it was an open road, through Naples and Venice, that well might lead to the conquest of Turkey or the Holy Land, if he ever had the fancy to avenge the disasters of Nicapolis and Mansourah. So the proposition was accepted, and a secret alliance was signed, with Count Charles di Belgiojasa and the Count of Cajazza acting for Ludovica Sforza, and the Bishop of St. Malo and Seneschal de Beaucaire for Charles VIII. By this treaty it was agreed:—
This proposal appealed to Charles VIII, as we can see from what we know about him; it was like an incredible opportunity opening up in front of him: what Ludovica Sforza was offering was basically control of the Mediterranean and the leadership of all of Italy; it laid out a clear path, through Naples and Venice, that could potentially lead to the conquest of Turkey or the Holy Land, if he ever wanted to seek revenge for the defeats at Nicopolis and Mansourah. So, he accepted the proposal, and a secret alliance was formed, with Count Charles di Belgiojasa and the Count of Cajazza representing Ludovica Sforza, and the Bishop of St. Malo and Seneschal de Beaucaire representing Charles VIII. By this treaty, it was agreed:—
That the King of France should attempt the conquest of the kingdom of Naples;
The King of France should attempt to conquer the kingdom of Naples;
That the Duke of Milan should grant a passage to the King of France through his territories, and accompany him with five hundred lances;
The Duke of Milan should allow the King of France to pass through his territory and accompany him with five hundred knights;
That the Duke of Milan should permit the King of France to send out as many ships of war as he pleased from Genoa;
The Duke of Milan would permit the King of France to deploy as many warships as he desired from Genoa;
Lastly, that the Duke of Milan should lend the King of France 200,000 ducats, payable when he started.
Lastly, the Duke of Milan should lend the King of France 200,000 ducats, to be repaid when he starts.
On his side, Charles VIII agreed:—
On his part, Charles VIII agreed:
To defend the personal authority of Ludowico Sforza over the duchy of Milan against anyone who might attempt to turn him out;
To safeguard Ludowico Sforza's control over the duchy of Milan from anyone who might attempt to remove him;
To keep two hundred French lances always in readiness to help the house of Sforza, at Asti, a town belonging to the Duke of Orleans by the inheritance of his mother, Valentina Visconti;
To always have two hundred French lancers ready to support the Sforza family in Asti, a town that the Duke of Orleans owns through his mother, Valentina Visconti;
Lastly, to hand over to his ally the principality of Tarentum immediately after the conquest of Naples was effected.
Finally, to grant his ally the principality of Tarentum right after they conquered Naples.
This treaty was scarcely concluded when Charles VIII, who exaggerated its advantages, began to dream of freeing himself from every let or hindrance to the expedition. Precautions were necessary; for his relations with the great Powers were far from being what he could have wished.
This treaty was signed just in time when Charles VIII, who overvalued its advantages, began to think about removing any barriers to the expedition. Precautions were essential; his relationships with the major Powers were far from what he wanted.
Indeed, Henry VII had disembarked at Calais with a formidable army, and was threatening France with another invasion.
Henry VII had arrived in Calais with a strong army and was threatening France with another invasion.
Ferdinand and Isabella of Spain, if they had not assisted at the fall of the house of Anjou, had at any rate helped the Aragon party with men and money.
Ferdinand and Isabella of Spain, even if they hadn't participated in the downfall of the house of Anjou, at least backed the Aragon faction with troops and money.
Lastly, the war with the emperor acquired a fresh impetus when Charles VIII sent back Margaret of Burgundy to her father Maximilian, and contracted a marriage with Anne of Brittany.
The war with the emperor picked up steam when Charles VIII returned Margaret of Burgundy to her father, Maximilian, and set up a marriage with Anne of Brittany.
By the treaty of Etaples, on the 3rd of November, 1492, Henry VII cancelled the alliance with the King of the Romans, and pledged himself not to follow his conquests.
By the Treaty of Etaples, on November 3, 1492, Henry VII ended the alliance with the King of the Romans and agreed not to continue his conquests.
This cost Charles VIII 745,000 gold crowns and the expenses of the war with England.
This cost Charles VIII 745,000 gold crowns along with the expenses related to the war with England.
By the treaty of Barcelona, dated the 19th of January, 1493, Ferdinand the Catholic and Isabella agreed never to grant aid to their cousin, Ferdinand of Naples, and never to put obstacles in the way of the French king in Italy.
In the treaty of Barcelona, signed on January 19, 1493, Ferdinand the Catholic and Isabella agreed to never support their cousin, Ferdinand of Naples, and to never obstruct the French king's activities in Italy.
This cost Charles VIII Perpignan, Roussillon, and the Cerdagne, which had all been given to Louis XI as a hostage for the sum of 300,000 ducats by John of Aragon; but at the time agreed upon, Louis XI would not give them up for the money, for the old fox knew very well how important were these doors to the Pyrenees, and proposed in case of war to keep them shut.
This cost Charles VIII Perpignan, Roussillon, and the Cerdagne, which had all been given to Louis XI as a hostage for the sum of 300,000 ducats by John of Aragon. However, when the time came, Louis XI refused to give them up for the money, as the clever old fox realized how important these routes to the Pyrenees were and hinted that he would keep them closed in the event of war.
Lastly, by the treaty of Senlis, dated the 23rd of May, 1493, Maximilian granted a gracious pardon to France for the insult her king had offered him.
Finally, through the treaty of Senlis, dated May 23, 1493, Maximilian graciously forgave France for the offense caused by her king.
It cost Charles VIII the counties of Burgundy, Artois, Charalais, and the seigniory of Noyers, which had come to him as Margaret's dowry, and also the towns of Aire, Hesdin, and Bethune, which he promised to deliver up to Philip of Austria on the day he came of age.
Charles VIII lost the counties of Burgundy, Artois, Charalais, and the lordship of Noyers, which he got as part of Margaret's dowry, along with the towns of Aire, Hesdin, and Bethune, which he agreed to give to Philip of Austria on his coming-of-age day.
By dint of all these sacrifices the young king made peace with his neighbours, and could set on foot the enterprise that Ludavico Sforza had proposed. We have already explained that the project came into Sforza's mind when his plan about the deputation was refused, and that the refusal was due to Piero dei Medici's desire to make an exhibition of his magnificent jewels, and Gentile's desire to make his speech.
Through all these sacrifices, the young king established peace with his neighbors and was able to start the project that Ludavico Sforza had proposed. We've already mentioned that the idea came to Sforza when his suggestion for a delegation was rejected because Piero dei Medici wanted to flaunt his beautiful jewels, and Gentile was eager to give his speech.
Thus the vanity of a tutor and the pride of his scholar together combined to agitate the civilized world from the Gulf of Tarentum to the Pyrenees.
The vanity of a tutor and the pride of his student combined to stir the civilized world from the Gulf of Tarentum to the Pyrenees.
Alexander VI was in the very centre of the impending earthquake, and before Italy had any idea that the earliest shocks were at hand he had profited by the perturbed preoccupation of other people to give the lie to that famous speech we have reported. He created cardinal John Borgia, a nephew, who during the last pontificate had been elected Archbishop of Montreal and Governor of Rome. This promotion caused no discontent, because of John's antecedents; and Alexander, encouraged by the success of this, promised to Caesar Borgia the archbishopric of Valencia, a benefice he had himself enjoyed before his elevation to the papacy. But here the difficulty arose on the side of the recipient. The young man, full-blooded, with all the vices and natural instincts of a captain of condottieri, had very great trouble in assuming even the appearance of a Churchman's virtue; but as he knew from his own father's mouth that the highest secular dignities were reserved for his elder brother, he decided to take what he could get, for fear of getting nothing; but his hatred for Francesco grew stronger, for from henceforth he was doubly his rival, both in love and ambition.
Alexander VI was right in the middle of the upcoming turmoil, and before Italy even realized the first signs were approaching, he took advantage of everyone else's worried distractions to contradict that famous speech we've mentioned. He made his nephew, Cardinal John Borgia, a cardinal—John had previously been named Archbishop of Montreal and Governor of Rome during the last papacy. This promotion didn’t cause any issues because of John's background. Encouraged by this success, Alexander promised Caesar Borgia the archbishopric of Valencia, a position he had held before becoming pope. However, a problem arose with Caesar. The young man, filled with all the vices and instincts typical of a mercenary leader, struggled to even pretend to have the virtues of a clergyman. Knowing from his father’s words that the highest secular positions were meant for his older brother, he decided to take what he could get, fearing he might end up with nothing. This only fueled his hatred for Francesco, as he now viewed him as a rival in both love and ambition.
Suddenly Alexander beheld the old King Ferdinand returning to his side, and at the very moment when he least expected it. The pope was too clever a politician to accept a reconciliation without finding out the cause of it; he soon learned what plots were hatching at the French court against the kingdom of Naples, and the whole situation was explained.
Suddenly, Alexander spotted the old King Ferdinand returning to him at the moment he least expected. The pope was too clever a politician to accept a reconciliation without understanding the reasons behind it; he quickly learned about the plots being devised at the French court against the kingdom of Naples, and everything made sense.
Now it was his turn to impose conditions.
Now it was his turn to establish the terms.
He demanded the completion of a marriage between Goffreda, his third son, and Dada Sancia, Alfonso's illegitimate daughter.
He insisted on finalizing the marriage between Goffreda, his third son, and Dada Sancia, Alfonso's illegitimate daughter.
He demanded that she should bring her husband as dowry the principality of Squillace and the county of Cariati, with an income of 10,000 ducats and the office of protonotary, one of the seven great crown offices which are independent of royal control.
He insisted that she bring her husband the principality of Squillace and the county of Cariati as a dowry, along with an income of 10,000 ducats and the position of protonotary, one of the seven major crown offices that operate independently of royal authority.
He demanded for his eldest son, whom Ferdinand the Catholic had just made Duke of Gandia, the principality of Tricarico, the counties of Chiaramonte, Lauria, and Carinola, an income of 12,000 ducats, and the first of the seven great offices which should fall vacant.
He requested his oldest son, who Ferdinand the Catholic had just appointed Duke of Gandia, the principality of Tricarico, the counties of Chiaramonte, Lauria, and Carinola, an annual income of 12,000 ducats, and the first of the seven major offices that became available.
He demanded that Virginio Orsini, his ambassador at the Neapolitan court, should be given a third great office, viz. that of Constable, the most important of them all.
He insisted that Virginio Orsini, his ambassador at the Neapolitan court, be given a third major position, specifically that of Constable, which was the most important of all.
Lastly, he demanded that Giuliano della Rovere, one of the five cardinals who had opposed his election and was now taking refuge at Ostia, where the oak whence he took his name and bearings is still to be seen carved on all the walls, should be driven out of that town, and the town itself given over to him.
Finally, he demanded that Giuliano della Rovere, one of the five cardinals who had opposed his election and was now in hiding in Ostia, where the oak tree he was named after can still be seen carved on all the walls, be kicked out of the town, and that the town itself should be given to him.
In exchange, he merely pledged himself never to withdraw from the house of Aragon the investiture of the kingdom of Naples accorded by his predecessors. Ferdinand was paying somewhat dearly for a simple promise; but on the keeping of this promise the legitimacy of his power wholly depended. For the kingdom of Naples was a fief of the Holy See; and to the pope alone belonged the right of pronouncing on the justice of each competitor's pretensions; the continuance of this investiture was therefore of the highest conceivable importance to Aragon just at the time when Anjou was rising up with an army at her back to dispossess her.
In exchange, he merely agreed to never take the kingdom of Naples away from the House of Aragon, a commitment made by his predecessors. Ferdinand was paying a steep price for what seemed like a simple promise; however, the legitimacy of his power depended entirely on honoring it. The kingdom of Naples was under the authority of the Holy See, and only the pope had the power to determine the validity of each rival's claims. Therefore, keeping this promise was crucial for Aragon, especially with Anjou gathering an army to seize it.
For a year after he mounted the papal throne, Alexander VI had made great strides, as we see, in the extension of his temporal power. In his own hands he held, to be sure, only the least in size of the Italian territories; but by the marriage of his daughter Lucrezia with the lord of Pesaro he was stretching out one hand as far as Venice, while by the marriage of the Prince of Squillace with Dona Sancia, and the territories conceded to the Duke of Sandia, he was touching with the other hand the boundary of Calabria.
For a year after he became pope, Alexander VI made considerable strides in boosting his political power. Although he only had control over the smallest Italian territories, he was extending his influence toward Venice by marrying off his daughter Lucrezia to the lord of Pesaro. At the same time, through the marriage of the Prince of Squillace to Dona Sancia and the lands awarded to the Duke of Sandia, he was also expanding his reach toward the border of Calabria.
When this treaty, so advantageous for himself, was duly signed, he made Caesar Cardinal of Santa Maria Novella, for Caesar was always complaining of being left out in the distribution of his father's favours.
Once this treaty, which was very beneficial for him, was officially signed, he appointed Caesar as Cardinal of Santa Maria Novella, since Caesar was always complaining about being left out of his father's favors.
Only, as there was as yet no precedent in Church history for a bastard's donning the scarlet, the pope hunted up four false witnesses who declared that Caesar was the son of Count Ferdinand of Castile; who was, as we know, that valuable person Don Manuel Melchior, and who played the father's part with just as much solemnity as he had played the husband's.
However, since there was no precedent in Church history for an illegitimate child wearing the scarlet, the pope found four false witnesses who claimed that Caesar was the son of Count Ferdinand of Castile; who, as we know, was that significant figure Don Manuel Melchior, and he took on the father's role with just as much seriousness as he had taken on the husband's.
The wedding of the two bastards was most splendid, rich with the double pomp of Church and King. As the pope had settled that the young bridal pair should live near him, Caesar Borgia, the new cardinal, undertook to manage the ceremony of their entry into Rome and the reception, and Lucrezia, who enjoyed at her father's side an amount of favour hitherto unheard of at the papal court, desired on her part to contribute all the splendour she had it in her power to add. He therefore went to receive the young people with a stately and magnificent escort of lords and cardinals, while she awaited them attended by the loveliest and noblest ladies of Rome, in one of the halls of the Vatican. A throne was there prepared for the pope, and at his feet were cushions for Lucrezia and Dona Sancia. "Thus," writes Tommaso Tommasi, "by the look of the assembly and the sort of conversation that went on for hours, you would suppose you were present at some magnificent and voluptuous royal audience of ancient Assyria, rather than at the severe consistory of a Roman pontiff, whose solemn duty it is to exhibit in every act the sanctity of the name he bears. But," continues the same historian, "if the Eve of Pentecost was spent in such worthy functions, the celebrations of the coming of the Holy Ghost on the following day were no less decorous and becoming to the spirit of the Church; for thus writes the master of the ceremonies in his journal:
The wedding of the two outsiders was truly spectacular, filled with the grandeur of both the Church and the King. Since the pope had arranged for the young couple to live nearby, Caesar Borgia, the new cardinal, took charge of organizing their arrival in Rome and the reception. Lucrezia, who had gained unprecedented favor at the papal court alongside her father, wanted to add as much splendor as possible. He went to greet the young couple with an impressive and lavish procession of lords and cardinals, while she waited for them with the most beautiful and noble ladies of Rome in one of the halls of the Vatican. A throne was set up for the pope, with cushions for Lucrezia and Dona Sancia at his feet. "Thus," writes Tommaso Tommasi, "from the look of the gathering and the kind of conversation that lasted for hours, you would think you were witnessing some grand and lavish royal audience of ancient Assyria, rather than the formal consistory of a Roman pontiff, whose serious duty is to display the sanctity of his name in every action. But," the same historian continues, "if the Eve of Pentecost was observed with such worthy activities, the celebrations for the coming of the Holy Spirit the next day were just as proper and fitting to the spirit of the Church; as noted by the master of ceremonies in his journal:
"'The pope made his entry into the Church of the Holy Apostles, and beside him on the marble steps of the pulpit where the canons of St. Peter are wont to chant the Epistle and Gospel, sat Lucrezia his daughter and Sancia his son's wife: round about them, a disgrace to the Church and a public scandal, were grouped a number of other Roman ladies far more fit to dwell in Messalina's city than in St. Peter's.'"
The pope entered the Church of the Holy Apostles, and beside him on the marble steps of the pulpit, where the canons of St. Peter typically chant the Epistle and Gospel, sat his daughter Lucrezia and his son’s wife Sancia. Surrounding them were several other Roman ladies, a disgrace to the Church and a public scandal, who seemed much more fitting for Messalina's city than St. Peter's.
So at Rome and Naples did men slumber while ruin was at hand; so did they waste their time and squander their money in a vain display of pride; and this was going on while the French, thoroughly alive, were busy laying hands upon the torches with which they would presently set Italy on fire.
In Rome and Naples, people were asleep while disaster was approaching; they squandered their time and spent their money on empty shows of pride; all of this was happening while the French, wide awake, were preparing to take the torches they would soon use to set Italy on fire.
Indeed, the designs of Charles VIII for conquest were no longer for anybody a matter of doubt. The young king had sent an embassy to the various Italian States, composed of Perrone dei Baschi, Brigonnet, d'Aubigny, and the president of the Provencal Parliament. The mission of this embassy was to demand from the Italian princes their co-operation in recovering the rights of the crown of Naples for the house of Anjou.
It was obvious to everyone that Charles VIII's plans for conquest were certain. The young king had sent a delegation to various Italian States, consisting of Perrone dei Baschi, Brigonnet, d'Aubigny, and the president of the Provencal Parliament. The goal of this delegation was to seek the Italian princes' backing in reclaiming the crown of Naples for the house of Anjou.
The embassy first approached the Venetians, demanding aid and counsel for the king their master. But the Venetians, faithful to their political tradition, which had gained for them the sobriquet of "the Jews of Christendom," replied that they were not in a position to give any aid to the young king, so long as they had to keep ceaselessly on guard against the Turks; that, as to advice, it would be too great a presumption in them to give advice to a prince who was surrounded by such experienced generals and such able ministers.
The embassy initially contacted the Venetians for assistance and guidance for their king. However, true to their political tradition that earned them the nickname "the Jews of Christendom," the Venetians replied that they couldn't provide any support to the young king since they were always on alert against the Turks. They further stated that it would be too bold of them to advise a prince who was surrounded by highly experienced generals and competent ministers.
Perrone dei Baschi, when he found he could get no other answer, next made for Florence. Piero dei Medici received him at a grand council, for he summoned on this occasion not only the seventy, but also the gonfalonieri who had sat for the last thirty-four years in the Signoria. The French ambassador put forward his proposal, that the republic should permit their army to pass through her States, and pledge herself in that case to supply for ready money all the necessary victual and fodder. The magnificent republic replied that if Charles VIII had been marching against the Turks instead of against Ferdinand, she would be only too ready to grant everything he wished; but being bound to the house of Aragon by a treaty, she could not betray her ally by yielding to the demands of the King of France.
Perrone dei Baschi, realizing he wasn't getting any other response, next headed to Florence. Piero dei Medici welcomed him at a large council, which included not only the seventy but also the gonfalonieri who had served in the Signoria for the past thirty-four years. The French ambassador presented his proposal: that the republic should allow their army to pass through its territory and, in exchange, pledge to provide all necessary food and supplies for cash. The magnificent republic responded that if Charles VIII had been marching against the Turks instead of Ferdinand, they would gladly agree to everything he wanted; however, being bound by a treaty to the House of Aragon, they couldn't betray their ally by succumbing to the King of France's demands.
The ambassadors next turned their steps to Siena. The poor little republic, terrified by the honour of being considered at all, replied that it was her desire to preserve a strict neutrality, that she was too weak to declare beforehand either for or against such mighty rivals, for she would naturally be obliged to join the stronger party. Furnished with this reply, which had at least the merit of frankness, the French envoys proceeded to Rome, and were conducted into the pope's presence, where they demanded the investiture of the kingdom of Naples for their king.
The ambassadors then went to Siena. The small republic, incredibly honored to be considered at all, replied that it wanted to stay strictly neutral, explaining that it was too weak to commit to either side against such powerful rivals, knowing it would have to side with the stronger group. With this honest response, the French envoys continued on to Rome, where they were presented to the pope and asked for the investiture of the kingdom of Naples for their king.
Alexander VI replied that, as his predecessors had granted this investiture to the house of Aragon, he could not take it away, unless it were first established that the house of Anjou had a better claim than the house that was to be dispossessed. Then he represented to Perrone dei Baschi that, as Naples was a fief of the Holy See, to the pope alone the choice of her sovereign properly belonged, and that in consequence to attack the reigning sovereign was to attack the Church itself.
Alexander VI replied that, since his predecessors had granted this authority to the House of Aragon, he couldn't revoke it unless it was first shown that the House of Anjou had a stronger claim than the one that would be displaced. He then explained to Perrone dei Baschi that, since Naples was a vassal of the Holy See, the choice of its ruler rightfully belonged to the pope alone, and thus to challenge the current ruler was to challenge the Church itself.
The result of the embassy, we see, was not very promising for Charles VIII; so he resolved to rely on his ally Ludovico Sforza alone, and to relegate all other questions to the fortunes of war.
The results of the embassy were not very promising for Charles VIII, so he decided to rely entirely on his ally Ludovico Sforza and leave all other matters to chance in the war.
A piece of news that reached him about this time strengthened him in this resolution: this was the death of Ferdinand. The old king had caught a severe cold and cough on his return from the hunting field, and in two days he was at his last gasp. On the 25th of January, 1494, he passed away, at the age of seventy, after a thirty-six years' reign, leaving the throne to his elder son, Alfonso, who was immediately chosen as his successor.
A piece of news that reached him at this time strengthened his decision: Ferdinand had died. The old king had caught a severe cold and cough on his way back from a hunt, and within two days, he was on the brink of death. On January 25, 1494, he passed away at the age of seventy after a reign of thirty-six years, leaving the throne to his older son, Alfonso, who was promptly chosen as his successor.
Ferdinand never belied his title of "the happy ruler." His death occurred at the very moment when the fortune of his family was changing.
Ferdinand never lived up to his title of "the happy ruler." He died right as his family's luck was changing.
The new king, Alfonso, was not a novice in arms: he had already fought successfully against Florence and Venice, and had driven the Turks out of Otranto; besides, he had the name of being as cunning as his father in the tortuous game of politics so much in vogue at the Italian courts. He did not despair of counting among his allies the very enemy he was at war with when Charles VIII first put forward his pretensions, we mean Bajazet II. So he despatched to Bajazet one of his confidential ministers, Camillo Pandone, to give the Turkish emperor to understand that the expedition to Italy was to the King of France nothing but a blind for approaching the scene of Mahomedan conquests, and that if Charles VIII were once at the Adriatic it would only take him a day or two to get across and attack Macedonia; from there he could easily go by land to Constantinople. Consequently he suggested that Bajazet for the maintenance of their common interests should supply six thousand horse and six thousand infantry; he himself would furnish their pay so long as they were in Italy. It was settled that Pandone should be joined at Tarentum by Giorgia Bucciarda, Alexander VI's envoy, who was commissioned by the pope to engage the Turks to help him against the Christians. But while he was waiting for Bajazet's reply, which might involve a delay of several months, Alfonso requested that a meeting might take place between Piero dei Medici, the pope, and himself, to take counsel together about important affairs. This meeting was arranged at Vicovaro, near Tivoli, and the three interested parties duly met on the appointed day.
The new king, Alfonso, was experienced in battle: he had already fought successfully against Florence and Venice and had driven the Turks out of Otranto. He was also known to be as shrewd as his father in the complex political landscape of the Italian courts. He still hoped to count among his allies the very enemy he was at war with when Charles VIII first made his claims, specifically Bajazet II. So, he sent one of his trusted ministers, Camillo Pandone, to inform the Turkish emperor that the expedition to Italy was merely a cover for pursuing a scene of Muslim conquests and that if Charles VIII reached the Adriatic, it would only take him a day or two to cross over and attack Macedonia; from there, he could easily travel by land to Constantinople. Therefore, he suggested that Bajazet, for the sake of their mutual interests, should provide six thousand cavalry and six thousand infantry; he would cover their pay while they were in Italy. It was decided that Pandone would meet Giorgia Bucciarda, Alexander VI's envoy who had been sent by the pope to gain the Turks' support against the Christians, in Tarentum. However, while he awaited Bajazet's reply, which could take several months, Alfonso requested a meeting between Piero dei Medici, the pope, and himself to discuss important matters. This meeting was arranged in Vicovaro, near Tivoli, and the three key parties met as planned on the appointed day.
The intention of Alfonso, who before leaving Naples had settled the disposition of his naval forces, and given his brother Frederic the command of a fleet that consisted of thirty-six galleys, eighteen large and twelve small vessels, with injunctions to wait at Livorno and keep a watch on the fleet Charles VIII was getting ready at the port of Genoa, was above all things to check with the aid of his allies the progress of operations on land. Without counting the contingent he expected his allies to furnish, he had at his immediate disposal a hundred squadrons of heavy cavalry, twenty men in each, and three thousand bowmen and light horse. He proposed, therefore, to advance at once into Lombardy, to get up a revolution in favour of his nephew Galeazzo, and to drive Ludovico Sforza out of Milan before he could get help from France; so that Charles VIII, at the very time of crossing the Alps, would find an enemy to fight instead of a friend who had promised him a safe passage, men, and money.
Alfonso organized his naval forces before leaving Naples and put his brother Frederic in charge of a fleet of thirty-six galleys, eighteen large ships, and twelve small vessels. He told Frederic to stay in Livorno and keep an eye on the fleet that Charles VIII was getting ready in the port of Genoa. Alfonso's main goal was to use his allies to delay ground operations. Besides the support he anticipated from his allies, he had at his disposal one hundred squadrons of heavy cavalry, each with twenty men, along with three thousand archers and light cavalry. His plan was to move quickly into Lombardy, spark a revolution for his nephew Galeazzo, and force Ludovico Sforza out of Milan before he could get assistance from France. This way, Charles VIII would end up facing an enemy instead of the ally who had promised him safe passage, troops, and resources when crossing the Alps.
This was the scheme of a great politician and a bold commander; but as everybody had come in pursuit of his own interests, regardless of the common agreemnent this plan was very coldly received by Piero dei Medici, who was afraid lest in the war he should play only the same poor part he had been threatened with in the affair of the embassy; by Alexander VI it was rejected, because he reckoned on employing the troops of Alfonso an his own account. He reminded the King of Naples of one of the conditions of the investiture he had promised him, viz. that he should drive out the Cardinal Giuliano della Rovere from the town of Ostia, and give up the town to him, according to the stipulation already agreed upon. Besides, the advantages that had accrued to Virginio Orsini, Alexander's favourite, from his embassy to Naples had brought upon him the ill-will of Prospero and Fabrizio Colonna, who owned nearly all the villages round about Rome. Now the pope could not endure to live in the midst of such powerful enemies, and the most important matter was to deliver him from all of them, seeing that it was really of moment that he should be at peace who was the head and soul of the league whereof the others were only the body and limbs.
This was the plan of a prominent politician and a daring commander; however, since everyone was prioritizing their own interests and disregarding the common agreement, this plan was met with indifference by Piero dei Medici, who was afraid that in the war he would only end up playing the same weak role he had faced in the embassy issue. Alexander VI rejected it because he wanted to use Alfonso's troops for his own agenda. He reminded the King of Naples about one of the conditions of the investiture he had promised him, specifically that he should expel Cardinal Giuliano della Rovere from the town of Ostia and hand it over to him, as they had previously agreed. Furthermore, the advantages that Virginio Orsini, Alexander's favorite, gained from his embassy to Naples had sparked hostility with Prospero and Fabrizio Colonna, who controlled nearly all the villages around Rome. The pope couldn’t bear living among such powerful enemies, and the most pressing issue was to free himself from all of them, as it was vital for the head and soul of the league to be at peace, while the others were just the body and limbs.
Although Alfonso had clearly seen through the motives of Piero's coldness, and Alexander had not even given him the trouble of seeking his, he was none the less obliged to bow to the will of his allies, leaving the one to defend the Apennines against the French, and helping the other to shake himself free of his neighbours in the Romagna. Consequently he, pressed on the siege of Ostia, and added to Virginio's forces, which already amounted to two hundred men of the papal army, a body of his own light horse; this little army was to be stationed round about Rome, and was to enforce obedience from the Colonnas. The rest of his troops Alfonso divided into two parties: one he left in the hands of his son Ferdinand, with orders to scour the Romagna and worry, the petty princes into levying and supporting the contingent they had promised, while with the other he himself defended the defiles of the Abruzzi.
Even though Alfonso clearly understood Piero's reasons for being distant, and Alexander didn't even bother to share his thoughts, he still had to respect his allies' wishes. This meant leaving one ally to defend the Apennines against the French while helping the other to free himself from his neighbors in the Romagna. As a result, he focused on the siege of Ostia and added his own light cavalry to Virginio's forces, which already included two hundred men from the papal army. This small army was to be stationed around Rome to enforce obedience from the Colonnas. Alfonso split the rest of his troops into two groups: he left one with his son Ferdinand, instructing him to patrol the Romagna and pressure the local princes into providing the support they had promised, while he took the other group to defend the mountain passes of the Abruzzi.
On the 23rd of April, at three o'clock in the morning, Alexander VI was freed from the first and fiercest of his foes; Giuliano della Rovere, seeing the impossibility of holding out any longer against Alfonso's troops, embarked on a brigantine which was to carry him to Savona.
On April 23rd, at 3 AM, Alexander VI was relieved from his first and most formidable enemy; Giuliano della Rovere, realizing he could no longer withstand Alfonso's forces, got on a small boat that would take him to Savona.
From that day forward Virginio Orsini began that famous partisan warfare which reduced the country about Rome to the most pathetic desolation the world has ever seen. During all this time Charles VIII was at Lyons, not only uncertain as to the route he ought to take for getting into Italy, but even beginning to reflect a little on the chances and risks of such an expedition. He had found no sympathy anywhere except with Ludovico Sforza; so it appeared not unlikely that he would have to fight not the kingdom of Naples alone, but the whole of Italy to boot. In his preparations for war he had spent almost all the money at his disposal; the Lady of Beaujeu and the Duke of Bourbon both condemned his enterprise; Briconnet, who had advised it, did not venture to support it now; at last Charles, more irresolute than ever, had recalled several regiments that had actually started, when Cardinal Giuliano della Rovere, driven out of Italy by the pope, arrived at Lyons, and presented himself before the king.
From that day on, Virginio Orsini launched that infamous guerrilla warfare that turned the area around Rome into one of the grimmest ruins the world has ever seen. Meanwhile, Charles VIII was in Lyons, unsure about which route to take to enter Italy and starting to weigh the risks and rewards of such a journey. He found no support anywhere except from Ludovico Sforza, which suggested he would have to confront not just the kingdom of Naples, but all of Italy as well. In his preparations for war, he had spent nearly all the money he had; both the Lady of Beaujeu and the Duke of Bourbon criticized his plan; Briconnet, who had initially advised it, felt too afraid to support it now. Ultimately, Charles, more uncertain than ever, had recalled several regiments that had already set out when Cardinal Giuliano della Rovere, expelled from Italy by the pope, arrived in Lyons and presented himself to the king.
The cardinal, full of hatred, full of hope, hastened to Charles, and found him on the point of abandoning that enterprise on which, as Alexander's enemy, della Rovere rested his whole expectation of vengeance. He informed Charles of the quarrelling among his enemies; he showed him that each of them was seeking his own ends—Piero dei Medici the gratification of his pride, the pope the aggrandisement of his house. He pointed out that armed fleets were in the ports of Villefranche, Marseilles, and Genoa, and that these armaments would be lost; he reminded him that he had sent Pierre d'Urfe, his grand equerry, on in advance, to have splendid accommodation prepared in the Spinola and Doria palaces. Lastly, he urged that ridicule and disgrace would fall on him from every side if he renounced an enterprise so loudly vaunted beforehand, for whose successful execution, moreover, he had been obliged to sign three treaties of peace that were all vexatious enough, viz. with Henry VII, with Maximilian, and with Ferdinand the Catholic. Giuliano della Rovere had exercised true insight in probing the vanity of the young king, and Charles did not hesitate for a single moment. He ordered his cousin, the Duke of Orleans (who later on became Louis XII) to take command of the French fleet and bring it to Genoa; he despatched a courier to Antoine de Bessay, Baron de Tricastel, bidding him take to Asti the 2000 Swiss foot-soldiers he had levied in the cantons; lastly, he started himself from Vienne, in Dauphine, on the 23rd of August, 1494, crossed the Alps by Mont Genevre, without encountering a single body of troops to dispute his passage, descended into Piedmont and Monferrato, both just then governed by women regents, the sovereigns of both principalities being children, Charles John Aime and William John, aged respectively six and eight.
The cardinal, filled with anger and hope, rushed to Charles, who was about to abandon the mission that della Rovere was counting on for revenge against Alexander's enemies. He informed Charles about the conflicts among his opponents; he pointed out that each one was chasing their own goals—Piero dei Medici was trying to fulfill his pride, and the pope wanted to enhance his family's status. He mentioned that armed fleets were in the ports of Villefranche, Marseilles, and Genoa, and that these resources would be wasted. He reminded Charles that he had sent Pierre d'Urfe, his chief equerry, ahead to prepare impressive accommodations at the Spinola and Doria palaces. Finally, he stressed that Charles would face mockery and disgrace from everyone if he backed out of a venture he had already bragged about, for which he had even signed three troublesome treaties of peace, namely with Henry VII, Maximilian, and Ferdinand the Catholic. Giuliano della Rovere had cleverly tapped into the young king's vanity, and Charles didn't hesitate at all. He ordered his cousin, the Duke of Orleans (who would later become Louis XII), to take charge of the French fleet and bring it to Genoa; he sent a courier to Antoine de Bessay, Baron de Tricastel, instructing him to take the 2,000 Swiss foot-soldiers he had recruited to Asti; and he himself left Vienne, in Dauphine, on August 23, 1494, crossed the Alps by Mont Genevre without encountering any troops along the way, and then entered Piedmont and Monferrato, both at that time ruled by female regents, as the sovereigns of both principalities were young boys, Charles John Aime and William John, who were six and eight years old, respectively.
The two regents appeared before Charles VIII, one at Turin, one at Casale, each at the head of a numerous and brilliant court, and both glittering with jewels and precious stones. Charles, although he quite well knew that for all these friendly demonstrations they were both bound by treaty to his enemy, Alfonso of Naples, treated them all the same with the greatest politeness, and when they made protestations of friendship, asked them to let him have a proof of it, suggesting that they should lend him the diamonds they were covered with. The two regents could do no less than obey the invitation which was really a command. They took off necklaces, rings, and earrings. Charles VIII gave them a receipt accurately drawn up, and pledged the jewels for 20,000 ducats. Then, enriched by this money, he resumed his journey and made his way towards Asti. The Duke of Orleans held the sovereignty of Asti, as we said before, and hither came to meet Charles both Ludovico Sforza and his father-in-law, Hercules d'Este, Duke of Ferrara. They brought with them not only the promised troops and money, but also a court composed of the loveliest women in Italy.
The two regents came before Charles VIII, one in Turin and the other in Casale, each leading a grand court, both decked out in jewels and precious stones. Charles, well aware that despite their friendly demeanor they were both bound by treaty to his rival, Alfonso of Naples, treated them with great politeness. When they offered their friendship, he asked for a tangible proof, suggesting they lend him the diamonds they were wearing. The two regents had no choice but to go along with what was essentially a demand. They took off their necklaces, rings, and earrings. Charles VIII gave them a detailed receipt and pledged the jewels for 20,000 ducats. With this money secured, he continued his journey to Asti. The Duke of Orleans governed Asti, as mentioned earlier, and there to welcome Charles were both Ludovico Sforza and his father-in-law, Hercules d'Este, Duke of Ferrara. They brought not only the promised troops and money but also a court filled with the most beautiful women in Italy.
The balls, fetes, and tourneys began with a magnificence surpassing anything that Italy had ever seen before. But suddenly they were interrupted by the king's illness. This was the first example in Italy of the disease brought by Christopher Columbus from the New World, and was called by Italians the French, by Frenchmen the Italian disease. The probability is that some of Columbus's crew who were at Genoa or thereabouts had already brought over this strange and cruel complaint that counter balanced the gains of the American gold-mines.
The balls, parties, and tournaments began with a magnificence that Italy had never experienced before. But they were abruptly halted by the king's illness. This was the first instance in Italy of the disease brought by Christopher Columbus from the New World, which Italians called the French disease, while the French referred to it as the Italian disease. It's likely that some of Columbus's crew who were in Genoa or nearby had already brought this bizarre and severe illness that overshadowed the wealth from the American gold mines.
The king's indisposition, however, did not prove so grave as was at first supposed. He was cured by the end of a few weeks, and proceeded on his way towards Pavia, where the young Duke John Galeazzo lay dying. He and the King of France were first cousins, sons of two sisters of the house of Savoy. So Charles VIII was obliged to see him, and went to visit him in the castle where he lived more like prisoner than lord. He found him half reclining on a couch, pale and emaciated, some said in consequence of luxurious living, others from the effects of a slow but deadly poison. But whether or not the poor young man was desirous of pouring out a complaint to Charles, he did not dare say a word; for his uncle, Ludovico Sforza, never left the King of France for an instant. But at the very moment when Charles VIII was getting up to go, the door opened, and a young woman appeared and threw herself at the king's feet; she was the wife of the unlucky John Galeazzo, and came to entreat his cousin to do nothing against her father Alfonso, nor against her brother Ferdinand. At sight of her; Sforza scowled with an anxious and threatening aspect, for he knew not what impression might be produced on his ally by this scene. But he was soon reassured; for Charles replied that he had advanced too far to draw back now, and that the glory of his name was at stake as well as the interests of his kingdom, and that these two motives were far too important to be sacrificed to any sentiment of pity he might feel, however real and deep it might be and was. The poor young woman, who had based her last hope an this appeal, then rose from her knees and threw herself sobbing into her husband's arms. Charles VIII and Ludavico Sforza, took their leave: John Galeazzo was doomed.
The king's illness turned out to be less serious than initially expected. He recovered after a few weeks and continued his journey to Pavia, where young Duke John Galeazzo was dying. He and the King of France were first cousins, both sons of two sisters from the house of Savoy. So, Charles VIII had to visit him in the castle where he was living more like a prisoner than a lord. He found him half-reclining on a couch, pale and thin; some said it was due to a life of excess, while others believed it was from a slow but deadly poison. Whether the poor young man wanted to complain to Charles or not, he didn’t dare say a word because his uncle, Ludovico Sforza, never left the King of France's side. Just as Charles VIII was about to get up to leave, the door opened, and a young woman appeared, falling at the king's feet. She was the wife of the unfortunate John Galeazzo and came to plead with her cousin not to take any action against her father Alfonso or her brother Ferdinand. Upon seeing her, Sforza frowned anxiously, unsure how this scene might affect his ally. But he was soon reassured; Charles replied that he had already gone too far to turn back and that his honor was at stake, along with the interests of his kingdom—both reasons were too important to sacrifice for any pity he might feel, no matter how genuine and deep it was. The poor young woman, who had put her last hope on this appeal, then got up from her knees and collapsed sobbing into her husband's arms. Charles VIII and Ludovico Sforza took their leave: John Galeazzo was doomed.
Two days after, Charles VIII left for Florence, accompanied by his ally; but scarcely had they reached Parma when a messenger caught them up, and announced to Ludovico that his nephew was just dead: Ludovico at once begged Charles to excuse his leaving him to finish the journey alone; the interests which called him back to Milan were so important, he said, that he could not under the circumstances stay away a single day longer. As a fact he had to make sure of succeeding the man he had assassinated.
Two days later, Charles VIII left for Florence with his ally. However, as soon as they reached Parma, a messenger overtook them and told Ludovico that his nephew had just died. Ludovico quickly asked Charles to excuse him for continuing the journey alone, explaining that the issues requiring his return to Milan were so urgent that he couldn't stay away for even one more day. In truth, he needed to make sure he succeeded the man he had killed.
But Charles VIII continued his road not without some uneasiness. The sight of the young prince on his deathbed had moved him deeply, for at the bottom of his heart he was convinced that Ludovico Sforza was his murderer; and a murderer might very well be a traitor. He was going forward into an unfamiliar country, with a declared enemy in front of him and a doubtful friend behind: he was now at the entrance to the mountains, and as his army had no store of provisions and only lived from hand to mouth, a forced delay, however short, would mean famine. In front of him was Fivizzano, nothing, it is true, but a village surrounded by walls, but beyond Fivizzano lay Sarzano and Pietra Santa, both of them considered impregnable fortresses; worse than this, they were coming into a part of the country that was especially unhealthy in October, had no natural product except oil, and even procured its own corn from neighbouring provinces; it was plain that a whole army might perish there in a few days either from scarcity of food or from the unwholesome air, both of which were more disastrous than the impediments offered at every step by the nature of the ground. The situation was grave; but the pride of Piero dei Medici came once more to the rescue of the fortunes of Charles VIII.
Charles VIII continued on his journey, feeling uneasy. Seeing the young prince on his deathbed had really affected him because, deep down, he believed Ludovico Sforza was responsible for the prince's death; and a murderer could easily be a traitor. He was heading into unfamiliar territory, facing a declared enemy ahead and an uncertain ally behind him. Now, at the foothills of the mountains, his army had no food supplies and was barely surviving day by day; any forced delay, no matter how short, would lead to starvation. In front of him was Fivizzano, just a walled village, but beyond it lay Sarzano and Pietra Santa, both considered impenetrable fortresses. To make matters worse, they were entering a region especially unhealthy in October, with no natural resources except for oil, and had to get their grain from nearby provinces. It was clear that an entire army could perish there in just a few days from either lack of food or the unhealthy air, both of which were more disastrous than the rough terrain. The situation was serious; but once again, Piero dei Medici's pride helped protect Charles VIII's interests.
CHAPTER 5
PIERO DEI MEDICI had, as we may remember, undertaken to hold the entrance to Tuscany against the French; when, however, he saw his enemy coming dawn from the Alps, he felt less confident about his own strength, and demanded help from the pope; but scarcely had the rumour of foreign invasion began to spread in the Romagna, than the Colonna family declared themselves the French king's men, and collecting all their forces seized Ostia, and there awaited the coming of the French fleet to offer a passage through Rome. The pope, therefore, instead of sending troops to Florence, was obliged to recall all his soldiers to be near the capital; the only promise he made to Piero was that if Bajazet should send him the troops that he had been asking for, he would despatch that army for him to make use of. Piero dei Medici had not yet taken any resolution or formed any plan, when he suddenly heard two startling pieces of news. A jealous neighbour of his, the Marquis of Torderiovo, had betrayed to the French the weak side of Fivizzano, so that they had taken it by storm, and had put its soldiers and inhabitants to the edge of the sword; on another side, Gilbert of Montpensier, who had been lighting up the sea-coast so as to keep open the communications between the French army and their fleet, had met with a detachment sent by Paolo Orsini to Sarzano, to reinforce the garrison there, and after an hour's fighting had cut it to pieces. No quarter had been granted to any of the prisoners; every man the French could get hold of they had massacred.
PIERODEI MEDICI had, as we remember, taken on the job of defending the entrance to Tuscany against the French. However, when he saw the enemy approaching from the Alps, he started to doubt his own strength and asked the pope for help. But as soon as rumors of a foreign invasion began to spread in the Romagna, the Colonna family pledged their loyalty to the French king, assembling their forces to take Ostia and wait for the arrival of the French fleet to pass through Rome. As a result, instead of sending troops to Florence, the pope had to recall all his soldiers to be closer to the capital. The only promise he made to Piero was that if Bajazet sent him the troops he had been requesting, he would send that army for Piero to use. Piero dei Medici hadn't made any decisions or plans yet when he suddenly received two shocking pieces of news. A jealous neighbor, the Marquis of Torderiovo, had betrayed the French regarding the weak point of Fivizzano, allowing them to storm the city and kill its soldiers and residents. Meanwhile, Gilbert of Montpensier, who had been attacking the coastline to maintain communication between the French army and their fleet, encountered a group sent by Paolo Orsini to Sarzano to reinforce the garrison there. After an hour of fighting, he completely wiped them out. No mercy was shown to any of the prisoners; every person the French captured was massacred.
This was the first occasion on which the Italians, accustomed as they were to the chivalrous contests of the fifteenth century, found themselves in contact with savage foreigners who, less advanced in civilisation, had not yet come to consider war as a clever game, but looked upon it as simply a mortal conflict. So the news of these two butcheries produced a tremendous sensation at Florence, the richest city in Italy, and the most prosperous in commerce and in art. Every Florentine imagined the French to be like an army of those ancient barbarians who were wont to extinguish fire with blood. The prophecies of Savonarola, who had predicted the foreign invasion and the destruction that should follow it, were recalled to the minds of all; and so much perturbation was evinced that Piero dei Medici, bent on getting peace at any price, forced a decree upon the republic whereby she was to send an embassy to the conqueror; and obtained leave, resolved as he was to deliver himself in person into the hands of the French monarch, to act as one of the ambassadors. He accordingly quitted Florence, accompanied by four other messengers, and on his arrival at Pietra Santa, sent to ask from Charles VIII a safe-conduct for himself alone. The day after he made this request, Brigonnet and de Piennes came to fetch him, and led him into the presence of Charles VIII.
This was the first time the Italians, who were used to the chivalrous battles of the fifteenth century, faced brutal foreign soldiers who, less developed in civilization, didn't see war as an intellectual game but as a straightforward fight for survival. The news of these two massacres shocked Florence, the richest city in Italy, known for its commerce and art. Every Florentine envisioned the French as an army of ancient barbarians who used blood to put out fire. The warnings from Savonarola, who had predicted the foreign invasion and the destruction that would follow, came to everyone's minds; the anxiety was so overwhelming that Piero dei Medici, determined to secure peace at any cost, pushed through a decree requiring the republic to send an embassy to the conqueror. He received permission and decided to personally surrender to the French king to join the delegation. He then left Florence with four other messengers, and upon reaching Pietra Santa, he requested safe passage from Charles VIII for himself alone. The day after this request, Brigonnet and de Piennes came to escort him and brought him before Charles VIII.
Piero dei Medici, in spite of his name and influence, was in the eyes of the French nobility, who considered it a dishonourable thing to concern oneself with art or industry, nothing more than a rich merchant, with whom it would be absurd to stand upon any very strict ceremony. So Charles VIII received him on horseback, and addressing him with a haughty air, as a master might address a servant, demanded whence came this pride of his that made him dispute his entrance into Tuscany. Piero dei Medici replied, that, with the actual consent of Louis XI, his father Lorenzo had concluded a treaty of alliance with Ferdinand of Naples; that accordingly he had acted in obedience to prior obligations, but as he did not wish to push too far his devotion to the house of Aragon or his opposition to France, he was ready to do whatever Charles VIII might demand of him. The king, who had never looked for such humility in his enemy, demanded that Sarzano should be given up to him: to this Piero dei Medici at once consented. Then the conqueror, wishing to see how far the ambassador of the magnificent republic would extend his politeness, replied that this concession was far from satisfying him, and that he still must have the keys of Pietra Santa, Pisa, Librafatta, and Livorno. Piero saw no more difficulty about these than about Sarzano, and consented on Charles's mere promise by word of mouth to restore the town when he had achieved the conquest of Naples. At last Charles VIII, seeing that this man who had been sent out to negotiate with him was very easy to manage, exacted as a final condition, a 'sine qua non', however, of his royal protection, that the magnificent republic should lend him the sum of 200,000 florins. Piero found it no harder to dispose of money than of fortresses, and replied that his fellow-citizens would be happy to render this service to their new ally. Then Charles VIII set him on horseback, and ordered him to go on in front, so as to begin to carry out his promises by yielding up the four fortresses he had insisted on having. Piero obeyed, and the French army, led by the grandson of Cosimo the Great and the son of Lorenzo the Magnificent, continued its triumphal march through Tuscany.
Piero dei Medici, despite his name and influence, was viewed by the French nobility as just a rich merchant, as they considered it shameful to be involved in art or business. Therefore, Charles VIII received him on horseback and addressed him condescendingly, like a master speaking to a servant, questioning why he took pride in challenging his entry into Tuscany. Piero dei Medici responded that, with Louis XI's approval, his father Lorenzo had formed an alliance with Ferdinand of Naples; thus, he was acting in accordance with prior commitments. However, not wanting to overly commit to the house of Aragon or oppose France, he was prepared to do whatever Charles VIII asked of him. The king, surprised by such humility from his rival, then demanded that Sarzano be surrendered. Piero quickly agreed to this. The conqueror, wanting to see how far the representative of the magnificent republic would go with his politeness, claimed this concession was insufficient and that he still needed the keys to Pietra Santa, Pisa, Librafatta, and Livorno. Piero had no problem with these demands and accepted Charles's verbal promise to return the towns after he had conquered Naples. Ultimately, Charles VIII, realizing that this envoy was very easy to manage, insisted that, as a final condition for his royal protection, the magnificent republic lend him 200,000 florins. Piero found it just as simple to part with money as with fortresses and replied that his fellow citizens would be happy to support their new ally. Charles VIII then mounted his horse and instructed Piero to ride ahead to start fulfilling his promises by handing over the four fortresses he had requested. Piero complied, and the French army, led by the grandson of Cosimo the Great and the son of Lorenzo the Magnificent, continued its victorious march through Tuscany.
On his arrival at Lucca, Piero dei Medici learnt that his concessions to the King of France were making a terrible commotion at Florence. The magnificent republic had supposed that what Charles VIII wanted was simply a passage through her territory, so when the news came there was a general feeling of discontent, which was augmented by the return of the other ambassadors, whom Piero had not even consulted when he took action as he did. Piero considered it necessary that he should return, so he asked Charles's permission to precede him to the capital. As he had fulfilled all his promises, except the matter of the loan, which could not be settled anywhere but at Florence, the king saw no objection, and the very evening after he quitted the French army Piero returned incognito to his palace in the Via Largo.
When Piero dei Medici arrived in Lucca, he discovered that his decisions about the King of France were causing a major stir in Florence. The republic had thought that Charles VIII only intended to pass through their territory, so when the news broke, there was a lot of discontent, which intensified with the return of the other ambassadors, whom Piero hadn’t even consulted before making his choices. Piero felt it was crucial to go back, so he asked Charles for permission to go to the capital first. Since he had fulfilled all his promises except for the loan issue, which could only be settled in Florence, the king had no objections. That very evening, after leaving the French army, Piero secretly returned to his palace on Via Largo.
The next day he proposed to present himself before the Signoria, but when he arrived at the Piazza del Palazzo Vecchio, he perceived the gonfaloniere Jacopo de Nerli coming towards him, signalling to him that it was useless to attempt to go farther, and pointing out to him the figure of Luca Corsini standing at the gate, sword in hand: behind him stood guards, ordered, if need-were, to dispute his passage. Piero dei Medici, amazed by an opposition that he was experiencing for the first time in his life, did not attempt resistance. He went home, and wrote to his brother-in-law, Paolo Orsini, to come and help him with his gendarmes. Unluckily for him, his letter was intercepted. The Signoria considered that it was an attempt at rebellion. They summoned the citizens to their aid; they armed hastily, sallied forth in crowds, and thronged about the piazza of the palace. Meanwhile Cardinal Gian dei Medici had mounted on horseback, and under the impression that the Orsini were coming to the rescue, was riding about the streets of Florence, accompanied by his servants and uttering his battle cry, "Palle, Palle." But times had changed: there was no echo to the cry, and when the cardinal reached the Via dei Calizaioli, a threatening murmur was the only response, and he understood that instead of trying to arouse Florence he had much better get away before the excitement ran too high. He promptly retired to his own palace, expecting to find there his two brothers, Piero and Giuliano. But they, under the protection of Orsini and his gendarmes, had made their escape by the Porto San Gallo. The peril was imminent, and Gian dei Medici wished to follow their example; but wherever he went he was met by a clamour that grew more and more threatening. At last, as he saw that the danger was constantly increasing, he dismounted from his horse and ran into a house that he found standing open. This house by a lucky chance communicated with a convent of Franciscans; one of the friars lent the fugitive his dress, and the cardinal, under the protection of this humble incognito, contrived at last to get outside Florence, and joined his two brothers in the Apennines.
The next day, he decided to go to the Signoria, but when he arrived at the Piazza del Palazzo Vecchio, he saw the gonfaloniere, Jacopo de Nerli, approaching him, signaling that there was no point in going any further, and pointing out Luca Corsini standing at the gate with a sword in hand. Behind him were guards who were instructed to block his way if necessary. Piero dei Medici, shocked by this opposition he had never encountered before, didn’t try to fight back. He went home and wrote to his brother-in-law, Paolo Orsini, asking for help with his soldiers. Unfortunately for him, the letter was intercepted. The Signoria saw it as an attempt at rebellion. They called on the citizens for support, quickly armed themselves, and gathered in crowds around the palace square. Meanwhile, Cardinal Gian dei Medici had mounted his horse, thinking the Orsini were coming to help, and rode around the streets of Florence with his attendants, shouting his battle cry, "Palle, Palle." But times had changed: there was no response to his call, and when the cardinal reached the Via dei Calzaioli, the only reply was a threatening murmur. He realized that instead of rallying Florence, he needed to escape before things got worse. He quickly returned to his palace, expecting to find his two brothers, Piero and Giuliano, there. However, they had fled through the Porto San Gallo with the help of Orsini and his soldiers. The threat was urgent, and Gian dei Medici wanted to do the same, but wherever he went, he was met with increasingly hostile noise. Finally, seeing that the danger was increasing, he dismounted and ran into an open house. By a lucky chance, this house connected to a Franciscan convent; one of the friars lent the fugitive his robe, and the cardinal, disguised in this simple clothing, managed to leave Florence and joined his two brothers in the Apennines.
The same day the Medici were declared traitors and rebels, and ambassadors were sent to the King of France. They found him at Pisa, where he was granting independence to the town which eighty-seven years ago had fallen under the rule of the Florentines. Charles VIII made no reply to the envoys, but merely announced that he was going to march on Florence.
On the same day the Medici were called traitors and rebels, ambassadors were sent to the King of France. They found him in Pisa, where he was granting independence to a town that had been under Florentine control for eighty-seven years. Charles VIII didn’t reply to the envoys; he just said that he planned to march on Florence.
Such a reply, one may easily understand, terrified the republic. Florence had no time to prepare a defence, and no strength in her present state to make one. But all the powerful houses assembled and armed their own servants and retainers, and awaited the issue, intending not to begin hostilities, but to defend themselves should the French make an attack. It was agreed that if any necessity should arise for taking up arms, the bells of the various churches in the town should ring a peal and so serve as a general signal. Such a resolution was perhaps of more significant moment in Florence than it could have been in any other town. For the palaces that still remain from that period are virtually fortresses and the eternal fights between Guelphs and Ghibellines had familiarised the Tuscan people with street warfare.
It’s easy to understand how such a reaction frightened the republic. Florence didn’t have time to prepare for defense and didn’t have the resources for it anyway. But all the powerful families gathered and armed their own servants and followers, waiting to see what would happen, planning not to start a fight but to protect themselves in case the French attacked. They agreed that if they needed to take up arms, the bells of the various churches in town would ring as a general alert. This decision was probably more significant in Florence than it would have been in any other city. The palaces that still stand from that time are almost like fortresses, and the ongoing battles between the Guelphs and Ghibellines had made the Tuscan people used to street fighting.
The king appeared, an the 17th of November, in the evening, at the gate of San Friano. He found there the nobles of Florence clad in their most magnificent apparel, accompanied by priests chanting hymns, and by a mob who were full of joy at any prospect of change, and hoped for a return of liberty after the fall of the Medici. Charles VIII stopped for a moment under a sort of gilded canopy that had been prepared for him, and replied in a few evasive words to the welcoming speeches which were addressed to him by the Signoria; then he asked for his lance, he set it in rest, and gave the order to enter the town, the whole of which he paraded with his army following him with arms erect, and then went down to the palace of the Medici, which had been prepared for him.
The king arrived at the San Friano gate on the evening of November 17th. There, he encountered the nobles of Florence dressed in their finest attire, along with priests singing hymns and a crowd eager for change, hoping for a return to freedom after the Medici's fall. Charles VIII took a moment under a gilded canopy set up for him and gave brief, vague responses to the welcoming speeches from the Signoria. Then he requested his lance, positioned it, and commanded his troops to enter the town, marching through with their weapons raised before heading to the Medici palace that had been prepared for him.
The next day negotiations commenced; but everyone was out of his reckoning. The Florentines had received Charles VIII as a guest, but he had entered the city as a conqueror. So when the deputies of the Signoria spoke of ratifying the treaty of Piero dei Medici, the king replied that such a treaty no longer existed, as they had banished the man who made it; that he had conquered Florence, as he proved the night before, when he entered lance in hand; that he should retain the sovereignty, and would make any further decision whenever it pleased him to do so; further, he would let them know later on whether he would reinstate the Medici or whether he would delegate his authority to the Signoria: all they had to do was to come back the next day, and he would give them his ultimatum in writing.
The next day, negotiations started, but nobody was in agreement. The Florentines had welcomed Charles VIII as a guest, but he entered the city like a conqueror. So when the deputies of the Signoria discussed confirming the treaty of Piero dei Medici, the king replied that the treaty was no longer valid since they had expelled the man who created it. He claimed he had conquered Florence, as he had shown the night before when he rode in waving a lance; he intended to maintain control and would make any further decisions whenever he wanted. Additionally, he would let them know later whether he would restore the Medici or give his authority to the Signoria. All they had to do was come back the next day, and he would provide them with his final decision in writing.
This reply threw Florence into a great state of consternation; but the Florentines were confirmed in their resolution of making a stand. Charles, for his part, had been astonished by the great number of the inhabitants; not only was every street he had passed through thickly lined with people, but every house from garret to basement seemed overflowing with human beings. Florence indeed, thanks to her rapid increase in population, could muster nearly 150,000 souls.
This response made Florence very worried; however, the people of Florence were more determined than ever to stand their ground. Charles, for his part, was astonished by the huge number of residents; not only was every street he walked through crowded with people, but every house from top to bottom seemed to be overflowing with inhabitants. Thanks to its rapid population growth, Florence could gather nearly 150,000 people.
The next day, at the appointed hour, the deputies made their appearance to meet the king. They were again introduced into his presence, and the discussion was reopened. At last, as they were coming to no sort of understanding, the royal secretary, standing at the foot of the throne upon which Charles viii sat with covered head, unfolded a paper and began to read, article by article, the conditions imposed by the King of France. But scarcely had he read a third of the document when the discussion began more hotly than ever before. Then Charles VIII said that thus it should be, or he would order his trumpets to be sounded. Hereupon Piero Capponi, secretary to the republic, commonly called the Scipio of Florence, snatched from the royal secretary's hand the shameful proposal of capitulation, and tearing it to pieces, exclaimed:—
The next day, at the agreed time, the deputies showed up to meet the king. They were reintroduced to him, and the discussion started again. However, as they were getting nowhere, the royal secretary, standing at the foot of the throne where Charles VIII sat with his head covered, unfolded a document and began to read aloud the conditions set by the King of France, article by article. But just as he got a third of the way through the document, the debate heated up more than ever. Charles VIII then declared that it had to go this way, or he'd have his trumpets sound. At that moment, Piero Capponi, the secretary of the republic, often referred to as the Scipio of Florence, grabbed the disgraceful proposal of capitulation from the royal secretary's hand and tore it to pieces, shouting:
"Very good, sire; blow your trumpets, and we will ring our bells."
"Sounds good, my lord; you blow your trumpets, and we'll ring our bells."
He threw the pieces in the face of the amazed reader, and dashed out of the room to give the terrible order that would convert the street of Florence into a battlefield.
He threw the pieces in the startled reader's face and quickly left the room to issue the terrible order that would transform the streets of Florence into a battleground.
Still, against all probabilities, this bold answer saved the town. The French supposed, from such audacious words, addressed as they were to men who so far had encountered no single obstacle, that the Florentines were possessed of sure resources, to them unknown: the few prudent men who retained any influence over the king advised him accordingly to abate his pretensions; the result was that Charles VIII offered new and more reasonable conditions, which were accepted, signed by both parties, and proclaimed on the 26th of November during mass in the cathedral of Santa Maria Del Fiore.
Despite the challenges, this bold response saved the town. The French, seeing such daring words aimed at men who had faced no serious obstacles, assumed the Florentines had dependable resources they weren't aware of. The few wise advisors still influencing the king recommended that he soften his demands; consequently, Charles VIII suggested new, more reasonable terms that were accepted, signed by both parties, and announced on November 26 during mass at the cathedral of Santa Maria Del Fiore.
These were the conditions:
Here are the conditions:
The Signoria were to pay to Charles VIII, as subsidy, the sum of 120,000 florins, in three instalments;
The Signoria was set to pay Charles VIII a total of 120,000 florins in three payments.
The Signoria were to remove the sequestration imposed upon the property of the Medici, and to recall the decree that set a price on their heads;
The Signoria were to lift the ban on the Medici's property and cancel the order that placed a bounty on their heads;
The Signoria were to engage to pardon the Pisans, on condition of their again submitting to the rule of Florence;
The Signoria agreed to forgive the Pisans, provided that they accepted Florentine rule once more;
Lastly, the Signoria were to recognise the claims of the Duke of Milan over Sarzano and Pietra Santa, and these claims thus recognised, were to be settled by arbitration.
Finally, the Signoria had to recognize the Duke of Milan's claims on Sarzano and Pietra Santa, and once these claims were accepted, they would be settled through arbitration.
In exchange for this, the King of France pledged himself to restore the fortresses that had been given up to him, either after he had made himself master of the town of Naples, or when this war should be ended by a peace or a two years' truce, or else when, for any reason whatsoever, he should have quitted Italy.
In exchange for this, the King of France agreed to return the fortresses that had been given up to him, either after he gained control of the city of Naples, or when the war ended with peace or a two-year truce, or whenever he left Italy for any reason.
Two days after this proclamation, Charles VIII, much to the joy of the Signoria, left Florence, and advanced towards Rome by the route of Poggibondi and Siena.
Two days after this announcement, Charles VIII, much to the joy of the Signoria, left Florence and made his way to Rome through Poggibondi and Siena.
The pope began to be affected by the general terror: he had heard of the massacres of Fivizzano, of Lunigiane, and of Imola; he knew that Piero dei Medici had handed over the Tuscan fortresses, that Florence had succumbed, and that Catherine Sforza had made terms with the conqueror; he saw the broken remnants of the Neapolitan troops pass disheartened through Rome, to rally their strength in the Abruzzi, and thus he found himself exposed to an enemy who was advancing upon him with the whole of the Romagna under his control from one sea to the other, in a line of march extending from Piombina to Ancona.
The pope began to sense the widespread fear: he had heard about the massacres in Fivizzano, Lunigiane, and Imola; he knew that Piero dei Medici had surrendered the Tuscan fortresses, that Florence had fallen, and that Catherine Sforza had struck a deal with the conqueror; he watched the defeated remnants of the Neapolitan troops pass through Rome, dispirited, as they regrouped their strength in the Abruzzi. He realized he was up against an enemy who was moving forward with complete control over the Romagna, stretching from one sea to the other, with a route from Piombina to Ancona.
It was at this juncture that Alexander VI received his answer from Bajazet II: the reason of so long a delay was that the pope's envoy and the Neapolitan ambassador had been stopped by Gian della Rovere, the Cardinal Giuliano's brother, just as they were disembarking at Sinigaglia. They were charged with a verbal answer, which was that the sultan at this moment was busied with a triple war, first with the Sultan of Egypt, secondly with the King of Hungary, and thirdly with the Greeks of Macedonia and Epirus; and therefore he could not, with all the will in the world, help His Holiness with armed men. But the envoys were accompanied by a favourite of the sultan's bearing a private letter to Alexander VI, in which Bajazet offered on certain conditions to help him with money. Although, as we see, the messengers had been stopped on the way, the Turkish envoy had all the same found a means of getting his despatch sent to the pope: we give it here in all its naivete.
At this point, Alexander VI received a reply from Bajazet II: the reason for the long delay was that the pope's envoy and the Neapolitan ambassador had been stopped by Gian della Rovere, Cardinal Giuliano's brother, just as they were disembarking at Sinigaglia. They were given a verbal message stating that the sultan was currently involved in three wars: first, with the Sultan of Egypt; second, with the King of Hungary; and third, with the Greeks of Macedonia and Epirus. Therefore, even though he wanted to, he couldn’t provide His Holiness with military support. However, the envoys were accompanied by one of the sultan's favorites who carried a private letter to Alexander VI, in which Bajazet offered to help him financially under certain conditions. Although the messengers had been intercepted during their journey, the Turkish envoy still managed to find a way to send his message to the pope: we present it here in all its simplicity.
"Bajazet the Sultan, son of the Sultan Mahomet II, by the grace of God Emperor of Asia and Europe, to the Father and Lord of all the Christians, Alexander VI, Roman pontiff and pope by the will of heavenly Providence, first, greetings that we owe him and bestow with all our heart. We make known to your Highness, by the envoy of your Mightiness, Giorgio Bucciarda, that we have been apprised of your convalescence, and received the news thereof with great joy and comfort. Among other matters, the said Bucciarda has brought us word that the King of France, now marching against your Highness, has shown a desire to take under his protection our brother D'jem, who is now under yours—a thing which is not only against our will, but which would also be the cause of great injury to your Highness and to all Christendom. In turning the matter over with your envoy Giorgio we have devised a scheme most conducive to peace and most advantageous and honourable for your Highness; at the same time satisfactory to ourselves personally; it would be well if our aforesaid brother D'jem, who being a man is liable to death, and who is now in the hands of your Highness, should quit this world as soon as possible, seeing that his departure, a real good to him in his position, would be of great use to your Highness, and very conducive to your peace, while at the same time it would be very agreeable to us, your friend. If this proposition is favourably received, as we hope, by your Highness, in your desire to be friendly towards us, it would be advisable both in the interests of your Highness and for our own satisfaction that it should occur rather sooner than later, and by the surest means you might be pleased to employ; so that our said brother D'jem might pass from the pains of this world into a better and more peaceful life, where at last he may find repose. If your Highness should adapt this plan and send us the body of our brother, We, the above-named Sultan Bajazet, pledge ourselves to send to your Highness, wheresoever and by whatsoever hands you please, the sum of 300,000 ducats, With which sum you could purchase some fair domain for your children. In order to facilitate this purchase, we would be willing, while awaiting the issue, to place the 300,000 ducats in the hands of a third party, so that your Highness might be quite certain of receiving the money on an appointed day, in return for the despatch of our brother's body. Moreover, we promise your Highness herewith, for your greater satisfaction, that never, so long as you shall remain on the pontifical throne, shall there be any hurt done to the Christians, neither by us, nor by our servants, nor by any of our compatriots, of whatsoever kind or condition they may be, neither on sea nor on land. And for the still further satisfaction of your Highness, and in order that no doubt whatever may remain concerning the fulfilment of our promises, we have sworn and affirmed in the presence of Bucciarda, your envoy, by the true God whom we adore and by our holy Gospels, that they shall be faithfully kept from the first point unto the last. And now for the final and complete assurance of your Highness, in order that no doubt may still remain in your heart, and that you may be once again and profoundly convinced of our good faith, we the aforesaid Sultan Bajazet do swear by the true God, who has created the heavens and the earth and all that therein is, that we will religiously observe all that has been above said and declared, and in the future will do nothing and undertake nothing that may be contrary to the interests of your Highness.
Sultan Bajazet, son of Sultan Mahomet II, by God’s grace Emperor of Asia and Europe, to the Father and Lord of all Christians, Alexander VI, Roman pontiff and pope by divine will, we send our warm greetings. We are writing to inform your Highness, through your envoy Giorgio Bucciarda, that we have heard about your recovery, and we received the news with great joy and relief. Bucciarda has also told us that the King of France, who is currently moving against your Highness, wishes to take our brother D'jem, who is under your protection, for himself. This not only goes against our wishes but would also greatly damage your Highness and all of Christendom. After discussing this matter with your envoy Giorgio, we have devised a plan that promotes peace and honors your Highness; it also satisfies us personally. It would be best if our brother D'jem, who is at risk of death, could leave this world as soon as possible, as his passing would benefit your Highness and promote your peace, while also being agreeable to us, your friend. If your Highness views this proposal positively, as we hope, in the spirit of friendship towards us, it would be wise for both your interests and our satisfaction for this to happen sooner rather than later, using the most reliable methods available; so our brother D'jem could transition from this world's suffering to a better and more peaceful life, where he can finally find rest. If your Highness accepts this plan and sends us our brother's body, we, Sultan Bajazet, promise to send your Highness, by whichever means you prefer, the sum of 300,000 ducats, which you could use to acquire a fine estate for your children. To facilitate this purchase, we are willing to place the 300,000 ducats in the hands of a neutral party while we await the outcome, ensuring your Highness receives the money on an agreed date in exchange for sending our brother's body. Furthermore, we assure your Highness that as long as you remain on the papal throne, no harm will come to Christians, from us, our servants, or any of our countrymen, regardless of their status, whether at sea or on land. To further reassure your Highness, and to eliminate any doubts about fulfilling our promises, we have sworn before Bucciarda, your envoy, by the true God we worship and by our holy Gospels, that we will faithfully uphold these promises from start to finish. And now, to fully assure your Highness, leaving no doubt in your heart, and to deeply convince you of our good faith, we, Sultan Bajazet, swear by the true God who created the heavens and the earth and everything in them, that we will sincerely respect everything stated above and will not act against your interests in the future.
"Given at Constantinople, in our palace, on the 12th of September A.D. 1494."
"Released in Constantinople, at our palace, on September 12, 1494."
This letter was the cause of great joy to the Holy Father: the aid of four or five thousand Turks would be insufficient under the present circumstances, and would only serve to compromise the head of Christendom, while the sum of 300,000 ducats—that is, nearly a million francs—was good to get in any sort of circumstances. It is true that, so long as D'jem lived, Alexander was drawing an income of 180,000 livres, which as a life annuity represented a capital of nearly two millions; but when one needs ready money, one ought to be able to make a sacrifice in the way of discount. All the same, Alexander formed no definite plan, resolved on acting as circumstances should indicate.
This letter brought great joy to the Pope: the support of four or five thousand Turks wouldn’t be enough given the current situation and would only put the leader of Christendom in danger, whereas the sum of 300,000 ducats—which is nearly a million francs—would be valuable in any situation. It's true that while D'jem was alive, Alexander was receiving an income of 180,000 livres, which as a life annuity summed up to almost two million; but when cash is needed, you should be ready to make a sacrifice in terms of discount. Still, Alexander didn't come up with a clear plan and decided to act according to what the situation demanded.
But it was a more pressing business to decide how he should behave to the King of France: he had never anticipated the success of the French in Italy, and we have seen that he laid all the foundations of his family's future grandeur upon his alliance with the house of Aragon. But here was this house tattering, and a volcano more terrible than her own Vesuvius was threatening to swallow up Naples. He must therefore change his policy, and attach himself to the victor,—no easy matter, for Charles VIII was bitterly annoyed with the pope for having refused him the investiture and given it to Aragon.
But it was more urgent to figure out how he should handle the King of France: he had never anticipated the French would succeed in Italy, and he had built all the foundations for his family’s future greatness on an alliance with the house of Aragon. But now this alliance was crumbling, and a volcano more terrifying than Vesuvius was threatening to overwhelm Naples. He had to change his strategy and side with the winner—no simple task, given that Charles VIII was very frustrated with the pope for denying him the investiture and giving it to Aragon instead.
In consequence, he sent Cardinal Francesco Piccolomini as an envoy to the king. This choice looked like a mistake at first, seeing that the ambassador was a nephew of Pius II, who had vigorously opposed the house of Anjou; but Alexander in acting thus had a second design, which could not be discerned by those around him. In fact, he had divined that Charles would not be quick to receive his envoy, and that, in the parleyings to which his unwillingness must give rise, Piccolomini would necessarily be brought into contact with the young king's advisers. Now, besides his ostensible mission to the king, Piccalamini had also secret instructions for the more influential among his counsellors. These were Briconnet and Philippe de Luxembourg; and Piccolomini was authorised to promise a cardinal's hat to each of them. The result was just what Alexander had foreseen: his envoy could not gain admission to Charles, and was obliged to confer with the people about him. This was what the pope wished. Piccolomini returned to Rome with the king's refusal, but with a promise from Briconnet and Philippe de Luxembourg that they would use all their influence with Charles in favour of the Holy Father, and prepare him to receive a fresh embassy.
As a result, he sent Cardinal Francesco Piccolomini to the king as an envoy. This choice initially seemed like a mistake because the ambassador was a nephew of Pius II, who had strongly opposed the house of Anjou; however, Alexander had a deeper plan that those around him didn't recognize. He realized that Charles wouldn't be quick to welcome his envoy, and that the discussions stemming from his reluctance would inevitably lead Piccolomini to interact with the young king's advisors. Besides his official mission to the king, Piccolomini also had secret instructions for some of the more influential counselors, Briconnet and Philippe de Luxembourg, and he was authorized to promise each of them a cardinal's hat. The outcome was exactly what Alexander had expected: his envoy couldn't meet with Charles and had to speak with the people around him. This was what the pope wanted. Piccolomini returned to Rome with the king's rejection but also with a promise from Briconnet and Philippe de Luxembourg that they would use all their influence with Charles in support of the Holy Father and prepare him for another embassy.
But the French all this time were advancing, and never stopped more than forty-eight hours in any town, so that it became more and more urgent to get something settled with Charles. The king had entered Siena and Viterbo without striking a blow; Yves d' Alegre and Louis de Ligny had taken over Ostia from the hands of the Colonnas; Civita Vecchia and Corneto had opened their gates; the Orsini had submitted; even Gian Sforza, the pope's son-in-law, had retired from the alliance with Aragon. Alexander accordingly judged that the moment had came to abandon his ally, and sent to Charles the Bishops of Concordia and Terni, and his confessor, Mansignore Graziano. They were charged to renew to Briconnet and Philippe de Luxembourg the promise of the cardinalship, and had full powers of negotiation in the name of their master, both in case Charles should wish to include Alfonso II in the treaty, and in case he should refuse to sign an agreement with any other but the pope alone. They found the mind of Charles influenced now by the insinuation of Giuliano della Rovere, who, himself a witness of the pope's simony, pressed the king to summon a council and depose the head of the Church, and now by the secret support given him by the Bishops of Mans and St. Malo. The end of it was that the king decided to form his own opinion about the matter and settle nothing beforehand, and continued this route, sending the ambassadors back to the pope, with the addition of the Marechal de Gie, the Seneschal de Beaucaire, and Jean de Gannay, first president of the Paris Parliament. They were ordered to say to the pope—
But the French were moving forward all this time, rarely staying in any town for more than forty-eight hours, making it increasingly urgent to reach an agreement with Charles. The king had entered Siena and Viterbo without any resistance; Yves d'Alegre and Louis de Ligny had taken over Ostia from the Colonnas; Civita Vecchia and Corneto had opened their gates; the Orsini had surrendered; even Gian Sforza, the pope's son-in-law, had pulled out of the alliance with Aragon. Alexander realized it was time to abandon his ally and sent the Bishops of Concordia and Terni, along with his confessor, Monsignore Graziano, to Charles. They were tasked with renewing Briconnet and Philippe de Luxembourg's promise of a cardinal position and had full authority to negotiate on behalf of their master, whether Charles wanted to include Alfonso II in the treaty or if he refused to sign an agreement with anyone but the pope. They found Charles influenced by Giuliano della Rovere's suggestions, who, having witnessed the pope's corruption, urged the king to call a council and depose the head of the Church, supported secretly by the Bishops of Mans and St. Malo. Ultimately, the king decided to form his own opinion on the matter without making any commitments beforehand and continued on his journey, sending the ambassadors back to the pope, now joined by Marechal de Gie, Seneschal de Beaucaire, and Jean de Gannay, the first president of the Paris Parliament. They were instructed to tell the pope—
That the king wished above all things to be admitted into Rome without resistance; that, on condition of a voluntary, frank, and loyal admission, he would respect the authority of the Holy Father and the privileges of the Church;
The king desired more than anything to enter Rome without any resistance; that, if he received a friendly, open, and loyal welcome, he would respect the authority of the Holy Father and the rights of the Church;
That the king desired that D'jem should be given up to him, in order that he might make use of him against the sultan when he should carry the war into Macedonia or Turkey or the Holy Land;
The king wanted D'jem delivered to him so he could use him against the sultan when he waged war in Macedonia, Turkey, or the Holy Land;
That the remaining conditions were so unimportant that they could be brought forward at the first conference.
The remaining conditions were so minor that they could be handled at the first meeting.
The ambassadors added that the French army was now only two days distant from Rome, and that in the evening of the day after next Charles would probably arrive in person to demand an answer from His Holiness.
The ambassadors noted that the French army was now just two days from Rome, and that on the evening of the day after tomorrow, Charles would probably come in person to seek a response from His Holiness.
It was useless to think of parleying with a prince who acted in such expeditious fashion as this. Alexander accordingly warned Ferdinand to quit Rome as soon as possible, in the interests of his own personal safety. But Ferdinand refused to listen to a word, and declared that he would not go out at one gate while Charles VIII came in at another. His sojourn was not long. Two days later, about eleven o'clock in the morning, a sentinel placed on a watch-tower at the top of the Castle S. Angelo, whither the pope had retired, cried out that the vanguard of the enemy was visible on the horizon. At once Alexander and the Duke of Calabria went up on the terrace which tops the fortress, and assured themselves with their own eyes that what the soldier said was true. Then, and not till then, did the duke of Calabria mount on horseback, and, to use his own words, went out at the gate of San Sebastiana, at the same moment that the French vanguard halted five hundred feet from the Gate of the People. This was on the 31st of December 1494.
It was pointless to think about negotiating with a prince who acted so quickly. So, Alexander warned Ferdinand to leave Rome as soon as possible for his own safety. But Ferdinand refused to listen and insisted he wouldn’t leave through one gate while Charles VIII entered through another. He didn’t stay long. Two days later, around eleven in the morning, a guard on a watchtower at the top of Castle S. Angelo, where the pope had taken refuge, shouted that the enemy's vanguard was visible on the horizon. Immediately, Alexander and the Duke of Calabria went up to the terrace of the fortress and confirmed with their own eyes that the soldier was right. Only then did the Duke of Calabria get on his horse and, as he put it, leave through the gate of San Sebastiana, just as the French vanguard stopped five hundred feet from the Gate of the People. This was on December 31, 1494.
At three in the afternoon the whole army had arrived, and the vanguard began their march, drums beating, ensigns unfurled. It was composed, says Paolo Giove, an eye-witness (book ii, p. 41 of his History), of Swiss and German soldiers, with short tight coats of various colours: they were armed with short swords, with steel edges like those of the ancient Romans, and carried ashen lances ten feet long, with straight and sharp iron spikes: only one-fourth of their number bore halberts instead of lances, the spikes cut into the form of an axe and surmounted by a four-cornered spike, to be used both for cutting like an axe and piercing like a bayonet: the first row of each battalion wore helmets and cuirasses which protected the head and chest, and when the men were drawn up for battle they presented to the enemy a triple array of iron spikes, which they could raise or lower like the spines of a porcupine. To each thousand of the soldiery were attached a hundred fusiliers: their officers, to distinguish them from the men, wore lofty plumes on their helmets.
At three in the afternoon, the entire army had assembled, and the vanguard began their march, drumming and waving banners. According to Paolo Giove, an eyewitness (book ii, p. 41 of his History), it was made up of Swiss and German soldiers wearing short, fitted coats in various colors. They were armed with short swords with steel edges like those of the ancient Romans, and they carried ash lances that were ten feet long, featuring straight and sharp iron tips. Only a quarter of them used halberds instead of lances, with heads shaped like an axe and topped with a four-sided spike, allowing them to cut like an axe and stab like a bayonet. The front row of each battalion wore helmets and breastplates that protected their heads and chests, and when the soldiers lined up for battle, they presented the enemy with a triple row of iron spikes that they could raise or lower like a porcupine's quills. For every thousand soldiers, there were a hundred fusiliers attached: their officers, to distinguish them from the men, wore tall plumes on their helmets.
After the Swiss infantry came the archers of Gascony: there were five thousand of them, wearing a very simple dress, that contrasted with the rich costume of the Swiss soldiers, the shortest of whom would have been a head higher than the tallest of the Gascons. But they were excellent soldiers, full of courage, very light, and with a special reputation for quickness in stringing and drawing their iron bows.
After the Swiss infantry came the Gascon archers: there were five thousand of them, dressed in simple clothes that stood out sharply against the elaborate outfits of the Swiss soldiers, the shortest of whom was at least a head taller than the tallest of the Gascons. However, they were exceptional soldiers, full of courage, very agile, and particularly known for their speed in stringing and drawing their iron bows.
Behind them rode the cavalry, the flower of the French nobility, with their gilded helmets and neck bands, their velvet and silk surcoats, their swords each of which had its own name, their shields each telling of territorial estates, and their colours each telling of a lady-love. Besides defensive arms, each man bore a lance in his hand, like an Italian gendarme, with a solid grooved end, and on his saddle bow a quantity of weapons, some for cutting and some for thrusting. Their horses were large and strong, but they had their tails and ears cropped according to the French custom. These horses, unlike those of the Italian gendarmes, wore no caparisons of dressed leather, which made them more exposed to attack. Every knight was followed by three horses—the first ridden by a page in armour like his own, the two others by equerries who were called lateral auxiliaries, because in a fray they fought to right and left of their chief. This troop was not only the most magnificent, but the most considerable in the whole army; for as there were 2500 knights, they formed each with their three followers a total of 10,000 men. Five thousand light horse rode next, who carried huge wooden bows, and shot long arrows from a distance like English archers. They were a great help in battle, for moving rapidly wherever aid was required, they could fly in a moment from one wing to another, from the rear to the van, then when their quivers were empty could go off at so swift a gallop that neither infantry or heavy cavalry could pursue them. Their defensive armour consisted of a helmet and half-cuirass; some of them carried a short lance as well, with which to pin their stricken foe to the ground; they all wore long cloaks adorned with shoulder-knots, and plates of silver whereon the arms of their chief were emblazoned.
Behind them rode the cavalry, the elite of the French nobility, adorned with shiny helmets and neckbands, velvet and silk tunics, swords each with its own name, shields representing their estates, and colors that showed their romantic ties. Along with their defensive gear, each knight held a lance, similar to an Italian gendarme’s, with a solid grooved tip, and had various weapons strapped to their saddle—some for slashing and others for thrusting. Their horses were large and powerful, though their tails and ears were cropped according to French custom. Unlike the horses of the Italian gendarmes, these did not wear fancy leather coverings, leaving them more vulnerable to attacks. Each knight was accompanied by three horses—one ridden by a page in armor like his, and the other two by equerries known as lateral auxiliaries, who fought on either side of their leader during battle. This unit was not only the most impressive but also the largest in the entire army; with 2,500 knights, they totaled 10,000 men when including their three attendants each. Following them were 5,000 light cavalry, equipped with large wooden bows, shooting long-distance arrows like English archers. They played a crucial role in battle, swiftly moving wherever needed, able to dash from one flank to another, or from the back to the front, and when their quivers ran empty, they could flee so quickly that neither infantry nor heavy cavalry could catch them. Their defensive armor included a helmet and a half-cuirass; some carried a short lance to pin their fallen enemies to the ground; they all wore long cloaks decorated with shoulder knots and plates of silver displaying their lord's coat of arms.
At last came the young king's escort; there were four hundred archers, among whom a hundred Scots formed a line on each side, while two hundred of the most illustrious knights marched on foot beside the prince, carrying heavy arms on their shoulders. In the midst of this magnificent escort advanced Charles VIII, both he and his horse covered with splendid armour; an his right and left marched Cardinal Ascanio Sforza, the Duke of Milan's brother, and Cardinal Giuliano della Rovere, of whom we have spoken so often, who was afterwards Pope Julius II. The Cardinals Colonna and Savelli followed immediately after, and behind them came Prospero and Fabrizia Colonna, and all the Italian princes and generals who had thrown in their lot with the conqueror, and were marching intermingled with the great French lords.
At last, the young king's escort arrived; there were four hundred archers, with a hundred Scots forming a line on each side, while two hundred of the most distinguished knights marched on foot beside the prince, carrying heavy weapons on their shoulders. In the center of this impressive escort moved Charles VIII, both he and his horse dressed in stunning armor; to his right and left marched Cardinal Ascanio Sforza, the Duke of Milan's brother, and Cardinal Giuliano della Rovere, whom we’ve mentioned frequently and who later became Pope Julius II. Cardinals Colonna and Savelli followed closely behind, and after them came Prospero and Fabrizia Colonna, along with all the Italian princes and generals who had allied with the conqueror, marching among the prominent French lords.
For a long time the crowd that had collected to see all these foreign soldiers go by, a sight so new and strange, listened uneasily to a dull sound which got nearer and nearer. The earth visibly trembled, the glass shook in the windows, and behind the king's escort thirty-six bronze cannons were seen to advance, bumping along as they lay on their gun-carriages. These cannons were eight feet in length; and as their mouths were large enough to hold a man's head, it was supposed that each of these terrible machines, scarcely known as yet to the Italians, weighed nearly six thousand pounds. After the cannons came culverins sixteen feet long, and then falconets, the smallest of which shot balls the size of a grenade. This formidable artillery brought up the rear of the procession, and formed the hindmost guard of the French army.
For a long time, the crowd that had gathered to watch the foreign soldiers go by—a sight so new and strange—listened anxiously to a dull sound that grew louder and closer. The ground shook visibly, the glass rattled in the windows, and behind the king's escort, thirty-six bronze cannons were seen rolling along on their carriages. These cannons were eight feet long, and since their openings were large enough to fit a man's head, it was believed that each of these fearsome machines, barely known to the Italians at the time, weighed nearly six thousand pounds. Following the cannons were culverins that were sixteen feet long, and then smaller falconets, the smallest of which fired balls the size of grenades. This impressive artillery brought up the rear of the procession, forming the last line of the French army.
It was six hours since the front guard entered the town; and as it was now night and for every six artillery-men there was a torch-bearer, this illumination gave to the objects around a more gloomy character than they would have shown in the sunlight. The young king was to take up his quarters in the Palazzo di Venezia, and all the artillery was directed towards the plaza and the neighbouring streets. The remainder of the army was dispersed about the town. The same evening, they brought to the king, less to do honour to him than to assure him of his safety, the keys of Rome and the keys of the Belvedere Garden. Just the same thing had been done for the Duke of Calabria.
It had been six hours since the front guard entered the town; now that it was night and for every six artillerymen there was a torchbearer, the lighting made the surroundings feel even darker than they would have in daylight. The young king was about to take up residence in the Palazzo di Venezia, and all the artillery was aimed at the plaza and the nearby streets. The rest of the army was spread out around the town. That same evening, they brought the king the keys to Rome and the keys to the Belvedere Garden, not so much to honor him but to ensure his safety. They had done the same for the Duke of Calabria.
The pope, as we said, had retired to the Castle S. Angelo with only six cardinals, so from the day after his arrival the young king had around him a court of very different brilliance from that of the head of the Church. Then arose anew the question of a convocation to prove Alexander's simony and proceed to depose him; but the king's chief counsellors, gained over, as we know, pointed out that this was a bad moment to excite a new schism in the Church, just when preparations were being made for war against the infidels. As this was also the king's private opinion, there was not much trouble in persuading him, and he made up his mind to treat with His Holiness.
The pope, as we mentioned, had retreated to Castle S. Angelo with just six cardinals. So, starting the day after his arrival, the young king found himself surrounded by a court that was very different from that of the leader of the Church. The discussion about calling a meeting to prove Alexander's simony and move to depose him came up again. However, the king's main advisors, who had been influenced, pointed out that it wasn't the right time to create a new divide in the Church, especially with preparations underway for war against the infidels. Since this was also the king's personal view, it wasn’t hard to convince him, and he decided to negotiate with His Holiness.
But the negotiations had scarcely begun when they had to be broken off; for the first thing Charles VIII demanded was the surrender of the Castle S. Angelo, and as the pope saw in this castle his only refuge, it was the last thing he chose to give up. Twice, in his youthful impatience, Charles wanted to take by force what he could not get by goodwill, and had his cannons directed towards the Holy Father's dwelling-place; but the pope was unmoved by these demonstrations; and obstinate as he was, this time it was the French king who gave way.
The negotiations barely began before they had to be stopped; the first thing Charles VIII demanded was the surrender of Castle S. Angelo, and since the pope saw this castle as his only refuge, it was the last thing he wanted to give up. Twice, in his youthful impatience, Charles thought about taking it by force when persuasion didn't work, even aiming his cannons at the pope's residence; but the pope stayed calm despite these threats. Stubborn as he was, it was the French king who ultimately backed down this time.
This article, therefore, was set aside, and the following conditions were agreed upon:
This article was set aside, and the following conditions were agreed upon:
That there should be from this day forward between His Majesty the King of France and the Holy Father a sincere friendship and a firm alliance;
From this day on, there should be a true friendship and a solid alliance between His Majesty the King of France and the Holy Father;
Before the completion of the conquest of the kingdom of Naples, the King of France should occupy, for the advantage and accommodation of his army, the fortresses of Civita Vecchia, Terracina, and Spoleto;
Before completing the conquest of the Kingdom of Naples, the King of France should seize the fortresses of Civita Vecchia, Terracina, and Spoleto to benefit and support his army;
Lastly, the Cardinal Valentino (this was now the name of Caesar Borgia, after his archbishopric of Valencia) should accompany the king in the capacity of apostolic ambassador, really as a hostage.
Finally, Cardinal Valentino (the name Caesar Borgia took after becoming the archbishop of Valencia) was to accompany the king as an apostolic ambassador, effectively serving as a hostage.
These conditions fixed, the ceremonial of an interview was arranged. The king left the Palazzo di Venezia and went to live in the Vatican. At the appointed time he entered by the door of a garden that adjoined the palace, while the pope, who had not had to quit the Castle S. Angelo, thanks to a corridor communicating between the two palaces, came down into the same garden by another gate. The result of this arrangement was that the king the next moment perceived the pope, and knelt down, but the pope pretended not to see him, and the king advancing a few paces, knelt a second time; as His Holiness was at that moment screened by some masonry, this supplied him with another excuse, and the king went on with the performance, got up again, once more advanced several steps, and was on the point of kneeling down the third time face to face, when the Holy Father at last perceived him, and, walking towards him as though he would prevent him from kneeling, took off his own hat, and pressing him to his heart, raised him up and tenderly kissed his forehead, refusing to cover until the king had put his cap upon his head, with the aid of the pope's own hands. Then, after they had stood for a moment, exchanging polite and friendly speeches, the king lost no time in praying His Holiness to be so good as to receive into the Sacred College William Bricannet, the Bishop of St. Malo. As this matter had been agreed upon beforehand by that prelate and His Holiness, though the king was not aware of it, Alexander was pleased to get credit by promptly granting the request; and he instantly ordered one of his attendants to go to the house of his son, Cardinal Valentino, and fetch a cape and hat. Then taking the king by the hand, he conducted him into the hall of Papagalli, where the ceremony was to take place of the admission of the new cardinal. The solemn oath of obedience which was to be taken by Charles to His Holiness as supreme head of the Christian Church was postponed till the following day.
With those conditions established, the details for the interview were organized. The king left the Palazzo di Venezia and headed to the Vatican. When the time arrived, he entered through a garden gate next to the palace, while the pope, who didn’t need to leave the Castle S. Angelo due to a corridor connecting the two locations, entered the same garden through a different entrance. As a result, the king quickly spotted the pope and knelt, but the pope pretended he didn’t see him. The king moved a few steps forward and knelt again; since His Holiness was temporarily hidden by some masonry, this gave him another reason not to acknowledge him. The king continued with his gestures, stood up again, took several more steps, and was about to kneel a third time directly in front of the pope when the Holy Father finally noticed him. Approaching as if to stop him from kneeling, the pope removed his hat, embraced him, lifted him up, and affectionately kissed his forehead, refusing to put his hat back on until the king helped him place his cap on his head. After standing for a moment sharing polite and friendly conversation, the king quickly asked His Holiness to kindly accept William Bricannet, the Bishop of St. Malo, into the Sacred College. Since this matter had previously been agreed upon by the bishop and His Holiness, although the king was unaware of it, Alexander was pleased to gain favor by promptly granting the request. He immediately instructed one of his attendants to go to the home of his son, Cardinal Valentino, and fetch a cape and hat. Then, taking the king by the hand, he led him into the hall of Papagalli, where the ceremony to welcome the new cardinal would take place. The solemn oath of obedience that Charles was to take to His Holiness as the supreme head of the Christian Church was postponed until the following day.
When that solemn day arrived, every person important in Rome, noble, cleric, or soldier, assembled around His Holiness. Charles, on his side, made his approach to the Vatican with a splendid following of princes, prelates, and captains. At the threshold of the palace he found four cardinals who had arrived before him: two of them placed themselves one on each side of him, the two others behind him, and all his retinue following, they traversed a long line of apartments full of guards and servants, and at last arrived in the reception-room, where the pope was seated on his throne, with his son, Caesar Borgia; behind him. On his arrival at the door, the King of France began the usual ceremonial, and when he had gone on from genuflexions to kissing the feet, the hand, and the forehead, he stood up, while the first president of the Parliament of Paris, in his turn stepping forward, said in a loud voice:
When that significant day finally arrived, everyone important in Rome—nobles, clergy, and soldiers—gathered around His Holiness. Charles, for his part, approached the Vatican with a grand entourage of princes, church leaders, and soldiers. At the entrance to the palace, he met four cardinals who had arrived ahead of him: two positioned themselves on either side of him, while the other two stood behind him, and his entire party followed as they passed through a long series of rooms filled with guards and servants. Eventually, they reached the reception room, where the pope sat on his throne, with his son, Caesar Borgia, behind him. Upon reaching the door, the King of France began the usual ceremony, and after making genuflections and kissing the feet, hand, and forehead, he stood up. The first president of the Parliament of Paris then stepped forward and spoke loudly:
"Very Holy Father, behold my king ready to offer to your Holiness that oath of obedience that he owes to you; but in France it is customary that he who offers himself as vassal to his lord shall receive in exchange therefor such boons as he may demand. His Majesty, therefore, while he pledges himself for his own part to behave unto your Holiness with a munificence even greater than that wherewith your Holiness shall behave unto him, is here to beg urgently that you accord him three favours. These favours are: first, the confirmation of privileges already granted to the king, to the queen his wife, and to the dauphin his son; secondly, the investiture, for himself and his successors, of the kingdom of Naples; lastly, the surrender to him of the person of the sultan D'jem, brother of the Turkish emperor."
Most Holy Father, here is my king ready to pledge his obedience to your Holiness; however, in France, it's customary for someone who becomes a vassal to their lord to receive certain benefits in return. His Majesty, therefore, while promising to treat your Holiness with even greater generosity than you show him, is here to urgently request three favors. These favors are: first, the confirmation of privileges already granted to the king, his wife the queen, and his son the dauphin; second, the investiture of the kingdom of Naples for himself and his successors; and lastly, the return of the sultan D'jem, brother of the Turkish emperor, to him.
At this address the pope was for a moment stupefied, for he did not expect these three demands, which were moreover made so publicly by Charles that no manner of refusal was possible. But quickly recovering his presence of mind, he replied to the king that he would willingly confirm the privileges that had been accorded to the house of France by his predecessors; that he might therefore consider his first demand granted; that the investiture of the kingdom was an affair that required deliberation in a council of cardinals, but he would do all he possibly could to induce them to accede to the king's desire; lastly, he must defer the affair of the sultan's brother till a time more opportune for discussing it with the Sacred College, but would venture to say that, as this surrender could not fail to be for the good of Christendom, as it was demanded for the purpose of assuring further the success of a crusade, it would not be his fault if on this point also the king should not be satisfied.
When the pope received the king at this address, he was taken aback for a moment because he didn't expect these three demands, which Charles made so publicly that refusing them wasn't an option. But he quickly composed himself and told the king that he would happily confirm the privileges that his predecessors had granted to the house of France; therefore, he could consider his first demand approved. He stated that the investiture of the kingdom was something that needed more discussion in a council of cardinals, but he would do everything he could to persuade them to agree with the king's request. Finally, he had to put off the issue of the sultan's brother until a more suitable time to discuss it with the Sacred College. However, he suggested that since this surrender would undoubtedly benefit Christendom and was requested to help ensure the success of a crusade, it wouldn't be his fault if the king was not satisfied with this matter as well.
At this reply, Charles bowed his head in sign of satisfaction, and the first president stood up, uncovered, and resumed his discourse as follows.
At this, Charles nodded in agreement, and the first president stood up, took off his hat, and continued speaking as follows.
"Very Holy Father, it is an ancient custom among Christian kings, especially the Most Christian kings of France, to signify, through their ambassadors, the respect they feel for the Holy See and the sovereign pontiffs whom Divine Providence places thereon; but the Most Christian king, having felt a desire to visit the tombs of the holy apostles, has been pleased to pay this religious debt, which he regards as a sacred duty, not by ambassadors or by delegates, but in his own person. This is why, Very Holy Father, His Majesty the King of France is here to acknowledge you as the true vicar of Christ, the legitimate successor of the apostles St. Peter and St. Paul, and with promise and vow renders you that filial and respectful devotion which the kings his predecessors have been accustomed to promise and vow, devoting himself and all his strength to the service of your Holiness and the interests of the Holy See."
Most Holy Father, it's a long-standing tradition among Christian rulers, particularly the Most Christian kings of France, to show their respect for the Holy See and the popes appointed by Divine Providence through their ambassadors. However, the Most Christian king, intending to visit the tombs of the holy apostles, has decided to fulfill this religious obligation, which he views as a sacred duty, by coming himself instead of sending ambassadors or delegates. This is why, Most Holy Father, His Majesty the King of France is here to acknowledge you as the true representative of Christ, the legitimate successor of the apostles St. Peter and St. Paul, and with promise and vow offers you the same loyalty and respect that his predecessors committed to, dedicating himself and all his strength to serve your Holiness and support the interests of the Holy See.
The pope arose with a joyful heart; for this oath, so publicly made, removed all his fears about a council; so inclined from this moment to yield to the King of France anything he might choose to ask, he took him by his left hand and made him a short and friendly reply, dubbing him the Church's eldest son. The ceremony over, they left the hall, the pope always holding the king's hand in his, and in this way they walked as far as the room where the sacred vestments are put off; the pope feigned a wish to conduct the king to his own apartments, but the king would not suffer this, and, embracing once more, they separated, each to retire to his own domicile.
The pope stood up feeling happy; this public oath relieved all his worries about a council. From that moment, he was ready to give the King of France anything he might request. He took the king's left hand and gave him a brief, friendly reply, referring to him as the Church's oldest son. Once the ceremony finished, they left the hall with the pope still holding the king's hand. They walked together to the room where the sacred vestments are removed. The pope pretended he wanted to take the king to his own quarters, but the king wouldn’t allow it. After one last embrace, they said their goodbyes, each heading back to their own home.
The king remained eight days longer at the Vatican, then returned to the Palazzo San Marco. During these eight days all his demands were debated and settled to his satisfaction. The Bishop of Mans was made cardinal; the investiture of the kingdom of Naples was promised to the conqueror; lastly, it was agreed that on his departure the King of France should receive from the pope's hand the brother of the Emperor of Constantinople, for a sum of 120,000 livres. But—the pope, desiring to extend to the utmost the hospitality he had been bestowing, invited D'jem to dinner on the very day that he was to leave Rome with his new protector.
The king stayed at the Vatican for eight more days before returning to the Palazzo San Marco. During that time, all his requests were discussed and met to his satisfaction. The Bishop of Mans was made a cardinal; the conqueror was promised the investiture of the kingdom of Naples; finally, it was agreed that as he left, the King of France would receive the brother of the Emperor of Constantinople from the pope for a fee of 120,000 livres. However, the pope, wishing to extend his hospitality as much as possible, invited D'jem to dinner on the very day he was set to leave Rome with his new protector.
When the moment of departure arrived, Charles mounted his horse in full armour, and with a numerous and brilliant following made his way to the Vatican; arrived at the door, he dismounted, and leaving his escort at the Piazza of St. Peter, went up with a few gentlemen only. He found His Holiness waiting for him, with Cardinal Valentino on his right, and on his left D'jem, who, as we said before, was dining with him, and round the table thirteen cardinals. The king at once, bending on his knee, demanded the pope's benediction, and stooped to kiss his feet. But this Alexander would not suffer; he took him in his arms, and with the lips of a father and heart of an enemy, kissed him tenderly on his forehead. Then the pope introduced the son of Mahomet II, who was a fine young man, with something noble and regal in his air, presenting in his magnificent oriental costume a great contrast in its fashion and amplitude to the narrow, severe cut of the Christian apparel. D'jem advanced to Charles without humility and without pride, and, like an emperor's son treating with a king, kissed his hand and then his shoulder; then, turning towards the Holy Father, he said in Italian, which he spoke very well, that he entreated he would recommend him to the young king, who was prepared to take him under his protection, assuring the pontiff that he should never have to repent giving him his liberty, and telling Charles that he hoped he might some day be proud of him, if after taking Naples he carried out his intention of going on to Greece. These words were spoken with so much dignity and at the same time with such gentleness, that the King of France loyally and frankly grasped the young sultan's hand, as though he were his companion-in-arms. Then Charles took a final farewell of the pope, and went down to the piazza. There he was awaited by Cardinal Valentino, who was about to accompany him, as we know, as a hostage, and who had remained behind to exchange a few words with his father. In a moment Caesar Borgia appeared, riding on a splendidly harnessed mule, and behind him were led six magnificent horses, a present from the Holy Father to the King of France. Charles at once mounted one of these, to do honour to the gift the pope had just conferred on him, and leaving Rome with the rest of his troops, pursued his way towards Marino, where he arrived the same evening.
When it was time to leave, Charles mounted his horse, fully armored, and with a large, impressive entourage, made his way to the Vatican. Once he reached the entrance, he dismounted and left his escort at St. Peter's Square, entering with just a few gentlemen. He found His Holiness waiting for him, with Cardinal Valentino on his right and D'jem on his left, who, as mentioned earlier, was dining with him along with thirteen cardinals gathered around the table. The king knelt immediately to ask for the pope's blessing and bent down to kiss his feet. However, Alexander wouldn’t allow that; he lifted him up and, with the affection of a father yet the heart of an enemy, gently kissed him on the forehead. The pope then introduced the son of Mahomet II, a handsome young man with a noble and regal presence, dressed in an extravagant eastern outfit that stood in stark contrast to the narrow and formal cut of Christian clothing. D'jem approached Charles without arrogance or submission, and like a son of an emperor addressing a king, he kissed his hand and then his shoulder. Turning to the Holy Father, he spoke Italian quite well, asking the pope to recommend him to the young king, who was ready to protect him. He assured the pontiff that he would never regret granting him his freedom and told Charles he hoped to make him proud one day, especially if he could go to Greece after taking Naples. His words were delivered with such dignity and gentleness that the King of France shook the young sultan's hand with camaraderie, as if they were allies. Charles then bid farewell to the pope and headed down to the piazza, where he was met by Cardinal Valentino, who was preparing to accompany him as a hostage and had stayed behind to share a few words with his father. Soon, Caesar Borgia appeared, riding an elaborately adorned mule, with six magnificent horses trailing behind him—a gift from the Holy Father to the King of France. Charles immediately got on one of the horses to honor the pope’s gift and, with the rest of his troops, left Rome, heading toward Marino, where he arrived that same evening.
He learned there that Alfonso, belying his reputation as a clever politician and great general, had just embarked with all his treasures in a flotilla of four galleys, leaving the care of the war and the management of his kingdom to his son Ferdinand. Thus everything went well for the triumphant march of Charles: the gates of towns opened of themselves at his approach, his enemies fled without waiting for his coming, and before he had fought a single battle he had won for himself the surname of Conqueror.
He found out there that Alfonso, going against his image as a clever politician and a great general, had just sailed away with all his wealth on a fleet of four galleys, leaving the war and the rule of his kingdom to his son Ferdinand. Consequently, everything went well for Charles's victorious march: the gates of towns opened up as he approached, his enemies ran away without even waiting for him, and before he fought a single battle, he had already earned the title of Conqueror.
The day after at dawn the army started once more, and after marching the whole day, stopped in the evening at Velletri. There the king, who had been on horseback since the morning, with Cardinal Valentine and D'jem, left the former at his lodging, and taking D'jem with him, went on to his own. Then Caesar Borgia, who among the army baggage had twenty very heavy waggons of his own, had one of these opened, took out a splendid cabinet with the silver necessary for his table, and gave orders for his supper to be prepared, as he had done the night before. Meanwhile, night had come on, and he shut himself up in a private chamber, where, stripping off his cardinal's costume, he put on a groom's dress. Thanks to this disguise, he issued from the house that had been assigned for his accommodation without being recognised, traversed the streets, passed through the gates, and gained the open country. Nearly half a league outside the town, a servant awaited him with two swift horses. Caesar, who was an excellent rider, sprang to the saddle, and he and his companion at full gallop retraced the road to Rome, where they arrived at break of day. Caesar got down at the house of one Flores, auditor of the rota, where he procured a fresh horse and suitable clothes; then he flew at once to his mother, who gave a cry of joy when she saw him; for so silent and mysterious was the cardinal for all the world beside, and even for her, that he had not said a word of his early return to Rome. The cry of joy uttered by Rosa Vanozza when she beheld her son was far more a cry of vengeance than of love. One evening, while everybody was at the rejoicings in the Vatican, when Charles VIII and Alexander VI were swearing a friendship which neither of them felt, and exchanging oaths that were broken beforehand, a messenger from Rosa Vanozza had arrived with a letter to Caesar, in which she begged him to come at once to her house in the Via dellaLongara. Caesar questioned the messenger, but he only replied that he could tell him nothing, that he would learn all he cared to know from his mother's own lips. So, as soon as he was at liberty, Caesar, in layman's dress and wrapped in a large cloak, quitted the Vatican and made his way towards the church of Regina Coeli, in the neighbourhood of which, it will be remembered, was the house where the pope's mistress lived.
The next day at dawn, the army set out again, marching all day and stopping in the evening at Velletri. There, the king, who had been on horseback since morning, left Cardinal Valentine and D'jem at the former's lodgings and took D'jem with him to his own quarters. Meanwhile, Caesar Borgia had twenty very heavy wagons among the army’s baggage. He opened one, took out a beautiful cabinet containing the silverware for his table, and ordered his supper to be prepared, just like the night before. As night fell, he locked himself in a private room, changed out of his cardinal's outfit, and put on a groom's attire. Thanks to this disguise, he left the house assigned for his stay without being recognized, navigated the streets, passed through the gates, and reached the countryside. Almost half a league outside the town, a servant awaited him with two fast horses. Caesar, a skilled rider, jumped into the saddle, and he and his companion galloped back to Rome, arriving at dawn. Caesar dismounted at the home of Flores, an auditor of the rota, where he got a fresh horse and suitable clothing. He then rushed to see his mother, who cried out joyfully upon seeing him; the cardinal had been so silent and secretive, even with her, that he hadn't mentioned his early return to Rome. The joyful cry from Rosa Vanozza when she saw her son was more a cry of vengeance than of love. One evening, while everyone celebrated at the Vatican, with Charles VIII and Alexander VI pretending to be friends and exchanging insincere vows, a messenger from Rosa Vanozza arrived with a letter for Caesar, asking him to come immediately to her house on Via della Longara. Caesar questioned the messenger, but he could only say that he couldn't reveal anything and that Caesar would learn everything he needed to know from his mother. So, once he was free, Caesar, dressed as a layman and wrapped in a large cloak, left the Vatican and headed toward the church of Regina Coeli, near where the pope's mistress lived.
As he approached his mother's house, Caesar began to observe the signs of strange devastation. The street was scattered with the wreck of furniture and strips of precious stuffs. As he arrived at the foot of the little flight of steps that led to the entrance gate, he saw that the windows were broken and the remains of torn curtains were fluttering in front of them. Not understanding what this disorder could mean, he rushed into the house and through several deserted and wrecked apartments. At last, seeing light in one of the rooms, he went in, and there found his mother sitting on the remains of a chest made of ebony all inlaid with ivory and silver. When she saw Caesar, she rose, pale and dishevelled, and pointing to the desolation around her, exclaimed:
As he got closer to his mom's house, Caesar began to see signs of strange destruction. The street was covered with broken furniture and pieces of valuable fabric. When he reached the bottom of the small stairs that led to the front gate, he noticed the windows were broken and the torn curtains were blowing in the wind. Confused by the mess, he rushed into the house and went through several empty and damaged rooms. Finally, noticing light in one of the rooms, he walked in and found his mom sitting on the remains of an ebony chest inlaid with ivory and silver. When she saw Caesar, she stood up, pale and disheveled, and pointing to the destruction around her, exclaimed:
"Look, Caesar; behold the work of your new friends."
"Hey, Caesar; see what your new friends have done."
"But what does it mean, mother?" asked the cardinal. "Whence comes all this disorder?"
"But what does it mean, Mom?" asked the cardinal. "Where is all this chaos coming from?"
"From the serpent," replied Rosa Vanozza, gnashing her teeth,—"from the serpent you have warmed in your bosom. He has bitten me, fearing no doubt that his teeth would be broken on you."
"From the snake," Rosa Vanozza replied, grinding her teeth, "from the snake you’ve kept nearby. He bit me, probably worried that his teeth would get hurt on you."
"Who has done this?" cried Caesar. "Tell me, and, by Heaven, mother, he shall pay, and pay indeed!"
"Who did this?" shouted Caesar. "Tell me, and I promise, mother, he will pay, and pay dearly!"
"Who?" replied Rosa. "King Charles VIII has done it, by the hands of his faithful allies, the Swiss. It was well known that Melchior was away, and that I was living alone with a few wretched servants; so they came and broke in the doors, as though they were taking Rome by storm, and while Cardinal Valentino was making holiday with their master, they pillaged his mother's house, loading her with insults and outrages which no Turks or Saracens could possibly have improved upon."
"Who?" Rosa replied. "King Charles VIII is to blame, along with his loyal allies, the Swiss. Everyone knew Melchior was gone, and I was living alone with just a couple of miserable servants; so they came and smashed down the doors like they were attacking Rome, and while Cardinal Valentino was celebrating with their leader, they looted his mother's house, treating her to insults and abuses worse than anything Turks or Saracens could have done."
"Very good, very good, mother," said Caesar; "be calm; blood shall wash out disgrace. Consider a moment; what we have lost is nothing compared with what we might lose; and my father and I, you may be quite sure, will give you back more than they have stolen from you."
"You're right, Mom," Caesar said. "Stay calm; blood will wash away the shame. Just think about it for a second; what we've lost is nothing compared to what we could lose. My father and I will definitely make sure you get back more than they took from you."
"I ask for no promises," cried Rosa; "I ask for revenge."
"I don’t want any promises," Rosa shouted. "I want revenge."
"My mother," said the cardinal, "you shall be avenged, or I will lose the name of son."
"My mother," said the cardinal, "you will get justice, or I won't deserve to be called your son anymore."
Having by these words reassured his mother, he took her to Lucrezia's palace, which in consequence of her marriage with Pesaro was unoccupied, and himself returned to the Vatican, giving orders that his mother's house should be refurnished more magnificently than before the disaster. These orders were punctually executed, and it was among her new luxurious surroundings, but with the same hatred in her heart, that Caesar on this occasion found his mother. This feeling prompted her cry of joy when she saw him once more.
After comforting his mother with those words, he took her to Lucrezia's palace, which was vacant due to her marriage to Pesaro. He then returned to the Vatican, instructing that his mother's house be redecorated more elaborately than it had been before the tragedy. These orders were quickly executed, and it was in her new luxurious surroundings, though still with the same bitterness in her heart, that Caesar found his mother this time. This emotion prompted her to cry out in joy when she saw him again.
The mother and son exchanged a very few words; then Caesar, mounting on horseback, went to the Vatican, whence as a hostage he had departed two days before. Alexander, who knew of the flight beforehand, and not only approved, but as sovereign pontiff had previously absolved his son of the perjury he was about to commit, received him joyfully, but all the same advised him to lie concealed, as Charles in all probability would not be slow to reclaim his hostage:
The mother and son barely spoke to each other; then Caesar mounted his horse and rode to the Vatican, where he had left as a hostage two days before. Alexander, who had known about the escape in advance and not only approved it but, as the Pope, had already freed his son from the deception he was about to undertake, welcomed him joyfully. However, he advised him to remain hidden, as Charles would probably soon demand his hostage back.
Indeed, the next day, when the king got up, the absence of Cardinal Valentino was observed, and as Charles was uneasy at not seeing him, he sent to inquire what had prevented his appearance. When the messenger arrived at the house that Caesar had left the evening before, he learned that he had gone out at nine o'clock in the evening and not returned since. He went back with this news to the king, who at once suspected that he had fled, and in the first flush of his anger let the whole army know of his perjury. The soldiers then remembered the twenty waggons, so heavily laden, from one of which the cardinal, in the sight of all, had produced such magnificent gold and silver plate; and never doubting that the cargo of the others was equally precious, they fetched them down and broke them to pieces; but inside they found nothing but stones and sand, which proved to the king that the flight had been planned a long time back, and incensed him doubly against the pope. So without loss of time he despatched to Rome Philippe de Bresse, afterwards Duke of Savoy, with orders to intimate to the Holy Father his displeasure at this conduct. But the pope replied that he knew nothing whatever about his son's flight, and expressed the sincerest regret to His Majesty, declaring that he knew nothing of his whereabouts, but was certain that he was not in Rome. As a fact, the pope was speaking the truth this time, for Caesar had gone with Cardinal Orsino to one of his estates, and was temporarily in hiding there. This reply was conveyed to Charles by two messengers from the pope, the Bishops of Nepi and of Sutri, and the people also sent an ambassador in their own behalf. He was Monsignore Porcari, dean of the rota, who was charged to communicate to the king the displeasure of the Romans when they learned of the cardinal's breach of faith. Little as Charles was disposed to content himself with empty words, he had to turn his attention to more serious affairs; so he continued his march to Naples without stopping, arriving there on Sunday, the 22nd of February, 1495.
The next day, when the king woke up, everyone noticed that Cardinal Valentino was missing. Charles, uneasy about his absence, sent someone to find out why he hadn't shown up. When the messenger arrived at the place where Caesar had spent the night, he discovered that Caesar had left at nine o'clock the previous evening and hadn't returned. The messenger brought this news back to the king, who immediately suspected that Caesar had escaped. In his anger, he informed the entire army about the cardinal's betrayal. The soldiers then recalled the twenty wagons that had been heavily loaded, one of which the cardinal had publicly displayed with magnificent gold and silver items. Assuming the other wagons were just as valuable, they brought them down and broke them open, only to find nothing but stones and sand inside. This convinced the king that the escape had been planned in advance, making him even angrier at the pope. Without delay, he sent Philippe de Bresse, who would later become the Duke of Savoy, to Rome to inform the Holy Father of his displeasure about the situation. However, the pope replied that he knew nothing about his son's escape and expressed deep regret to His Majesty, insisting that he had no idea where Caesar was, but was certain he wasn't in Rome. In truth, the pope was being honest this time, as Caesar had gone with Cardinal Orsino to one of his estates and was keeping a low profile there. The pope's response was delivered to Charles by two messengers, the Bishops of Nepi and Sutri, and the people also sent an ambassador for themselves. This was Monsignore Porcari, dean of the rota, who had been tasked with conveying the Romans' displeasure upon learning of the cardinal's betrayal. Although Charles wasn’t satisfied with just words, he had to focus on more pressing matters, so he continued his march to Naples without stopping, arriving there on Sunday, February 22, 1495.
Four days later, the unlucky D'jem, who had fallen sick at Capua died at Castel Nuovo. When he was leaving, at the farewell banquet, Alexander had tried on his guest the poison he intended to use so often later on upon his cardinals, and whose effects he was destined to feel himself,—such is poetical justice. In this way the pope had secured a double haul; for, in his twofold speculation in this wretched young man, he had sold him alive to Charles for 120,000 livres and sold him dead to Bajazet for 300,00 ducats....
Four days later, the unfortunate D'jem, who had gotten sick in Capua, died at Castel Nuovo. During his departure, at the farewell banquet, Alexander had tried out the poison he planned to frequently use later on his cardinals, and whose effects he would inevitably experience himself—such is poetic justice. This way, the pope benefited double; in his two-part scheme involving this unfortunate young man, he had sold him while alive to Charles for 120,000 livres and sold him dead to Bajazet for 300,000 ducats....
But there was a certain delay about the second payment; for the Turkish emperor, as we remember, was not bound to pay the price of fratricide till he received the corpse, and by Charles's order the corpse had been buried at Gaeta.
However, there was a hold-up with the second payment because, as we know, the Turkish emperor wasn't obligated to pay for the fratricide until he received the body, and by Charles's orders, the body had been buried in Gaeta.
When Caesar Borgia learned the news, he rightly supposed that the king would be so busy settling himself in his new capital that he would have too much to think of to be worrying about him; so he went to Rome again, and, anxious to keep his promise to his mother, he signalised his return by a terrible vengeance.
When Caesar Borgia heard the news, he correctly figured that the king would be too busy settling into his new capital to pay attention to him. So, he went back to Rome and, wanting to keep his promise to his mother, signaled his return with a brutal act of revenge.
Cardinal Valentino had in his service a certain Spaniard whom he had made the chief of his bravoes; he was a man of five-and-thirty or forty, whose whole life had been one long rebellion against society's laws; he recoiled from no action, provided only he could get his price. This Don Michele Correglia, who earned his celebrity for bloody deeds under the name of Michelotto, was just the man Caesar wanted; and whereas Michelotto felt an unbounded admiration for Caesar, Caesar had unlimited confidence in Michelotto. It was to him the cardinal entrusted the execution of one part of his vengeance; the other he kept for himself.
Cardinal Valentino had a Spanish man in his employ whom he had appointed as the head of his enforcers. This man was in his thirties or forties and had spent his entire life openly defying societal norms. He would do whatever it took, as long as he was paid. This Don Michele Correglia, infamous for his brutal deeds under the name Michelotto, was exactly the person Caesar needed. While Michelotto held deep respect for Caesar, Caesar had full confidence in Michelotto. The cardinal assigned him a portion of his revenge, keeping the majority for himself.
Don Michele received orders to scour the Campagna and cut every French throat he could find. He began his work at once; and very few days elapsed before he had obtained most satisfactory results: more than a hundred persons were robbed or assassinated, and among the last the son of Cardinal de St. Malo, who was en his way back to France, and on whom Michelotto found a sum of 3000 crowns.
Don Michele received orders to search the Campagna and eliminate every French soldier he could find. He got started right away, and it didn't take long for him to achieve significant results: over a hundred people were robbed or killed, including the son of Cardinal de St. Malo, who was returning to France with 3000 crowns on him when Michelotto encountered him.
For himself, Caesar reserved the Swiss; for it was the Swiss in particular who had despoiled his mother's house. The pope had in his service about a hundred and fifty soldiers belonging to their nation, who had settled their families in Rome, and had grown rich partly by their pay and partly in the exercise of various industries. The cardinal had every one of them dismissed, with orders to quit Rome within twenty-four hours and the Roman territories within three days. The poor wretches had all collected together to obey the order, with their wives and children and baggage, on the Piazza of St. Peter, when suddenly, by Cardinal Valentino's orders, they were hemmed in on all sides by two thousand Spaniards, who began to fire on them with their guns and charge them with their sabres, while Caesar and his mother looked down upon the carnage from a window. In this way they killed fifty or perhaps sixty; but the rest coming up, made a charge at the assassins, and then, without suffering any loss, managed to beat a retreat to a house, where they stood a siege, and made so valiant a defense that they gave the pope time—he knew nothing of the author of this butchery—to send the captain of his guard to the rescue, who, with a strong detachment, succeeded in getting nearly forty of them safely out of the town: the rest had been massacred on the piazza or killed in the house.
Caesar specifically targeted the Swiss because they had raided his mother’s home. The pope had about one hundred and fifty soldiers from that region working for him, who had settled their families in Rome and become wealthy through their pay and various businesses. The cardinal ordered all of them to be dismissed, telling them to leave Rome within twenty-four hours and the surrounding areas within three days. The unfortunate individuals gathered in the Piazza of St. Peter to comply with the order, bringing their wives, children, and belongings, when suddenly, on Cardinal Valentino's orders, they were surrounded by two thousand Spaniards who began shooting at them and charging with sabers, while Caesar and his mother watched the massacre from a window. In total, they killed around fifty or maybe sixty, but the rest fought back against their attackers, managing to retreat to a building where they held out long enough for the pope—who was unaware of who had orchestrated this slaughter—to send the captain of his guard for help. With a strong contingent, he successfully evacuated almost forty of them from the city, while the others were either slaughtered in the piazza or killed inside the house.
But this was no real and adequate revenge; for it did not touch Charles himself, the sole author of all the troubles that the pope and his family had experienced during the last year. So Caesar soon abandoned vulgar schemes of this kind and busied himself with loftier concerns, bending all the force of his genius to restore the league of Italian princes that had been broken by the defection of Sforza, the exile of Piero dei Medici, and the defeat of Alfonso. The enterprise was more easily accomplished than the pope could have anticipated. The Venetians were very uneasy when Charles passed so near, and they trembled lest, when he was once master of Naples, he might conceive the idea of conquering the rest of Italy. Ludovico Sforza, on his side, was beginning to tremble, seeing the rapidity with which the King of France had dethroned the house of Aragon, lest he might not make much difference between his allies and his enemies. Maximilian, for his part, was only seeking an occasion to break the temporary peace which he had granted for the sake of the concession made to him. Lastly, Ferdinand and Isabella were allies of the dethroned house. And so it came about that all of them, for different reasons, felt a common fear, and were soon in agreement as to the necessity of driving out Charles VIII, not only from Naples, but from Italy, and pledged themselves to work together to this end, by every means in their power, by negotiations, by trickery, or by actual force. The Florentines alone refused to take part in this general levy of arms, and remained faithful to their promises.
But this wasn't real revenge; it didn’t impact Charles himself, the one responsible for all the issues that the pope and his family had faced over the past year. So Caesar quickly abandoned petty schemes and focused on bigger ambitions, using all his cleverness to rebuild the alliance of Italian princes that had fallen apart because of Sforza’s betrayal, Piero dei Medici’s exile, and Alfonso’s defeat. This task turned out to be easier than the pope expected. The Venetians were quite anxious when Charles got so close, fearing that once he took control of Naples, he might plan to conquer the rest of Italy. Ludovico Sforza also began to worry, seeing how quickly the King of France had overthrown the house of Aragon, fearing he might not be able to tell his friends from his enemies. Maximilian, for his part, was just waiting for a chance to break the temporary peace he had agreed to in exchange for concessions. Finally, Ferdinand and Isabella were allies of the deposed house. Thus, all of them, for various reasons, felt a shared fear and quickly agreed on the need to drive out Charles VIII, not just from Naples, but from Italy altogether, committing to work together by any means necessary—through negotiation, deception, or direct action. The Florentines, however, refused to join this call to arms and remained loyal to their promises.
According to the articles of the treaty agreed upon by the confederates, the alliance was to last for five-and-twenty years, and had for ostensible object the upholding of the majority of the pope, and the interests of Christendom; and these preparations might well have been taken for such as would precede a crusade against the Turks, if Bajazet's ambassador had not always been present at the deliberations, although the Christian princes could not have dared for very shame to admit the, sultan by name into their league. Now the confederates had to set on foot an army of 30,000 horse and 20,000 infantry, and each of them was taxed for a contingent; thus the pope was to furnish 4000 horse, Maximilian 6000, the King of Spain, the Duke of Milan, and the republic of Venice, 8000 each. Every confederate was, in addition to this, to levy and equip 4000 infantry in the six weeks following the signature of the treaty. The fleets were to be equipped by the Maritime States; but any expenses they should incur later on were to be defrayed by all in equal shares.
According to the treaty agreed upon by the confederates, the alliance was set to last for twenty-five years and aimed to support the pope and the interests of Christendom. These preparations could easily be mistaken for those before a crusade against the Turks, especially since Bajazet's ambassador was always present during the discussions, although the Christian princes wouldn’t dare to mention the sultan by name in their league. The confederates needed to raise an army of 30,000 cavalry and 20,000 infantry, with each member responsible for a contribution. The pope would provide 4,000 cavalry, Maximilian 6,000, and both the King of Spain, the Duke of Milan, and the Republic of Venice would each offer 8,000. Additionally, every confederate was required to recruit and equip 4,000 infantry within six weeks of signing the treaty. The fleets were to be equipped by the Maritime States, but any future expenses incurred would be shared equally by all.
The formation of this league was made public on the 12th of April, 1495, Palm Sunday, and in all the Italian States, especially at Rome, was made the occasion of fetes and immense rejoicings. Almost as soon as the publicly known articles were announced the secret ones were put into execution. These obliged Ferdinand and Isabella to send a fleet of sixty galleys to Ischia, where Alfonso's son had retired, with six hundred horsemen on board and five thousand infantry, to help him to ascend the throne once more. Those troops were to be put under the command of Gonzalvo of Cordova, who had gained the reputation of the greatest general in Europe after the taking of Granada. The Venetians with a fleet of forty galleys under the command of Antonio Grimani, were to attack all the French stations on the coast of Calabria and Naples. The Duke of Milan promised for his part to check all reinforcements as they should arrive from France, and to drive the Duke of Orleans out of Asti.
The league was announced on April 12, 1495, Palm Sunday, sparking celebrations and large festivities throughout all Italian states, especially in Rome. Shortly after the public terms were disclosed, secret plans were set in motion. These involved Ferdinand and Isabella sending a fleet of sixty galleys to Ischia, where Alfonso's son was hiding, along with six hundred horsemen and five thousand infantry to assist him in reclaiming the throne. The troops were to be led by Gonzalvo of Cordova, who had made a name for himself as the greatest general in Europe after the conquest of Granada. The Venetians, with a fleet of forty galleys under Antonio Grimani's command, were poised to target all French positions along the coasts of Calabria and Naples. The Duke of Milan, for his part, pledged to intercept any reinforcements coming from France and to force the Duke of Orleans out of Asti.
Lastly, there was Maximilian, who had promised to make invasions on the frontiers, and Bajazet, who was to help with money, ships, and soldiers either the Venetians or the Spaniards, according as he might be appealed to by Barberigo or by Ferdinand the Catholic.
Finally, there was Maximilian, who had promised to launch attacks on the borders, and Bajazet, who was expected to support either the Venetians or the Spaniards with money, ships, and soldiers, depending on whether Barberigo or Ferdinand the Catholic contacted him.
This league was all the more disconcerting for Charles, because of the speedy abatement of the enthusiasm that had hailed his first appearance. What had happened to him was what generally happens to a conqueror who has more good luck than talent; instead of making himself a party among the great Neapolitan and Calabrian vassals, whose roots would be embedded in the very soil, by confirming their privileges and augmenting their power, he had wounded their feelings by bestowing all the titles, offices, and fiefs on those alone who had followed him from France, so that all the important positions in the kingdom were filled by strangers.
This league was even more concerning for Charles because the excitement around his first appearance faded so quickly. What happened to him is typical for a conqueror who depends more on luck than skill; instead of gaining the loyalty of the influential Neapolitan and Calabrian vassals, who had strong connections to the land, by strengthening their privileges and enhancing their power, he offended them by granting all the titles, positions, and lands to those who accompanied him from France, leaving all the important roles in the kingdom filled by outsiders.
The result was that just when the league was made known, Tropea and Amantea, which had been presented by Charles to the Seigneur de Precy, rose in revolt and hoisted the banner of Aragon; and the Spanish fleet had only to present itself at Reggio, in Calabria, for the town to throw open its gates, being more discontented with the new rule than the old; and Don Federiga, Alfonso's brother and Ferdinand's uncle, who had hitherto never quitted Brindisi, had only to appear at Tarentum to be received there as a liberator.
The outcome was that as soon as the league was announced, Tropea and Amantea, which Charles had given to Seigneur de Precy, revolted and raised the Aragon flag. The Spanish fleet only had to appear at Reggio in Calabria for the town to open its gates, as the locals were more dissatisfied with the new rule than they had been with the old one. Don Federiga, Alfonso's brother and Ferdinand's uncle, who had never left Brindisi before, just had to arrive in Tarentum to be greeted as a liberator.
CHAPTER 6
CHARLES learned all this news at Naples, and, tired of his late conquests, which necessitated a labour in organisation for which he was quite unfitted, turned his eyes towards France, where victorious fetes and rejoicings were awaiting the victor's return. So he yielded at the first breath of his advisers, and retraced his road to his kingdom, threatened, as was said, by the Germans on the north and the Spaniards on the south. Consequently, he appointed Gilbert de Montpensier, of the house of Bourbon, viceroy; d'Aubigny, of the Scotch Stuart family, lieutenant in Calabria; Etienne de Vese, commander at Gaeta; and Don Juliano, Gabriel de Montfaucon, Guillaume de Villeneuve, George de Lilly, the bailiff of Vitry, and Graziano Guerra respectively governors of Sant' Angelo, Manfredonia, Trani, Catanzaro, Aquila, and Sulmone; then leaving behind in evidence of his claims the half of his Swiss, a party of his Gascons, eight hundred French lances, and about five hundred Italian men-at-arms, the last under the command of the prefect of Rome, Prospero and Fabrizio Colonna, and Antonio Savelli, he left Naples on the 20th of May at two o'clock in the afternoon, to traverse the whole of the Italian peninsula with the rest of his army, consisting of eight hundred French lances, two hundred gentlemen of his guard, one hundred Italian men-at-arms, three thousand Swiss infantry, one thousand French and one thousand Gascon. He also expected to be joined by Camillo Vitelli and his brothers in Tuscany, who were to contribute two hundred and fifty men-at-arms.
CHARLESHe learned all this news in Naples and, exhausted from his recent conquests that required more organization than he was cut out for, looked towards France, where celebrations and honors awaited his return. So, he quickly agreed with his advisers' suggestions and began his journey back to his kingdom, which was reportedly threatened by Germans to the north and Spaniards to the south. As a result, he appointed Gilbert de Montpensier from the Bourbon family as viceroy; d'Aubigny from the Scottish Stuart family as lieutenant in Calabria; Etienne de Vese as commander at Gaeta; and Don Juliano, Gabriel de Montfaucon, Guillaume de Villeneuve, George de Lilly, the bailiff of Vitry, and Graziano Guerra as governors of Sant' Angelo, Manfredonia, Trani, Catanzaro, Aquila, and Sulmone, respectively. Then, leaving behind half of his Swiss troops, a group of Gascons, eight hundred French lances, and about five hundred Italian men-at-arms, the latter commanded by the prefect of Rome, Prospero and Fabrizio Colonna, and Antonio Savelli, he departed Naples on May 20th at two o'clock in the afternoon, ready to cross the entire Italian peninsula with the rest of his army, which included eight hundred French lances, two hundred of his guard, one hundred Italian men-at-arms, three thousand Swiss infantry, one thousand French, and one thousand Gascon soldiers. He also expected the arrival of Camillo Vitelli and his brothers from Tuscany, who were set to provide an additional two hundred and fifty men-at-arms.
A week before he left Naples, Charles had sent to Rome Monseigneur de Saint-Paul, brother of Cardinal de Luxembourg; and just as he was starting he despatched thither the new Archbishop of Lyons. They both were commissioned to assure Alexander that the King of France had the most sincere desire and the very best intention of remaining his friend. In truth, Charles wished for nothing so much as to separate the pope from the league, so as to secure him as a spiritual and temporal support; but a young king, full of fire, ambition, and courage, was not the neighbour to suit Alexander; so the latter would listen to nothing, and as the troops he had demanded from the doge and Ludavico Sforza had not been sent in sufficient number for the defense of Rome, he was content with provisioning the castle of S. Angelo, putting in a formidable garrison, and leaving Cardinal Sant' Anastasio to receive Charles while he himself withdrew with Caesar to Orvieto. Charles only stayed in Rome three days, utterly depressed because the pope had refused to receive him in spite of his entreaties. And in these three days, instead of listening to Giuliano della Rovere, who was advising him once more to call a council and depose the pope, he rather hoped to bring the pope round to his side by the virtuous act of restoring the citadels of Terracina and Civita Vecchia to the authorities of the Romagna, only keeping for himself Ostia, which he had promised Giuliano to give back to him. At last, when the three days had elapsed, he left Rome, and resumed his march in three columns towards Tuscany, crossed the States of the Church, and on the 13th reached Siena, where he was joined by Philippe de Commines, who had gone as ambassador extraordinary to the Venetian Republic, and now announced that the enemy had forty thousand men under arms and were preparing for battle. This news produced no other effect on the king and the gentlemen of his army than to excite their amusement beyond measure; for they had conceived such a contempt for their enemy by their easy conquest, that they could not believe that any army, however numerous, would venture to oppose their passage.
A week before leaving Naples, Charles sent Monseigneur de Saint-Paul, the brother of Cardinal de Luxembourg, to Rome; and just as he was about to leave, he also sent the new Archbishop of Lyons. Their mission was to assure Alexander that the King of France truly wanted to remain his friend. In reality, Charles aimed to separate the pope from the league, securing him as both a spiritual and temporal ally; however, Alexander didn’t want a young king filled with passion, ambition, and courage as a neighbor. So, he refused to listen to anything, and since the troops he had requested from the doge and Ludavico Sforza hadn’t arrived in sufficient numbers to defend Rome, he was content to supply the castle of S. Angelo, install a strong garrison, and leave Cardinal Sant' Anastasio to welcome Charles while he himself withdrew with Caesar to Orvieto. Charles stayed in Rome for just three days, feeling completely disheartened because the pope refused to see him despite his pleas. During those three days, instead of taking the advice of Giuliano della Rovere, who was urging him again to call a council and depose the pope, he hoped to win the pope over by the honorable act of returning the citadels of Terracina and Civita Vecchia to the local authorities, keeping only Ostia, which he had promised Giuliano he would return. Finally, after three days, he left Rome and continued his march in three columns towards Tuscany, crossed the States of the Church, and on the 13th reached Siena, where he met Philippe de Commines, who had gone as an extraordinary ambassador to the Venetian Republic. Commines reported that the enemy had forty thousand men ready for battle. This news only amused the king and the gentlemen in his army; they had developed such disdain for their enemy through quick victories that they couldn’t believe any army, no matter how large, would dare to oppose their advance.
Charles, however, was forced to give way in the face of facts, when he heard at San Teranza that his vanguard, commanded by Marechal de Gie, and composed of six hundred lances and fifteen hundred Swiss, when it arrived at Fornova had come face to face with the confederates, who had encamped at Guiarole. The marechal had ordered an instant halt, and he too had pitched his tents, utilising for his defence the natural advantages of the hilly ground. When these first measures had been taken, he sent out, first, a herald to the enemy's camp to ask from Francesco di Gonzaga, Marquis of Mantua, generalissimo of the confederate troops, a passage for his king's army and provisions at a reasonable price; and secondly, he despatched a courier to Charles VIII, pressing him to hurry on his march with the artillery and rearguard. The confederates had given an evasive answer, for they were pondering whether they ought to jeopardise the whole Italian force in a single combat, and, putting all to the hazard, attempt to annihilate the King of France and his army together, so overwhelming the conqueror in the ruins of his ambition. The messenger found Charles busy superintending the passage of the last of his cannon over the mountain of Pontremoli. This was no easy matter, seeing that there was no sort of track, and the guns had to be lifted up and lowered by main force, and each piece needed the arms of as many as two hundred men. At last, when all the artillery had arrived without accident on the other side of the Apennines, Charles started in hot haste for Fornovo, where he arrived with all his following on the morning of the next day.
Charles, however, had to confront the reality when he learned in San Teranza that his advance guard, led by Marechal de Gie and consisting of six hundred lancers and fifteen hundred Swiss troops, had reached Fornova and encountered the confederates, who were camped at Guiarole. The marechal ordered an immediate halt and established his own camp, taking advantage of the hilly terrain for defense. After setting up camp, he first sent a herald to the enemy's camp to request from Francesco di Gonzaga, Marquis of Mantua and commander of the confederate troops, safe passage for his king's army and provisions at a reasonable price. He also sent a courier to Charles VIII urging him to speed up his march with the artillery and rearguard. The confederates responded with vague answers, as they were debating whether to risk their entire Italian force in a single battle, wagering everything on the chance to defeat the King of France and his army, overwhelming the victor amid the ruins of his ambitions. The messenger found Charles overseeing the movement of the last of his cannons over the mountain of Pontremoli. This was no easy task, as there was no established path, and the cannons had to be hoisted and lowered by sheer manpower, requiring up to two hundred men for each piece. Finally, when all the artillery successfully made it across the Apennines, Charles rushed to Fornovo, arriving with all his troops the next morning.
From the top of the mountain where the Marechal de Gie had pitched his tents, the king beheld both his own camp and the enemy's. Both were on the right bank of the Taro, and were at either end of a semicircular chain of hills resembling an amphitheatre; and the space between the two camps, a vast basin filled during the winter floods by the torrent which now only marked its boundary, was nothing but a plain covered with gravel, where all manoeuvres must be equally difficult for horse and infantry. Besides, on the western slope of the hills there was a little wood which extended from the enemy's army to the French, and was in the possession of the Stradiotes, who, by help of its cover, had already engaged in several skirmishes with the French troops during the two days of halt while they were waiting for the king.
From the top of the mountain where Marechal de Gie had set up his tents, the king could see both his camp and the enemy's. Both camps were located on the right bank of the Taro, at either end of a semicircular chain of hills that resembled an amphitheater. The area between the two camps was a large basin that filled up during winter floods, but now it was just a flat stretch covered in gravel, making it difficult for both cavalry and infantry to move around. Additionally, there was a small forest on the western slope of the hills that extended from the enemy’s army to the French forces, controlled by the Stradiotes, who had already clashed with the French troops several times during the two days they waited for the king.
The situation was not reassuring. From the top of the mountain which overlooked Fornovo, one could get a view, as we said before, of the two camps, and could easily calculate the numerical difference between them. The French army, weakened by the establishment of garrisons in the various towns and fortresses they had won in Italy, were scarcely eight thousand strong, while the combined forces of Milan and Venice exceeded a total of thirty-five thousand. So Charles decided to try once more the methods of conciliation, and sent Commines, who, as we know, had joined him in Tuscany, to the Venetian 'proveditori', whose acquaintance he had made when on his embassy; he having made a great impression on these men, thanks to a general high opinion of his merits. He was commissioned to tell the enemy's generals, in the name of the King of France, that his master only desired to continue his road without doing or receiving any harm; that therefore he asked to be allowed a free passage across the fair plains of Lombardy, which he could see from the heights where he now stood, stretching as far as the eye could reach, away to the foot of the Alps. Commines found the confederate army deep in discussion: the wish of the Milanese and Venetian party being to let the king go by, and not attack him; they said they were only too happy that he should leave Italy in this way, without causing any further harm; but the ambassadors of Spain and Germany took quite another view. As their masters had no troops in the army, and as all the money they had promised was already paid, they must be the gainer in either case from a battle, whichever way it went: if they won the day they would gather the fruits of victory, and if they lost they would experience nothing of the evils of defeat. This want of unanimity was the reason why the answer to Commines was deferred until the following day, and why it was settled that on the next day he should hold another conference with a plenipotentiary to be appointed in the course of that night. The place of this conference was to be between the two armies.
The situation was anything but reassuring. From the mountain overlooking Fornovo, one could observe both camps and easily assess their numbers. The French army, weakened by the garrisons established in various towns and fortresses they had captured in Italy, barely had eight thousand soldiers, while the combined forces of Milan and Venice numbered over thirty-five thousand. So, Charles decided to try negotiating once again, sending Commines, who had joined him in Tuscany, to the Venetian 'proveditori' he had encountered during his previous mission; he had made a solid impression on them because of their high regard for his skills. He was instructed to inform the enemy generals, on behalf of the King of France, that his master wanted to continue his journey without causing or experiencing any harm, and therefore requested safe passage across the beautiful plains of Lombardy, which he could see from where he stood, stretching as far as the eye could see to the foot of the Alps. Commines found the confederate army deeply engaged in discussion: the Milanese and Venetian factions were inclined to allow the king to pass without confrontation; they expressed relief at seeing him leave Italy this way, without causing further damage. However, the ambassadors from Spain and Germany had a completely different view. Since their rulers had no troops in the army and all promised payments had already been made, they stood to gain from a battle regardless of the outcome: if they won, they would enjoy the benefits of victory, and if they lost, they would face none of the consequences of defeat. This disagreement was why Commines' response was delayed until the next day, and it was decided that he would have another meeting with a plenipotentiary to be appointed that night. This meeting would be held between the two armies.
The king passed the night in great uneasiness. All day the weather had threatened to turn to rain, and we have already said how rapidly the Taro could swell; the river, fordable to-day, might from tomorrow onwards prove an insurmountable obstacle; and possibly the delay had only been asked for with a view to putting the French army in a worse position. As a fact the night had scarcely come when a terrible storm arose, and so long as darkness lasted, great rumblings were heard in the Apennines, and the sky was brilliant with lightning. At break of day, however, it seemed to be getting a little calmer, though the Taro, only a streamlet the day before, had become a torrent by this time, and was rapidly rising. So at six in the morning, the king, ready armed and on horseback, summoned Commines and bade him make his way to the rendezvous that the Venetian 'proveditori' had assigned. But scarcely had he contrived to give the order when loud cries were heard coming from the extreme right of the French army. The Stradiotes, under cover of the wood stretching between the two camps, had surprised an outpost, and first cutting the soldiers' throats, were carrying off their heads in their usual way at the saddle-bow. A detachment of cavalry was sent in pursuit; but, like wild animals, they had retreated to their lair in the woods, and there disappeared.
The king spent the night feeling very anxious. All day, the weather had been threatening rain, and we’ve already mentioned how quickly the Taro could rise; the river, which was crossable today, might become impossible to cross starting tomorrow, and maybe the delay was intended to disadvantage the French army. As night fell, a fierce storm broke out, and throughout the darkness, loud rumbles were heard in the Apennines, with lightning illuminating the sky. However, by dawn, things seemed to settle down a bit, but the Taro, which had just been a small stream the day before, had turned into a rushing torrent and was rising rapidly. So, at six in the morning, the king, fully armed and on horseback, called for Commines and told him to head to the meeting point assigned by the Venetian ‘proveditori.’ Just as he was about to give the order, loud shouts erupted from the far right of the French army. The Stradiotes, hiding in the woods between the two camps, had ambushed an outpost, and after slitting the soldiers' throats, were taking their heads in their usual manner at the saddle-bow. A cavalry unit was sent to chase them, but like wild animals, they had retreated to their den in the woods and disappeared.
This unexpected engagement, in all probability arranged beforehand by the Spanish and German envoys, produced on the whole army the effect of a spark applied to a train of gunpowder. Commines and the Venetian 'proveditori' each tried in vain to arrest the combat on either side. Light troops, eager for a skirmish, and, in the usual fashion of those days, prompted only by that personal courage which led them on to danger, had already come to blows, rushing down into the plain as though it were an amphitheatre where they might make a fine display of arms. For a moment the young king, drawn on by example, was on the point of forgetting the responsibility of a general in his zeal as a soldier; but this first impulse was checked by Marechal de Gie, Messire Claude de la Chatre de Guise, and M. de la Trimauille, who persuaded Charles to adopt the wiser plan, and to cross the Taro without seeking a battle,—at the same time without trying to avoid it, should the enemy cross the river from their camp and attempt to block his passage. The king accordingly, following the advice of his wisest and bravest captains, thus arranged his divisions.
This unexpected engagement, likely set up in advance by the Spanish and German envoys, had a major impact on the whole army. Commines and the Venetian 'proveditori' both tried without success to stop the fighting on either side. Light troops, eager for a fight and, as was common back then, driven solely by personal bravery that led them into danger, had already begun to clash, rushing down into the plain as if it were an arena for a grand display of arms. For a moment, the young king, inspired by the scene, almost forgot his responsibilities as a general in his enthusiasm as a soldier; however, this initial urge was restrained by Marechal de Gie, Messire Claude de la Chatre de Guise, and M. de la Trimauille, who persuaded Charles to take the more sensible course and cross the Taro without seeking a battle—while also being prepared to engage if the enemy attempted to cross the river from their camp and block his way. Following the advice of his wise and brave captains, the king organized his divisions accordingly.
The first comprised the van and a body of troops whose duty it was to support them. The van consisted of three hundred and fifty men-at-arms, the best and bravest of the army, under the command of Marechal de Gie and Jacques Trivulce; the corps following them consisted of three thousand Swiss, under the command of Engelbert der Cleves and de Larnay, the queen's grand equerry; next came three hundred archers of the guard, whom the king had sent to help the cavalry by fighting in the spaces between them.
The first group consisted of the front line and a support unit. The front line had three hundred and fifty elite soldiers, the best and bravest of the army, led by Marshal de Gie and Jacques Trivulce. Behind them were three thousand Swiss soldiers, commanded by Engelbert der Cleves and de Larnay, the queen’s chief equerry. Next were three hundred archers from the guard, whom the king had sent to help the cavalry by filling in the gaps between them.
The second division, commanded by the king in person and forming the middle of the army, was composed of the artillery, under Jean de Lagrange, a hundred gentlemen of the guard with Gilles Carrone for standard-bearer, pensioners of the king's household under Aymar de Prie, some Scots, and two hundred cross-bowmen on horseback, with French archers besides, led by M. de Crussol.
The second division, led by the king himself and placed in the center of the army, consisted of the artillery commanded by Jean de Lagrange, a hundred gentlemen of the guard with Gilles Carrone as the standard-bearer, the king's household pensioners under Aymar de Prie, some Scots, and two hundred mounted crossbowmen, along with French archers led by M. de Crussol.
Lastly, the third division, i.e. the rear, preceded by six thousand beasts of burden bearing the baggage, was composed of only three hundred men-at-arms, commanded by de Guise and by de la Trimouille: this was the weakest part of the army.
Finally, the third division, which was at the back, consisted of six thousand pack animals carrying the supplies and only had three hundred knights, led by de Guise and de la Trimouille: this was the weakest section of the army.
When this arrangement was settled, Charles ordered the van to cross the river, just at the little town of Fornovo. This was done at once, the riders getting wet up to their knees, and the footmen holding to the horses' tails. As soon as he saw the last soldiers of his first division on the opposite bank, he started himself to follow the same road and cross at the same ford, giving orders to de Guise and de la Trimouille to regulate the march of the rear guard by that of the centre, just as he had regulated their march by that of the van. His orders were punctually carried out; and about ten o'clock in the morning the whole French army was on the left bank of the Taro: at the same time, when it seemed certain from the enemy's arrangements that battle was imminent, the baggage, led by the captain, Odet de Reberac, was separated from the rear guard, and retired to the extreme left.
Once the plan was established, Charles directed the van to cross the river at the small town of Fornovo. They did it immediately, with the riders getting soaked up to their knees and the footmen holding onto the horses' tails. As soon as he saw the last soldiers of his first division on the opposite bank, he started to follow the same route and cross at the same spot, instructing de Guise and de la Trimouille to coordinate the movement of the rear guard with that of the center, just as he had organized their march with that of the van. His orders were quickly carried out; by around ten o'clock in the morning, the entire French army was on the left bank of the Taro. At the same time, as it became clear from the enemy's setup that battle was imminent, the baggage, led by Captain Odet de Reberac, was separated from the rear guard and moved to the far left.
Now, Francisco de Gonzaga, general-in-chief of the confederate troops, had modelled his plans on those of the King of France; by his orders, Count de Cajazzo, with four hundred men-at-arms and two thousand infantry, had crossed the Taro where the Venetian camp lay, and was to attack the French van; while Gonzaga himself, following the right bank as far as Fornovo, would go over the river by the same ford that Charles had used, with a view to attacking his rear. Lastly, he had placed the Stradiotes between these two fords, with orders to cross the river in their turn, so soon as they saw the French army attacked both in van and in the rear, and to fall upon its flank. Not content with offensive measures, Gonzaga had also made provision for retreat by leaving three reserve corps on the right bank, one to guard the camp under the instruction of the Venetian 'provveditori', and the other two arranged in echelon to support each other, the first commanded by Antonio di Montefeltro, the second by Annibale Bentivoglio.
Now, Francisco de Gonzaga, the commander of the allied forces, had based his plans on those of the King of France. By his orders, Count de Cajazzo, with four hundred cavalry and two thousand infantry, had crossed the Taro where the Venetian camp was set up and was getting ready to attack the French front. Gonzaga himself planned to follow the right bank of the river up to Fornovo, then cross at the same place that Charles had used, intending to hit the French from behind. Finally, he had stationed the Stradiotes between these two fords, instructing them to cross the river as soon as they saw the French army being attacked from both the front and the back, and to strike at its side. Not content with just offensive strategies, Gonzaga also planned for a retreat by leaving three reserve groups on the right bank: one to protect the camp under the direction of the Venetian 'provveditori', and the other two arranged in echelon to support each other, the first led by Antonio di Montefeltro, and the second by Annibale Bentivoglio.
Charles had observed all these arrangements, and had recognised the cunning Italian strategy which made his opponents the finest generals in the world; but as there was no means of avoiding the danger, he had decided to take a sideway course, and had given orders to continue the match; but in a minute the French army was caught between Count di Cajazzo, barring the way with his four hundred men-at-arms and his two thousand infantry, and Gonzaga in pursuit of the rear, as we said before; leading six hundred men-at-arms, the flower of his army, a squadron of Stradiotes, and more than five thousand infantry: this division alone was stronger than the whole of the French army.
Charles had seen all these plans and understood the smart Italian strategy that made his opponents some of the best generals in the world. Since he couldn't avoid the danger, he decided to take an indirect approach and ordered the match to continue. However, within a minute, the French army found itself trapped between Count di Cajazzo, who blocked the way with his four hundred men-at-arms and two thousand infantry, and Gonzaga, who was chasing from the rear with six hundred men-at-arms, the elite of his army, a squadron of Stradiotes, and over five thousand infantry. This force alone was stronger than the entire French army.
When, however, M. de Guise and M. de la Trimouille found themselves pressed in this way, they ordered their two hundred men-at-arms to turn right about face, while at the opposite end—that is, at the head of the army-Marechal de Gie and Trivulce ordered a halt and lances in rest. Meanwhile, according to custom, the king, who, as we said, was in the centre, was conferring knighthood on those gentlemen who had earned the favour either by virtue of their personal powers or the king's special friendship.
But when M. de Guise and M. de la Trimouille felt the heat, they ordered their two hundred soldiers to turn around. Meanwhile, at the front of the army, Marechal de Gie and Trivulce called for a halt and got their lances ready. In the center, the king, as we mentioned earlier, was bestowing knighthood upon those gentlemen who had earned it through their own achievements or the king's special favor.
Suddenly there was heard a terrible clash behind. It was the French rearguard coming to blows with the Marquis of Mantua. In this encounter, where each man had singled out his own foe as though it were a tournament, very many lances were broken, especially those of the Italian knights; for their lances were hollowed so as to be less heavy, and in consequence had less solidity. Those who were thus disarmed at once seized their swords. As they were far more numerous than the French, the king saw them suddenly outflanking his right wing and apparently prepared to surround it; at the same moment loud cries were heard from a direction facing the centre: this meant that the Stradiotes were crossing the river to make their attack.
Suddenly, a fierce battle erupted behind them. The French rearguard was clashing with the Marquis of Mantua. In this fight, it seemed like each man had chosen his own opponent as if it were a tournament, and many lances broke, especially those of the Italian knights; their lances were lighter and less durable. Those who lost their lances quickly grabbed their swords. Since they were significantly outnumbering the French, the king noticed they were suddenly flanking his right wing and appeared ready to surround it. At the same time, loud shouts were heard from the center, indicating that the Stradiotes were crossing the river to launch their attack.
The king at once ordered his division into two detachments, and giving one to Bourbon the bastard, to make head against the Stradiotes, he hurried with the second to the rescue of the van, flinging himself into the very midst of the melee, striking out like a king, and doing as steady work as the lowest in rank of his captains. Aided by the reinforcement, the rearguard made a good stand, though the enemy were five against one, and the combat in this part continued to rage with wonderful fury.
The king swiftly split his forces into two groups. He assigned one group to Bourbon the bastard to tackle the Stradiotes and hurried with the other to reinforce the front line, throwing himself directly into the chaos and fighting just as fiercely as his lowest-ranking captains. With this added support, the rearguard held their position well, despite being outnumbered five to one, and the fighting in that area raged on with incredible intensity.
Obeying his orders, Bourbon had thrown himself upon the Stradiotes; but unfortunately, carried off by his horse, he had penetrated so far into the enemy's ranks that he was lost to sight: the disappearance of their chief, the strange dress of their new antagonists, and the peculiar method of their fighting produced a considerable effect on those who were to attack them; and for the moment disorder was the consequence in the centre, and the horse men scattered instead of serrying their ranks and fighting in a body. This false move would have done them serious harm, had not most of the Stradiotes, seeing the baggage alone and undefended, rushed after that in hope of booty, instead of following up their advantage. A great part of the troop nevertheless stayed behind to fight, pressing on the French cavalry and smashing their lances with their fearful scimitars. Happily the king, who had just repulsed the Marquis of Mantua's attack, perceived what was going on behind him, and riding back at all possible speed to the succour of the centre, together with the gentlemen of his household fell upon the Stradiotes, no longer armed with a lance, for that he had just broken, but brandishing his long sword, which blazed about him like lightning, and—either because he was whirled away like Bourbon by his own horse, or because he had allowed his courage to take him too far—he suddenly found himself in the thickest ranks of the Stradiotes, accompanied only by eight of the knights he had just now created, one equerry called Antoine des Ambus, and his standard-bearer. "France, France!" he cried aloud, to rally round him all the others who had scattered; they, seeing at last that the danger was less than they had supposed, began to take their revenge and to pay back with interest the blows they had received from the Stradiotes. Things were going still better for the van, which the Marquis de Cajazzo was to attack; for although he had at first appeared to be animated with a terrible purpose, he stopped short about ten or twelve feet from the French line and turned right about face without breaking a single lance. The French wanted to pursue, but the Marechal de Gie, fearing that this flight might be only a trick to draw off the vanguard from the centre, ordered every man to stay in his place. But the Swiss, who were German, and did not understand the order, or thought it was not meant for them, followed upon their heels, and although on foot caught them up and killed a hundred of them. This was quite enough to throw them into disorder, so that some were scattered about the plain, and others made a rush for the water, so as to cross the river and rejoin their camp.
Following his orders, Bourbon charged at the Stradiotes, but his horse took him so deep into the enemy's ranks that he vanished from sight. The loss of their leader, the strange appearance of the new enemies, and their unique fighting style caused a significant impact on those getting ready to engage them. As a result, chaos broke out in the center, and the cavalry became scattered instead of forming ranks and fighting together. This mistake could have led to serious damage, but many of the Stradiotes, seeing the unguarded baggage, rushed after it in hopes of loot instead of pressing their advantage. A large part of the troop stayed to fight, pressing against the French cavalry and breaking their lances with their deadly scimitars. Fortunately, the king, who had just repelled the Marquis of Mantua's attack, noticed what was happening behind him. He rode back as quickly as he could to assist the center and, along with the gentlemen of his household, charged at the Stradiotes. He no longer had a lance, having just broken it, but waved his long sword, which gleamed around him like lightning. Whether he was carried away like Bourbon by his horse or let his courage take him too far, he suddenly found himself in the thick of the Stradiotes, accompanied only by eight knights he had just appointed, one equerry named Antoine des Ambus, and his standard-bearer. “France, France!” he shouted loudly, trying to rally the scattered troops around him. Realizing that the danger was less than they had thought, they began to fight back and repay the Stradiotes with interest for the blows they had received. Things were looking even better for the front line, which the Marquis de Cajazzo was supposed to attack. Though he initially seemed fiercely determined, he suddenly stopped about ten or twelve feet from the French line and turned around without breaking a single lance. The French wanted to chase him, but Marechal de Gie, worried that this retreat might be a trick to lure the vanguard away from the center, ordered everyone to hold their ground. However, the Swiss, who were German and either misunderstood the command or thought it didn’t apply to them, followed closely behind and, despite being on foot, caught up and killed a hundred of them. This was enough to cause panic, leading some to scatter across the plain while others rushed for the river in an attempt to cross and rejoin their camp.
When the Marechal de Gie saw this, he detached a hundred of his own men to go to the aid of the king, who was continuing to fight with unheard-of courage and running the greatest risks, constantly separated as he was from his gentlemen, who could not follow him; for wherever there was danger, thither he rushed, with his cry of "France," little troubling himself as to whether he was followed or not. And it was no longer with his sword that he fought; that he had long ago broken, like his lance, but with a heavy battle-axe, whose every blow was mortal whether cut or pierced. Thus the Stradiotes, already hard pressed by the king's household and his pensioners, soon changed attack for defence and defence for flight. It was at this moment that the king was really in the greatest danger; for he had let himself be carried away in pursuit of the fugitives, and presently found himself all alone, surrounded by these men, who, had they not been struck with a mighty terror, would have had nothing to do but unite and crush him and his horse together; but, as Commines remarks, "He whom God guards is well guarded, and God was guarding the King of France."
When Marechal de Gie saw this, he sent a hundred of his men to assist the king, who was bravely fighting against overwhelming odds, always separated from his followers, who couldn't keep up with him. Wherever there was danger, he charged in, shouting "France," not caring whether anyone followed him. He was no longer using his sword, which he had broken long ago, like his lance, but instead wielding a heavy battle-axe, delivering deadly blows whether cutting or piercing. As a result, the Stradiotes, already pressured by the king’s troops and supporters, quickly shifted from attacking to defending, and then from defense to fleeing. In that moment, the king was truly in the greatest danger; he had pursued the fleeing enemies and found himself isolated, surrounded by these men who, if they hadn't been paralyzed with fear, could easily have teamed up to overpower him and his horse. However, as Commines remarks, "He whom God guards is well guarded, and God was guarding the King of France."
All the same, at this moment the French were sorely pressed in the rear; and although de Guise and de la Trimouille held out as firmly as it was possible to hold, they would probably have been compelled to yield to superior numbers had not a double aid arrived in time: first the indefatigable Charles, who, having nothing more to do among the fugitives, once again dashed into the midst of the fight, next the servants of the army, who, now that they were set free from the Stradiotes and saw their enemies put to flight, ran up armed with the axes they habitually used to cut down wood for building their huts: they burst into the middle of the fray, slashing at the horses' legs and dealing heavy blows that smashed in the visors of the dismounted horsemen.
Even so, at that moment, the French were in serious trouble in the back; and although de Guise and de la Trimouille held their ground as best they could, they probably would have had to surrender to the larger forces if it weren't for timely double assistance: first, the tireless Charles, who, with nothing left to do with the fleeing troops, charged back into the thick of the battle; next, the army's servants, who, now that they were free from the Stradiotes and saw their enemies retreating, rushed in armed with the axes they usually used to chop wood for their huts: they surged into the chaos, striking at the horses' legs and delivering heavy blows that smashed the visors of the dismounted horsemen.
The Italians could not hold out against this double attack; the 'furia francese' rendered all their strategy and all their calculations useless, especially as for more than a century they had abandoned their fights of blood and fury for a kind of tournament they chose to regard as warfare; so, in spite of all Gonzaga's efforts, they turned their backs upon the French rear and took to flight; in the greatest haste and with much difficulty they recrossed the torrent, which was swollen even more now by the rain that had been falling during the whole time of the battle.
The Italians couldn’t handle this double attack; the 'furia francese' rendered all their strategies and plans useless, especially since they had been treating real battles like a tournament for over a hundred years, thinking that was warfare. So, despite all of Gonzaga's efforts, they turned away from the French forces and ran. In a rush and with a lot of effort, they crossed the raging stream again, which had swollen even more from the rain that had been falling during the battle.
Some thought fit to pursue the vanquished, for there was now such disorder in their ranks that they were fleeing in all directions from the battlefield where the French had gained so glorious a victory, blocking up the roads to Parma and Bercetto. But Marechal de Gie and de Guise and de la Trimouille, who had done quite enough to save them from the suspicion of quailing before imaginary dangers, put a stop to this enthusiasm, by pointing out that it would only be risking the loss of their present advantage if they tried to push it farther with men and horses so worn out. This view was adopted in spite of the opinion of Trivulce, Camillo Vitelli, and Francesco Secco, who were all eager to follow up the victory.
Some believed it was a good idea to pursue the defeated enemies, as their troops were so disorganized that they were scattering in all directions from the battlefield where the French had won a brilliant victory, blocking the roads to Parma and Bercetto. However, Marechal de Gie, de Guise, and de la Trimouille, who had already shown they weren't intimidated by fabricated threats, put an end to this eagerness by pointing out that pushing further could jeopardize their current advantage, given how exhausted their men and horses were. This viewpoint was accepted despite the opinions of Trivulce, Camillo Vitelli, and Francesco Secco, who were all eager to take advantage of the victory.
The king retired to a little village on the left bank of the Taro, and took shelter in a poor house. There he disarmed, being perhaps among all the captains and all the soldiers the man who had fought best.
The king retreated to a small village on the left bank of the Taro and took shelter in a modest house. There, he set down his weapons, possibly being the strongest fighter among all the captains and soldiers.
During the night the torrent swelled so high that the Italian army could not have pursued, even if they had laid aside their fears. The king did not propose to give the appearance of flight after a victory, and therefore kept his army drawn up all day, and at night went on to sleep at Medesano, a little village only a mile lower down than the hamlet where he rested after the fight. But in the course of the night he reflected that he had done enough for the honour of his arms in fighting an army four times as great as his own and killing three thousand men, and then waiting a day and a half to give them time to take their revenge; so two hours before daybreak he had the fires lighted, that the enemy might suppose he was remaining in camp; and every man mounting noiselessly, the whole French army, almost out of danger by this time, proceeded on their march to Borgo San Donnino.
During the night, the river rose so high that the Italian army couldn’t have pursued them, even if they wanted to. The king didn’t want to appear as if he was fleeing after a victory, so he kept his army in position all day and decided to sleep in Medesano, a small village just a mile from where he rested after the battle. However, during the night, he realized he had already shown enough honor in battle by fighting an army four times larger and killing three thousand men, then waiting a day and a half to let them regroup. So, two hours before dawn, he had the fires lit to make the enemy think he was still in camp; and as everyone mounted quietly, the entire French army, now nearly out of danger, continued their march to Borgo San Donnino.
While this was going on, the pope returned to Rome, where news highly favourable to his schemes was not slow to reach his ears. He learned that Ferdinand had crossed from Sicily into Calabria with six thousand volunteers and a considerable number of Spanish horse and foot, led, at the command of Ferdinand and Isabella, by the famous Gonzalva de Cordova, who arrived in Italy with a great reputation, destined to suffer somewhat from the defeat at Seminara. At almost the same time the French fleet had been beaten by the Aragonese; moreover, the battle of the Taro, though a complete defeat for the confederates, was another victory for the pope, because its result was to open a return to France for that man whom he regarded as his deadliest foe. So, feeling that he had nothing more to fear from Charles, he sent him a brief at Turin, where he had stopped for a short time to give aid to Novara, therein commanding him, by virtue of his pontifical authority, to depart out of Italy with his army, and to recall within ten days those of his troops that still remained in the kingdom of Naples, on pain of excommunication, and a summons to appear before him in person.
While this was happening, the pope returned to Rome, where he quickly received good news about his plans. He learned that Ferdinand had moved from Sicily to Calabria with six thousand volunteers and a large number of Spanish troops, led by the famous Gonzalva de Cordova, who came to Italy with a strong reputation but was destined to face some setbacks after the defeat at Seminara. Almost at the same time, the French fleet was defeated by the Aragonese; furthermore, the battle of the Taro, though a complete loss for the confederates, was still another victory for the pope because it opened a path back to France for the man he considered his greatest enemy. Feeling he no longer had anything to fear from Charles, he sent him a message in Turin, where he had briefly stopped to assist Novara, commanding him, by his papal authority, to leave Italy with his army and to withdraw any remaining troops in the kingdom of Naples within ten days, under the threat of excommunication and a summons to appear before him in person.
Charles VIII replied:
Charles VIII responded:
That he did not understand how the pope, the chief of the league, ordered him to leave Italy, whereas the confederates had not only refused him a passage, but had even attempted, though unsuccessfully, as perhaps His Holiness knew, to cut off his return into France;
He didn't understand how the pope, the leader of the league, told him to leave Italy when the allies had not only denied him passage but had also attempted, though unsuccessfully, to block his return to France, which His Holiness might have known.
That, as to recalling his troops from Naples, he was not so irreligious as to do that, since they had not entered the kingdom without the consent and blessing of His Holiness;
He wasn't disrespectful enough to pull his troops out of Naples, especially since they had come into the kingdom with the approval and support of His Holiness;
That he was exceedingly surprised that the pope should require his presence in person at the capital of the Christian world just at the present time, when six weeks previously, at the time of his return from Naples, although he ardently desired an interview with His Holiness, that he might offer proofs of his respect and obedience, His Holiness, instead of according this favour, had quitted Rome so hastily on his approach that he had not been able to come up with him by any efforts whatsoever. On this point, however, he promised to give His Holiness the satisfaction he desired, if he would engage this time to wait for him: he would therefore return to Rome so soon as the affairs that brought him back to his own kingdom had been satisfactorily, settled.
He was really surprised that the pope wanted him to be there in person at the heart of the Christian world right now, especially since six weeks ago, on his way back from Naples, he had been eager for a meeting with His Holiness to show his respect and loyalty. Instead of granting him this favor, His Holiness had left Rome so quickly upon his arrival that he hadn’t been able to catch up with him despite all his efforts. However, he promised to give His Holiness the satisfaction he sought if the pope would agree to wait for him this time; he would return to Rome as soon as the issues that brought him back to his own kingdom were resolved satisfactorily.
Although in this reply there was a touch of mockery and defiance, Charles was none the less compelled by the circumstances of the case to obey the pope's strange brief. His presence was so much needed in France that, in spite of the arrival of a Swiss reinforcement, he was compelled to conclude a peace with Ludovico Sforza, whereby he yielded Novara to him; while Gilbert de Montpensier and d'Aubigny, after defending, inch by inch, Calabria, the Basilicate, and Naples, were obliged to sign the capitulation of Atella, after a siege of thirty-two days, on the 20th of July, 1496. This involved giving back to Ferdinand II, King of Naples, all the palaces and fortresses of his kingdom; which indeed he did but enjoy for three months, dying of exhaustion on the 7th of September following, at the Castello della Somma, at the foot of Vesuvius; all the attentions lavished upon him by his young wife could not repair the evil that her beauty had wrought.
Even though there was some sarcasm and resistance in his response, Charles still felt he had to obey the pope's unusual order because of the circumstances. His presence in France was so important that, even with Swiss reinforcements arriving, he had to negotiate peace with Ludovico Sforza, which ended with him giving Novara to Sforza. Meanwhile, Gilbert de Montpensier and d'Aubigny, after fiercely defending Calabria, Basilicate, and Naples, had no option but to sign the capitulation of Atella after a thirty-two-day siege on July 20, 1496. This meant returning all the palaces and fortresses of his kingdom to Ferdinand II, King of Naples, who only enjoyed them for three months before dying from exhaustion on September 7th at the Castello della Somma, at the base of Vesuvius; no amount of care from his young wife could reverse the damage caused by her beauty.
His uncle Frederic succeeded; and so, in the three years of his papacy, Alexander VI had seen five kings upon the throne of Naples, while he was establishing himself more firmly upon his own pontifical seat—Ferdinand I, Alfonso I, Charles VIII, Ferdinand II, and Frederic. All this agitation about his throne, this rapid succession of sovereigns, was the best thing possible for Alexander; for each new monarch became actually king only on condition of his receiving the pontifical investiture. The consequence was that Alexander was the only gainer in power and credit by these changes; for the Duke of Milan and the republics of Florence and Venice had successively recognised him as supreme head of the Church, in spite of his simony; moreover, the five kings of Naples had in turn paid him homage. So he thought the time had now come for founding a mighty family; and for this he relied upon the Duke of Gandia, who was to hold all the highest temporal dignities; and upon Caesar Borgia, who was to be appointed to all the great ecclesiastical offices. The pope made sure of the success of these new projects by electing four Spanish cardinals, who brought up the number of his compatriots in the Sacred College to twenty-two, thus assuring him a constant and certain majority.
His uncle Frederic took charge, and during his three years as pope, Alexander VI saw five kings on the throne of Naples while he was strengthening his own position as pope—Ferdinand I, Alfonso I, Charles VIII, Ferdinand II, and Frederic. All this chaos around his throne and the rapid change of rulers actually worked in Alexander's favor; every new king could only become king with the pope's approval. As a result, Alexander emerged as the true power player from these changes; the Duke of Milan and the republics of Florence and Venice all recognized him as the supreme leader of the Church, despite his corruption. Moreover, each of the five kings of Naples paid him tribute. He felt it was time to build a powerful dynasty; for this, he relied on the Duke of Gandia to occupy all the top secular positions and on Caesar Borgia to take on all the major church roles. The pope ensured the success of these new plans by electing four Spanish cardinals, bringing his countrymen in the Sacred College to twenty-two, which provided him with a steady and reliable majority.
The first requirement of the pope's policy was to clear away from the neighbourhood of Rome all those petty lords whom most people call vicars of the Church, but whom Alexander called the shackles of the papacy. We saw that he had already begun this work by rousing the Orsini against the Colonna family, when Charles VIII's enterprise compelled him to concentrate all his mental resources, and also the forces of his States, so as to secure his own personal safety.
The primary goal of the pope's policy was to eliminate all the minor lords around Rome, who many people call the church's representatives, but whom Alexander described as the chains of the papacy. We noticed that he had already begun this effort by stirring up the Orsini against the Colonna family, when Charles VIII's actions required him to concentrate all his thoughts and the resources of his states on ensuring his own safety.
It had come about through their own imprudent action that the Orsini, the pope's old friends, were now in the pay of the French, and had entered the kingdom of Naples with them, where one of them, Virginio, a very important member of their powerful house, had been taken prisoner during the war, and was Ferdinand II's captive. Alexander could not let this opportunity escape him; so, first ordering the King of Naples not to release a man who, ever since the 1st of June, 1496, had been a declared rebel, he pronounced a sentence of confiscation against Virginio Orsini and his whole family in a secret consistory, which sat on the 26th of October following—that is to say, in the early days of the reign of Frederic, whom he knew to be entirely at his command, owing to the King's great desire of getting the investiture from him; then, as it was not enough to declare the goods confiscated, without also dispossessing the owners, he made overtures to the Colonna family, saying he would commission them, in proof of their new bond of friendship, to execute the order given against their old enemies under the direction of his son Francesco, Duke of Gandia. In this fashion he contrived to weaken his neighbours each by means of the other, till such time as he could safely attack and put an end to conquered and conqueror alike.
Because of their own reckless actions, the Orsini, who had been the pope's old allies, were now working with the French and had entered the kingdom of Naples alongside them. One of them, Virginio, a key member of their powerful family, had been captured during the war and was now a prisoner of Ferdinand II. Alexander couldn't let this opportunity go to waste; so, first, he instructed the King of Naples not to release a man who had been a declared rebel since June 1, 1496. He then issued a confiscation order against Virginio Orsini and his entire family in a secret consistory that met on October 26 of that year—that is, in the early days of Frederic's reign, who he knew he could easily control due to the King’s strong desire to receive the investiture from him. Then, since merely declaring their property confiscated wasn't enough without also taking control from the owners, he contacted the Colonna family, proposing that they execute the order against their old enemies under the supervision of his son Francesco, Duke of Gandia, as a show of their new alliance. This way, he managed to weaken each of his neighbors through the other until he could safely attack and eliminate both the conquerors and the conquered.
The Colonna family accepted this proposition, and the Duke of Gandia was named General of the Church: his father in his pontifical robes bestowed on him the insignia of this office in the church of St. Peter's at Rome.
The Colonna family accepted this proposal, and the Duke of Gandia was named General of the Church: his father, dressed in papal robes, presented him with the symbols of this role in St. Peter's Basilica in Rome.
CHAPTER 7
Matters went forward as Alexander had wished, and before the end of the year the pontifical army had seized a great number of castles and fortresses that belonged to the Orsini, who thought themselves already lost when Charles VIII came to the rescue. They had addressed themselves to him without much hope that he could be of real use to there, with his want of armed troops and his preoccupation with his own affairs. He, however, sent Carlo Orsini, son of Virginio, the prisoner, and Vitellozzo Vitelli, brother of Camillo Vitelli, one of the three valiant Italian condottieri who had joined him and fought for him at the crossing of the Taro: These two captains, whose courage and skill were well known, brought with them a considerable sum of money from the liberal coffers of Charles VIII. Now, scarcely had they arrived at Citta di Castello, the centre of their little sovereignty, and expressed their intention of raising a band of soldiers, when men presented themselves from all sides to fight under their banner; so they very soon assembled a small army, and as they had been able during their stay among the French to study those matters of military organisation in which France excelled, they now applied the result of their learning to their own troops: the improvements were mainly certain changes in the artillery which made their manoeuvres easier, and the substitution for their ordinary weapons of pikes similar in form to the Swiss pikes, but two feet longer. These changes effected, Vitellozzo Vitelli spent three or four months in exercising his men in the management of their new weapons; then, when he thought them fit to make good use of these, and when he had collected more or less help from the towns of Perugia, Todi, and Narni, where the inhabitants trembled lest their turn should come after the Orsini's, as the Orsini's had followed on the Colonnas', he marched towards Braccianno, which was being besieged by the Duke of Urbino, who had been lent to the pope by the Venetians, in virtue of the treaty quoted above.
Mattersunfolded as Alexander planned, and by the end of the year, the papal army had gained control of many castles and fortresses owned by the Orsini, who felt doomed when Charles VIII came to their aid. They had reached out to him with little hope for real assistance, given his lack of troops and focus on his own issues. Still, he sent Carlo Orsini, the son of the imprisoned Virginio, and Vitellozzo Vitelli, brother of Camillo Vitelli, one of the three courageous Italian commanders who had joined him and fought alongside him at the crossing of the Taro. These two leaders, known for their bravery and skill, brought a substantial amount of money from Charles VIII’s generous funds. As soon as they arrived in Citta di Castello, the heart of their small territory, and announced their intention to raise an army, recruits came from all directions to fight under their banner; they quickly assembled a small army. Having spent time in France learning about military organization, which France was great at, they applied their knowledge to their own troops. The improvements mainly included changes in artillery that made maneuvers easier and replacing their standard weapons with pikes similar to Swiss pikes, but two feet longer. After implementing these changes, Vitellozzo Vitelli spent three or four months training his men to use their new weapons. Once he believed they were ready and had gathered additional support from the towns of Perugia, Todi, and Narni—where people feared they might be next after the Orsini, just as the Orsini had followed the Colonnas—he marched towards Braccianno, which was under siege by the Duke of Urbino, who had been sent by the Venetians to assist the pope under the previously mentioned treaty.
The Venetian general, when he heard of Vitelli's approach, thought he might as well spare him half his journey, and marched out to confront him: the two armies met in the Soriano road, and the battle straightway began. The pontifical army had a body of eight hundred Germans, on which the Dukes of Urbino and Gandia chiefly relied, as well they might, for they were the best troops in the world; but Vitelli attacked these picked men with his infantry, who, armed with their formidable pikes, ran them through, while they with arms four feet shorter had no chance even of returning the blows they received; at the same time Vitelli's light troops wheeled upon the flank, following their most rapid movements, and silencing the enemy's artillery by the swiftness and accuracy of their attack. The pontifical troops were put to flight, though after a longer resistance than might have been expected when they had to sustain the attack of an army so much better equipped than their own; with them they bore to Ronciglione the Duke of Gandia, wounded in the face by a pike-thrust, Fabrizia Colonna, and the envoy; the Duke of Urbino, who was fighting in the rear to aid the retreat, was taken prisoner with all his artillery and the baggage of the conquered army. But this success, great as it was, did not so swell the pride of Vitellozza Vitelli as to make him oblivious of his position. He knew that he and the Orsini together were too weak to sustain a war of such magnitude; that the little store of money to which he owed the existence of his army would very soon be expended and his army would disappear with it. So he hastened to get pardoned for the victory by making propositions which he would very likely have refused had he been the vanquished party; and the pope accepted his conditions without demur; during the interval having heard that Trivulce had just recrossed the Alps and re-entered Italy with three thousand Swiss, and fearing lest the Italian general might only be the advance guard of the King of France. So it was settled that the Orsini should pay 70,000 florins for the expenses of the war, and that all the prisoners on both sides should be exchanged without ransom with the single exception of the Duke of Urbino. As a pledge for the future payment of the 70,000 florins, the Orsini handed over to the Cardinals Sforza and San Severino the fortresses of Anguillara and Cervetri; then, when the day came and they had not the necessary money, they gave up their prisoner, the Duke of Urbino, estimating his worth at 40,000 ducats—nearly all the sum required—and handed him over to Alexander on account; he, a rigid observer of engagements, made his own general, taken prisoner in his service, pay, to himself the ransom he owed to the enemy.
The Venetian general, upon hearing about Vitelli's approach, decided to cut his journey short and went out to confront him. The two armies met on the Soriano road, and the battle started quickly. The papal army had a group of eight hundred Germans, which the Dukes of Urbino and Gandia mainly depended on, and rightly so, as they were the best troops around. However, Vitelli launched an attack with his infantry, who, armed with long pikes, easily overpowered these elite soldiers, who had weapons four feet shorter and couldn't counterattack effectively. Meanwhile, Vitelli's light troops flanked the enemy, moving swiftly and silencing their artillery with quick, precise strikes. The papal troops were routed, although they fought longer than expected considering they faced a much better-equipped army. Among the defeated were the wounded Duke of Gandia, struck in the face by a pike, Fabrizia Colonna, and the envoy. The Duke of Urbino, who was fighting in the rear to support the retreat, was captured along with all his artillery and the baggage of the defeated army. Despite this significant win, Vitellozza Vitelli wasn’t blinded by pride. He realized that he and the Orsini were too weak to maintain a large-scale war; the little money he had to support his army would run out soon, causing his forces to vanish. So, he quickly moved to secure a pardon for his victory by proposing terms he would likely have rejected if he had been the one to lose. The pope accepted his terms without hesitation, having learned that Trivulce had just crossed the Alps back into Italy with three thousand Swiss soldiers, fearing this Italian general could be the advance guard for the King of France. Thus, it was agreed that the Orsini would pay 70,000 florins for war expenses, and all prisoners on both sides would be exchanged without ransom, except for the Duke of Urbino. To guarantee future payment of the 70,000 florins, the Orsini handed over the fortresses of Anguillara and Cervetri to Cardinals Sforza and San Severino. Later, when the time came and they didn’t have the necessary funds, they surrendered their prisoner, the Duke of Urbino, valuing him at 40,000 ducats—almost the total amount needed—and handed him over to Alexander on credit. He, a strict observer of agreements, made his own general, who was captured while serving him, pay the ransom he owed to the enemy.
Then the pope had the corpse of Virginio sent to Carlo Orsini and Vitellozzo Vitelli, as he could not send him alive. By a strange fatality the prisoner had died, eight days before the treaty was signed, of the same malady—at least, if we may judge by analogy—that had carried off Bajazet's brother.
Then the pope had Virginio's body sent to Carlo Orsini and Vitellozzo Vitelli, since he couldn't send him alive. In a strange turn of events, the prisoner had died eight days before the treaty was signed, from the same illness—at least, if we compare it—that had claimed Bajazet's brother.
As soon as the peace was signed, Prospero Colonna and Gonzalvo de Cordova, whom the Pope had demanded from Frederic, arrived at Rome with an army of Spanish and Neapolitan troops. Alexander, as he could not utilise these against the Orsini, set them the work of recapturing Ostia, not desiring to incur the reproach of bringing them to Rome for nothing. Gonzalvo was rewarded for this feat by receiving the Rose of Gold from the pope's hand—that being the highest honour His Holiness can grant. He shared this distinction with the Emperor Maximilian, the King of France, the Doge of Venice, and the Marquis of Mantua.
Once the peace treaty was signed, Prospero Colonna and Gonzalvo de Cordova, whom the Pope had requested from Frederic, arrived in Rome with an army of Spanish and Neapolitan soldiers. Alexander, unable to use them against the Orsini, tasked them with recapturing Ostia, not wanting to face backlash for bringing them to Rome without a purpose. Gonzalvo was honored for this achievement by receiving the Rose of Gold from the Pope himself, which is the highest honor His Holiness can bestow. He shared this distinction with Emperor Maximilian, the King of France, the Doge of Venice, and the Marquis of Mantua.
In the midst of all this occurred the solemn festival of the Assumption; in which Gonzalvo was invited to take part. He accordingly left his palace, proceeded in great pomp in the front of the pontifical cavalry, and took his place on the Duke of Gandia's left hand. The duke attracted all eyes by his personal beauty, set off as it was by all the luxury he thought fit to display at this festival. He had a retinue of pages and servants, clad in sumptuous liveries, incomparable for richness with anything heretofore seen in Rome, that city of religious pomp. All these pages and servants rode magnificent horses, caparisoned in velvet trimmed with silver fringe, and bells of silver hanging down every here and there. He himself was in a robe of gold brocade, and wore at his neck a string of Eastern pearls, perhaps the finest and largest that ever belonged to a Christian prince, while on his cap was a gold chain studded with diamonds of which the smallest was worth more than 20,000 ducats. This magnificence was all the more conspicuous by the contrast it presented to Caesar's dress, whose scarlet robe admitted of no ornaments. The result was that Caesar, doubly jealous of his brother, felt a new hatred rise up within him when he heard all along the way the praises of his fine appearance and noble equipment. From this moment Cardinal Valentino decided in his own mind the fate of this man, this constant obstacle in the path of his pride, his love, and his ambition. Very good reason, says Tommaso, the historian, had the Duke of Gandia to leave behind him an impression on the public mind of his beauty and his grandeur at this fete, for this last display was soon to be followed by the obsequies of the unhappy young man.
Amid all this, the solemn festival of the Assumption took place, and Gonzalvo was invited to join. He left his palace and made a grand entrance at the front of the papal cavalry, taking his place to the left of the Duke of Gandia. The duke captured everyone's attention with his good looks, enhanced by the lavishness he displayed at this event. He had a retinue of pages and servants dressed in luxurious outfits, unmatched in richness compared to anything seen in Rome, a city renowned for its religious splendor. All these pages and servants rode stunning horses adorned in velvet with silver trim and silver bells hanging here and there. He himself wore a robe of gold brocade, and around his neck hung a string of Eastern pearls, possibly the finest and largest ever owned by a Christian prince, while his cap was embellished with a gold chain set with diamonds, the smallest of which was worth more than 20,000 ducats. This splendor was even more striking against Caesar's attire, whose simple scarlet robe had no embellishments. As a result, Caesar, already envious of his brother, felt a surge of resentment when he heard compliments about the duke's impressive appearance and noble gear. At that moment, Cardinal Valentino resolved in his mind the fate of the man who was a constant obstacle to his pride, love, and ambition. As Tommaso, the historian, noted, the Duke of Gandia had every reason to leave a lasting impression of his beauty and grandeur at this festival, as this last celebration would soon be followed by the sad funeral of the unfortunate young man.
Lucrezia also had come to Rome, on the pretext of taking part in the solemnity, but really, as we shall see later, with the view of serving as a new instrument for her father's ambition. As the pope was not satisfied with an empty triumph of vanity and display for his son, and as his war with the Orsini had failed to produce the anticipated results, he decided to increase the fortune of his firstborn by doing the very thing which he had accused Calixtus in his speech of doing for him, viz., alienating from the States of the Church the cities of Benevento, Terracino, and Pontecorvo to form, a duchy as an appanage to his son's house. Accordingly this proposition was put forward in a full consistory, and as the college of cardinals was entirely Alexander's, there was no difficulty about carrying his point. This new favour to his elder brother exasperated Caesar, although he was himself getting a share of the paternal gifts; for he had just been named envoy 'a latere' at Frederic's court, and was appointed to crown him with his own hands as the papal representative. But Lucrezia, when she had spent a few days of pleasure with her father and brothers, had gone into retreat at the convent of San Sisto. No one knew the real motive of her seclusion, and no entreaties of Caesar, whose love for her was strange and unnatural, had induced her to defer this departure from the world even until the day after he left for Naples. His sister's obstinacy wounded him deeply, for ever since the day when the Duke of Gandia had appeared in the procession so magnificently attired, he fancied he had observed a coldness in the mistress of his illicit affection, and so far did this increase his hatred of his rival that he resolved to be rid of him at all costs. So he ordered the chief of his sbirri to come and see him the same night.
Lucrezia also arrived in Rome, saying she was there to join in the celebrations, but really, as we’ll see later, she was looking to become a new instrument for her father’s ambitions. The pope wasn’t satisfied with just a display of vanity for his son, and since his conflict with the Orsini didn’t bring the results he wanted, he decided to enhance the fortunes of his eldest son by doing what he had publicly accused Calixtus of doing for him: taking the cities of Benevento, Terracino, and Pontecorvo from the Church's territories to create a duchy for his son. This plan was presented in a full consistory, and since the College of Cardinals was completely loyal to Alexander, it got approved without any issues. This new favor to his older brother frustrated Caesar, even though he was also receiving gifts from their father; he had just been appointed as a papal envoy 'a latere' at Frederic's court and was chosen to crown him as the pope's representative. But Lucrezia, after spending a few days with her father and brothers, retreated to the convent of San Sisto. No one knew the true reason for her withdrawal, and no amount of pleading from Caesar, whose love for her was strange and unnatural, could persuade her to delay leaving the world even until the day after he departed for Naples. His sister’s stubbornness wounded him deeply because ever since the Duke of Gandia made such a striking appearance in the procession, he sensed a coldness from the object of his illicit desire. This only intensified his hatred for his rival to the point where he was determined to eliminate him at any cost. So he called for the head of his henchmen to meet with him that very night.
Michelotto was accustomed to these mysterious messages, which almost always meant his help was wanted in some love affair or some act of revenge. As in either case his reward was generally a large one, he was careful to keep his engagement, and at the appointed hour was brought into the presence of his patron.
Michelotto was familiar with these mysterious messages, which almost always indicated that someone needed his assistance with a romantic situation or a revenge act. Since he typically received a generous reward in either scenario, he made sure to keep his appointment and was brought before his patron at the scheduled time.
Caesar received him leaning against a tall chimney-piece, no longer wearing his cardinal's robe and hat, but a doublet of black velvet slashed with satin of the same colour. One hand toyed mechanically with his gloves, while the other rested on the handle of a poisoned dagger which never left his side. This was the dress he kept for his nocturnal expeditions, so Michelotto felt no surprise at that; but his eyes burned with a flame more gloomy than their wont, and his cheeks, generally pale, were now livid. Michelotto had but to cast one look upon his master to see that Caesar and he were about to share some terrible enterprise.
Caesar was leaning against a tall chimney, no longer in his cardinal's robe and hat, but wearing a black velvet doublet with satin slashes of the same color. One hand mindlessly played with his gloves, while the other rested on the handle of a poisoned dagger that was always by his side. This was his outfit for nighttime activities, so Michelotto wasn't surprised; but his eyes burned with a darker intensity than usual, and his normally pale cheeks were now ashen. Just one look at his master was enough for Michelotto to understand that they were about to set off on some dreadful mission together.
He signed to him to shut the door. Michelotto obeyed. Then, after a moment's silence, during which the eyes of Borgia seemed to burn into the soul of the bravo, who with a careless air stood bareheaded before him, he said, in a voice whose slightly mocking tone gave the only sign of his emotion.
He signaled for him to close the door. Michelotto did as requested. After a short silence, while Borgia's stare felt like it was cutting straight into the assassin's soul, who stood nonchalantly without a hat, he spoke in a tone that held a touch of mockery, the only sign of his emotions.
"Michelotto, how do you think this dress suits me?"
"Michelotto, what do you think of this dress on me?"
Accustomed as he was to his master's tricks of circumlocution, the bravo was so far from expecting this question, that at first he stood mute, and only after a few moments' pause was able to say:
Accustomed to his master's indirect way of speaking, the tough guy was so taken aback by this question that he couldn't answer at first, and only after a few moments of silence was able to say:
"Admirably, monsignore; thanks to the dress, your Excellency has the appearance as well as the true spirit of a captain."
"Great job, Monsignore; thanks to the outfit, Your Excellency looks and really captures the essence of a captain."
"I am glad you think so," replied Caesar. "And now let me ask you, do you know who is the cause that, instead of wearing this dress, which I can only put on at night, I am forced to disguise myself in the daytime in a cardinal's robe and hat, and pass my time trotting about from church to church, from consistory to consistory, when I ought properly to be leading a magnificent army in the battlefield, where you would enjoy a captain's rank, instead of being the chief of a few miserable sbirri?"
"I'm glad you feel that way," Caesar said. "But let me ask you, do you know why, instead of wearing this outfit that I can only put on at night, I have to hide in a cardinal's robe and hat during the day, rushing from church to church, from one meeting to another, when I should be leading a great army on the battlefield, where you could be a captain instead of just the leader of a few miserable enforcers?"
"Yes, monsignore," replied Michelotto, who had divined Caesar's meaning at his first word; "the man who is the cause of this is Francesco, Duke of Gandia, and Benevento, your elder brother."
"Yes, Monsignore," replied Michelotto, who understood Caesar's intent from his first word; "the one behind this is Francesco, Duke of Gandia and Benevento, your older brother."
"Do you know," Caesar resumed, giving no sign of assent but a nod and a bitter smile,—"do you know who has all the money and none of the genius, who has the helmet and none of the brains, who has the sword and no hand to wield it?"
"Do you know," Caesar went on, only agreeing with a nod and a bitter smile, —"do you know who has all the money but none of the skill, who wears the helmet but has no brains, who has the sword but no hand to wield it?"
"That too is the Duke of Gandia," said Michelotto.
"That's the Duke of Gandia, as well," Michelotto said.
"Do you know;" continued Caesar, "who is the man whom I find continually blocking the path of my ambition, my fortune, and my love?"
"Do you know," Caesar went on, "who is the person I keep encountering that's blocking my ambition, my success, and my love?"
"It is the same, the Duke of Gandia," said Michelotto.
"It's the same, the Duke of Gandia," Michelotto said.
"And what do you think of it?" asked Caesar.
"What do you think about it?" Caesar asked.
"I think he must die," replied the man coldly.
"I think he needs to die," the man said冷淡地.
"That is my opinion also, Michelotto," said Caesar, stepping towards him and grasping his hand; "and my only regret is that I did not think of it sooner; for if I had carried a sword at my side instead of a crosier in my hand when the King of France was marching through Italy, I should now have been master of a fine domain. The pope is obviously anxious to aggrandise his family, but he is mistaken in the means he adopts: it is I who ought to have been made duke, and my brother a cardinal. There is no doubt at all that, had he made me duke, I should have contributed a daring and courage to his service that would have made his power far weightier than it is. The man who would make his way to vast dominions and a kingdom ought to trample under foot all the obstacles in his path, and boldly grasp the very sharpest thorns, whatever reluctance his weak flesh may feel; such a man, if he would open out his path to fortune, should seize his dagger or his sword and strike out with his eyes shut; he should not shrink from bathing his hands in the blood of his kindred; he should follow the example offered him by every founder of empire from Romulus to Bajazet, both of whom climbed to the throne by the ladder of fratracide. Yes, Michelotto, as you say, such is my condition, and I am resolved I will not shrink. Now you know why I sent for you: am I wrong in counting upon you?"
"I agree with you, Michelotto," said Caesar, stepping closer and shaking his hand. "My only regret is that I didn’t think of this sooner; if I had carried a sword instead of a crosier when the King of France was passing through Italy, I could have gained control of a large territory. The pope clearly wants to elevate his family, but he’s going about it all wrong: I should have been made duke, and my brother a cardinal. There’s no doubt that if he had made me duke, my boldness and courage would have strengthened his power significantly. A person seeking great lands and a kingdom must eliminate all obstacles in their path and bravely tackle the toughest challenges, regardless of the hesitation their weak body may feel; such a person, to pave their way to success, should grab their dagger or sword and strike without hesitation; they should not shy away from getting their hands dirty with their family's blood; they should follow the example of every empire builder from Romulus to Bajazet, who both ascended to the throne through fratricide. Yes, Michelotto, as you say, this is my situation, and I’m determined to move forward. Now you understand why I called you: am I wrong to count on you?"
As might have been expected, Michelotto, seeing his own fortune in this crime, replied that he was entirely at Caesar's service, and that he had nothing to do but to give his orders as to time, place, and manner of execution. Caesar replied that the time must needs be very soon, since he was on the point of leaving Rome for Naples; as to the place and the mode of execution, they would depend on circumstances, and each of them must look out for an opportunity, and seize the first that seemed favourable.
As expected, Michelotto, realizing he could benefit from this crime, said he was completely at Caesar's service and just needed to know when, where, and how to execute it. Caesar emphasized that they had to act fast since he was about to leave Rome for Naples; the specifics of the location and method would depend on the circumstances, and each of them needed to seek out an opportunity and seize the first one that felt right.
Two days after this resolution had been taken, Caesar learned that the day of his departure was fixed for Thursday the 15th of June: at the same time he received an invitation from his mother to come to supper with her on the 14th. This was a farewell repast given in his honour. Michelotto received orders to be in readiness at eleven o'clock at night.
Two days after this decision, Caesar learned that he was set to leave on Thursday, June 15. He also got an invitation from his mother for dinner on the 14th. This was a farewell dinner in his honor. Michelotto was told to be ready by eleven o'clock at night.
The table was set in the open air in a magnificent vineyard, a property of Rosa Vanozza's in the neighbourhood of San Piero-in-Vinculis: the guests were Caesar Borgia, the hero of the occasion; the Duke of Gandia; Prince of Squillace; Dona Sancha, his wife; the Cardinal of Monte Reale, Francesco Borgia, son of Calixtus III; Don Roderigo Borgia, captain of the apostolic palace; Don Goffredo, brother of the cardinal; Gian Borgia, at that time ambassador at Perugia; and lastly, Don Alfonso Borgia, the pope's nephew: the whole family therefore was present, except Lucrezia, who was still in retreat, and would not come.
The table was set outside in a beautiful vineyard owned by Rosa Vanozza near San Piero-in-Vinculis. The guests included Caesar Borgia, the main focus of the event; the Duke of Gandia; the Prince of Squillace; Dona Sancha, his wife; Cardinal Francesco Borgia of Monte Reale, son of Calixtus III; Don Roderigo Borgia, captain of the apostolic palace; Don Goffredo, the cardinal's brother; Gian Borgia, who was the ambassador in Perugia at that time; and lastly, Don Alfonso Borgia, the pope's nephew. The whole family was there except for Lucrezia, who was still in retreat and wouldn’t be coming.
The repast was magnificent: Caesar was quite as cheerful as usual, and the Duke of Gandia seemed more joyous than he had ever been before.
The meal was fantastic: Caesar was as cheerful as ever, and the Duke of Gandia seemed happier than he had ever been.
In the middle of supper a man in a mask brought him a letter. The duke unfastened it, colouring up with pleasure; and when he had read it answered in these words, "I will come": then he quickly hid the letter in the pocket of his doublet; but quick as he was to conceal it from every eye, Caesar had had time to cast a glance that way, and he fancied he recognised the handwriting of his sister Lucrezia. Meanwhile the messenger had gone off with his answer, no one but Caesar paying the slightest attention to him, for at that period it was the custom for messages to be conveyed by men in domino or by women whose faces were concealed by a veil.
During dinner, a masked man handed him a letter. The duke opened it, and his face brightened with happiness; after reading it, he said, "I'll be there," and quickly slipped the letter into the pocket of his doublet. No matter how quickly he tried to hide it from everyone, Caesar caught a glimpse and thought he recognized his sister Lucrezia's handwriting. Meanwhile, the messenger left with his reply, and no one, except for Caesar, noticed him, as it was usual then for messages to be delivered by men in masks or by women with their faces covered by a veil.
At ten o'clock they rose from the table, and as the air was sweet and mild they walked about a while under the magnificent pine trees that shaded the house of Rosa Vanozza, while Caesar never for an instant let his brother out of his sight. At eleven o'clock the Duke of Gandia bade good-night to his mother. Caesar at once followed suit, alleging his desire to go to the Vatican to bid farewell to the pope, as he would not be able to fulfil this duty on the morrow, his departure being fixed at daybreak. This pretext was all the more plausible since the pope was in the habit of sitting up every night till two or three o'clock in the morning.
At ten o'clock, they got up from the table, and since the air was nice and warm, they took a stroll under the beautiful pine trees that shaded Rosa Vanozza's house, while Caesar kept a close watch on his brother the whole time. At eleven o'clock, the Duke of Gandia said goodnight to his mother. Caesar immediately followed, saying he wanted to go to the Vatican to say goodbye to the pope, since he wouldn’t be able to do it tomorrow because he was leaving at dawn. This excuse was even more convincing because the pope usually stayed up until two or three in the morning.
The two brothers went out together, mounted their horses, which were waiting for them at the door, and rode side by side as far as the Palazzo Borgia, the present home of Cardinal Ascanio Sforza, who had taken it as a gift from Alexander the night before his election to the papacy. There the Duke of Gandia separated from his brother, saying with a smile that he was not intending to go home, as he had several hours to spend first with a fair lady who was expecting him. Caesar replied that he was no doubt free to make any use he liked best of his opportunities, and wished him a very good night. The duke turned to the right, and Caesar to the left; but Caesar observed that the street the duke had taken led in the direction of the convent of San Sisto, where, as we said, Lucrezia was in retreat; his suspicions were confirmed by this observation, and he directed his horse's steps to the Vatican, found the pope, took his leave of him, and received his benediction.
The two brothers went out together, got on their horses waiting for them at the door, and rode side by side to the Palazzo Borgia, which was currently the home of Cardinal Ascanio Sforza, who had received it as a gift from Alexander the night before his election to the papacy. There, the Duke of Gandia said goodbye to his brother, smiling as he mentioned he wasn't planning to go home just yet, since he had a few hours to spend with a beautiful lady who was waiting for him. Caesar replied that he was definitely free to take advantage of his opportunities and wished him a good night. The duke went right, and Caesar went left; but Caesar noticed that the street the duke took was leading toward the convent of San Sisto, where, as we mentioned, Lucrezia was in retreat. His suspicions were confirmed by this observation, so he directed his horse toward the Vatican, found the pope, took his leave, and received his blessing.
From this moment all is wrapped in mystery and darkness, like that in which the terrible deed was done that we are now to relate.
From this point on, everything is covered in mystery and darkness, just like the atmosphere around the horrific act we are about to describe.
This, however, is what is believed.
This is what people believe, though.
The Duke of Gandia, when he quitted Caesar, sent away his servants, and in the company of one confidential valet alone pursued his course towards the Piazza della Giudecca. There he found the same man in a mask who had come to speak to him at supper, and forbidding his valet to follow any farther, he bade him wait on the piazza where they then stood, promising to be on his way back in two hours' time at latest, and to take him up as he passed. And at the appointed hour the duke reappeared, took leave this time of the man in the mask, and retraced his steps towards his palace. But scarcely had he turned the corner of the Jewish Ghetto, when four men on foot, led by a fifth who was on horseback, flung themselves upon him. Thinking they were thieves, or else that he was the victim of some mistake, the Duke of Gandia mentioned his name; but instead of the name checking the murderers' daggers, their strokes were redoubled, and the duke very soon fell dead, his valet dying beside him.
The Duke of Gandia, after leaving Caesar, dismissed his servants and, accompanied only by a trusted valet, made his way to the Piazza della Giudecca. There, he encountered the same masked man who had spoken to him during dinner. He instructed his valet to stop following him and wait in the piazza, assuring him he would return in no more than two hours and would pick him up on the way back. When the time arrived, the duke returned, said farewell to the masked man, and started heading back to his palace. But just as he turned the corner of the Jewish Ghetto, four men on foot, led by a fifth on horseback, ambushed him. Believing they were thieves or that there had been some misunderstanding, the Duke of Gandia shouted his name. However, instead of deterring the attackers, his name only fueled their assault, and soon the duke lay dead, with his valet dying beside him.
Then the man on horseback, who had watched the assassination with no sign of emotion, backed his horse towards the dead body: the four murderers lifted the corpse across the crupper, and walking by the side to support it, then made their way down the lane that leads to the Church of Santa Maria-in-Monticelli. The wretched valet they left for dead upon the pavement. But he, after the lapse of a few seconds, regained some small strength, and his groans were heard by the inhabitants of a poor little house hard by; they came and picked him up, and laid him upon a bed, where he died almost at once, unable to give any evidence as to the assassins or any details of the murder.
Then the man on horseback, who had watched the murder without showing any emotion, backed his horse toward the dead body. The four killers lifted the corpse onto the back of the horse, and as they supported it while walking, they headed down the lane that leads to the Church of Santa Maria-in-Monticelli. They left the unfortunate valet for dead on the pavement. However, after a few seconds, he regained some strength, and his groans were heard by the residents of a nearby small house; they came, picked him up, and laid him on a bed, where he died almost immediately, unable to provide any information about the assassins or details of the murder.
All night the duke was expected home, and all the next morning; then expectation was turned into fear, and fear at last into deadly terror. The pope was approached, and told that the Duke of Gandia had never come back to his palace since he left his mother's house. But Alexander tried to deceive himself all through the rest of the day, hoping that his son might have been surprised by the coming of daylight in the midst of an amorous adventure, and was waiting till the next night to get away in that darkness which had aided his coming thither. But the night, like the day, passed and brought no news. On the morrow, the pope, tormented by the gloomiest presentiments and by the raven's croak of the 'vox populi', let himself fall into the depths of despair: amid sighs and sobs of grief, all he could say to any one who came to him was but these words, repeated a thousand times: "Search, search; let us know how my unhappy son has died."
All night, everyone waited for the duke to come home, and the next morning too; then anticipation turned into fear, and fear eventually grew into pure terror. The pope was informed that the Duke of Gandia hadn’t returned to his palace since he left his mother's house. But Alexander tried to convince himself throughout the day that his son might have gotten caught up in a romantic adventure with the arrival of daylight and was just waiting for nightfall to leave under the cover of darkness that had helped him get there. However, the night, like the day, passed without any news. The next morning, the pope, tormented by dark premonitions and the ominous whispers of the 'vox populi', fell into deep despair: through sighs and sobs of grief, all he could say to anyone who approached him were these words, repeated a thousand times: "Search, search; let us find out how my unfortunate son died."
Then everybody joined in the search; for, as we have said, the Duke of Gandia was beloved by all; but nothing could be discovered from scouring the town, except the body of the murdered man, who was recognised as the duke's valet; of his master there was no trace whatever: it was then thought, not without reason, that he had probably been thrown into the Tiber, and they began to follow along its banks, beginning from the Via della Ripetta, questioning every boatman and fisherman who might possibly have seen, either from their houses or from their boats, what had happened on the river banks during the two preceding nights. At first all inquiries were in vain; but when they had gone up as high as the Via del Fantanone, they found a man at last who said he had seen something happen on the night of the 14th which might very possibly have some bearing on the subject of inquiry. He was a Slav named George, who was taking up the river a boat laden with wood to Ripetta. The following are his own words:
Then everyone joined in the search because, as we said, the Duke of Gandia was loved by all. However, despite searching the town, they found nothing except the body of the murdered man, who was identified as the duke's valet; there was no sign of his master at all. It was then reasonably suspected that he had likely been thrown into the Tiber, so they started searching along its banks, beginning at the Via della Ripetta, asking every boatman and fisherman who might have seen anything from their homes or boats about what had happened along the riverbanks during the past two nights. At first, all inquiries were unproductive, but when they reached the Via del Fantanone, they finally found a man who claimed he saw something on the night of the 14th that could be relevant to the investigation. He was a Slav named George, who was taking a boat loaded with wood up the river to Ripetta. Here are his exact words:
"Gentlemen," he said, "last Wednesday evening, when I had set down my load of wood on the bank, I remained in my boat, resting in the cool night air, and watching lest other men should come and take away what I had just unloaded, when, about two o'clock in the morning, I saw coming out of the lane on the left of San Girolamo's Church two men on foot, who came forward into the middle of the street, and looked so carefully all around that they seemed to have come to find out if anybody was going along the street. When they felt sure that it was deserted, they went back along the same lane, whence issued presently two other men, who used similar precautions to make sure that there was nothing fresh; they, when they found all as they wished, gave a sign to their companions to come and join them; next appeared one man on a dapple-grey horse, which was carrying on the crupper the body of a dead man, his head and arms hanging over on one side and his feet on the other. The two fellows I had first seen exploring were holding him up by the arms and legs. The other three at once went up to the river, while the first two kept a watch on the street, and advancing to the part of the bank where the sewers of the town are discharged into the Tiber, the horseman turned his horse, backing on the river; then the two who were at either side taking the corpse, one by the hands, the other by the feet, swung it three times, and the third time threw it out into the river with all their strength; then at the noise made when the body splashed into the water, the horseman asked, 'Is it done?' and the others answered, 'Yes, sir,' and he at once turned right about face; but seeing the dead man's cloak floating, he asked what was that black thing swimming about. 'Sir,' said one of the men, 'it is his cloak'; and then another man picked up some stones, and running to the place where it was still floating, threw them so as to make it sink under; as soon, as it had quite disappeared, they went off, and after walking a little way along the main road, they went into the lane that leads to San Giacomo. That was all I saw, gentlemen, and so it is all I can answer to the questions you have asked me."
"Gentlemen," he said, "last Wednesday night, after I unloaded my load of wood on the bank, I stayed in my boat, enjoying the cool night air and keeping an eye on my things to make sure no one took what I had just unloaded. Around two in the morning, I saw two men coming out of the lane next to San Girolamo's Church. They stepped into the middle of the street and looked around carefully, as if they were checking for anyone nearby. Once they were sure it was clear, they went back down the same lane, and soon two more men appeared, doing the same checks to make sure nothing was off. When they confirmed everything was fine, they signaled for their companions to join them. Then a man on a dapple-grey horse showed up, carrying the body of a dead man on the back, his head and arms hanging on one side and his feet on the other. The first two men I saw were holding him up by his arms and legs. The other three quickly moved toward the river, while the first two kept watch on the street. As they got to where the town's sewers drain into the Tiber, the horseman turned his horse to back it toward the river. The two men on either side grabbed the corpse, one by the hands and the other by the feet, swung it three times, and on the third swing, threw it into the river with all their strength. When the body splashed into the water, the horseman asked, 'Is it done?' The others replied, 'Yes, sir,' and he immediately turned around. But when he spotted the dead man's cloak floating, he asked what that black object was. 'Sir,' one of the men replied, 'it's his cloak.' Then another man grabbed some stones and ran over to where it was still floating, throwing them to make it sink. Once it was completely gone, they left, walking a short distance down the main road before entering the lane that leads to San Giacomo. That’s all I saw, gentlemen, and that's all I can say in response to your questions."
At these words, which robbed of all hope any who might yet entertain it, one of the pope's servants asked the Slav why, when he was witness of such a deed, he had not gone to denounce it to the governor. But the Slav replied that, since he had exercised his present trade on the riverside, he had seen dead men thrown into the Tiber in the same way a hundred times, and had never heard that anybody had been troubled about them; so he supposed it would be the same with this corpse as the others, and had never imagined it was his duty to speak of it, not thinking it would be any more important than it had been before.
Hearing this, which dashed any remaining hope, one of the pope's servants asked the Slav why he hadn’t reported the incident to the governor, especially since he had seen it happen. The Slav responded that during his time working by the riverside, he had witnessed dead bodies being thrown into the Tiber hundreds of times and had never heard anyone show concern about them. He assumed this corpse would be handled the same way as the others and didn’t think it was his responsibility to bring it up, believing it wouldn’t be any more important than before.
Acting on this intelligence, the servants of His Holiness summoned at once all the boatmen and fishermen who were accustomed to go up and down the river, and as a large reward was promised to anyone who should find the duke's body, there were soon more than a hundred ready for the job; so that before the evening of the same day, which was Friday, two men were drawn out of the water, of whom one was instantly recognised as the hapless duke. At the very first glance at the body there could be no doubt as to the cause of death. It was pierced with nine wounds, the chief one in the throat, whose artery was cut. The clothing had not been touched: his doublet and cloak were there, his gloves in his waistband, gold in his purse; the duke then must have been assassinated not for gain but for revenge.
Acting on this information, the servants of His Holiness quickly summoned all the boatmen and fishermen familiar with navigating the river. With a substantial reward promised to anyone who found the duke's body, over a hundred people were soon ready for the task. By the evening of the same day, which was Friday, two men were pulled from the water, one of whom was immediately identified as the unfortunate duke. Just one look at the body revealed what had happened. He had nine stab wounds, with the most significant one in his throat where the artery had been cut. His clothes were untouched: his doublet and cloak were still there, his gloves in his waistband, and gold in his purse; it was clear that the duke had been killed not for money, but out of revenge.
The ship which carried the corpse went up the Tiber to the Castello Sant' Angelo, where it was set down. At once the magnificent dress was fetched from the duke's palace which he had worn on the day of the procession, and he was clothed in it once more: beside him were placed the insignia of the generalship of the Church. Thus he lay in state all day, but his father in his despair had not the courage to come and look at him. At last, when night had fallen, his most trusty and honoured servants carried the body to the church of the Madonna del Papala, with all the pomp and ceremony that Church and State combined could devise for the funeral of the son of the pope.
The ship that transported the body sailed up the Tiber to Castel Sant' Angelo, where it was laid down. Right away, the splendid outfit from the duke's palace that he had worn during the procession was brought, and he was dressed in it again; next to him were the insignia of the Church's generalship. He lay in state all day, but his father, overwhelmed with grief, didn’t have the courage to come and see him. Finally, when night came, his most trusted and respected servants carried the body to the church of Madonna del Papala, with all the grandeur and ceremony that both the Church and State could provide for the funeral of the pope's son.
Meantime the bloodstained hands of Caesar Borgia were placing a royal crown upon the head of Frederic of Aragon.
Meanwhile, the bloodstained hands of Caesar Borgia were placing a royal crown on Frederic of Aragon's head.
This blow had pierced Alexander's heart very deeply. As at first he did not know on whom his suspicions should fall, he gave the strictest orders for the pursuit of the murderers; but little by little the infamous truth was forced upon him. He saw that the blow which struck at his house came from that very house itself and then his despair was changed to madness: he ran through the rooms of the Vatican like a maniac, and entering the consistory with torn garments and ashes on his head, he sobbingly avowed all the errors of his past life, owning that the disaster that struck his offspring through his offspring was a just chastisement from God; then he retired to a secret dark chamber of the palace, and there shut himself up, declaring his resolve to die of starvation. And indeed for more than sixty hours he took no nourishment by day nor rest by night, making no answer to those who knocked at his door to bring him food except with the wailings of a woman or a roar as of a wounded lion; even the beautiful Giulia Farnese, his new mistress, could not move him at all, and was obliged to go and seek Lucrezia, that daughter doubly loved to conquer his deadly resolve. Lucrezia came out from the retreat where she was weeping for the Duke of Gandia, that she might console her father. At her voice the door did really open, and it was only then that the Duke of Segovia, who had been kneeling almost a whole day at the threshold, begging His Holiness to take heart, could enter with servants bearing wine and food.
This blow hit Alexander really hard. At first, he didn’t know who to blame, so he ordered a thorough search for the murderers. But slowly, the terrible truth became clear to him. He realized that the attack on his family came from within his own house, and his despair turned into madness. He raced through the rooms of the Vatican like a maniac, and when he burst into the consistory with torn clothes and ashes on his head, he sobbed and admitted all the mistakes of his past, accepting that the disaster affecting his family was a fitting punishment from God. Then he locked himself in a dark chamber of the palace, declaring he would starve himself. For more than sixty hours, he refused to eat during the day or sleep at night, responding to those who knocked at his door to bring him food only with the cries of a woman or the roar of a wounded lion. Even the beautiful Giulia Farnese, his new mistress, couldn’t reach him and had to go get Lucrezia, his beloved daughter, to try to break his deadly resolve. Lucrezia came out of her retreat, where she had been crying for the Duke of Gandia, to comfort her father. At the sound of her voice, the door actually opened, and only then could the Duke of Segovia, who had been kneeling at the threshold for nearly a whole day begging His Holiness to find strength, finally enter with servants bringing wine and food.
The pope remained alone with Lucrezia for three days and nights; then he reappeared in public, outwardly calm, if not resigned; for Guicciardini assures us that his daughter had made him understand how dangerous it would be to himself to show too openly before the assassin, who was coming home, the immoderate love he felt for his victim.
The pope spent three days and nights alone with Lucrezia; then he returned to public life, appearing calm on the outside, even if he wasn’t fully accepting. Guicciardini mentions that his daughter made him aware of how dangerous it would be for him to openly display his overwhelming affection for his victim in front of the assassin, who was coming back home.
CHAPTER 8
Caesar remained at Naples, partly to give time to the paternal grief to cool down, and partly to get on with another business he had lately been charged with, nothing else than a proposition of marriage between Lucrezia and Don Alfonso of Aragon, Duke of Bicelli and Prince of Salerno, natural son of Alfonso II and brother of Dona Sancha. It was true that Lucrezia was already married to the lord of Pesaro, but she was the daughter of a father who had received from heaven the right of uniting and disuniting. There was no need to trouble about so trifling a matter: when the two were ready to marry, the divorce would be effected. Alexander was too good a tactician to leave his daughter married to a son-in-law who was becoming useless to him.
CaesarHe stayed in Naples, partly to give his father's grief time to settle and partly to focus on another matter he had recently been assigned: a marriage proposal between Lucrezia and Don Alfonso of Aragon, Duke of Bicelli and Prince of Salerno, who was the illegitimate son of Alfonso II and the brother of Dona Sancha. It was true that Lucrezia was already married to the lord of Pesaro, but she was the daughter of a man who had the divine right to unite and separate marriages. There was no need to worry about such a minor issue: when the time came, they would manage the divorce. Alexander was smart enough not to keep his daughter married to a son-in-law who was no longer useful to him.
Towards the end of August it was announced that the ambassador was coming back to Rome, having accomplished his mission to the new king to his great satisfaction. And thither he returned on the 5th of September,—that is, nearly three months after the Duke of Gandia's death,—and on the next day, the 6th, from the church of Santa Maria Novella, where, according to custom, the cardinals and the Spanish and Venetian ambassadors were awaiting him on horseback at the door, he proceeded to the Vatican, where His Holiness was sitting; there he entered the consistory, was admitted by the pope, and in accordance with the usual ceremonial received his benediction and kiss; then, accompanied once more in the same fashion by the ambassadors and cardinals, he was escorted to his own apartments. Thence he proceeded to, the pope's, as soon as he was left alone; for at the consistory they had had no speech with one another, and the father and son had a hundred things to talk about, but of these the Duke of Gandia was not one, as might have been expected. His name was not once spoken, and neither on that day nor afterwards was there ever again any mention of the unhappy young man: it was as though he had never existed.
At the end of August, it was announced that the ambassador was returning to Rome after successfully completing his mission to the new king, which pleased him greatly. He arrived back on September 5th—almost three months after the Duke of Gandia's death—and the next day, September 6th, from the church of Santa Maria Novella, where the cardinals and the Spanish and Venetian ambassadors were waiting for him on horseback at the entrance as tradition required, he made his way to the Vatican, where the Pope was seated. He entered the consistory, was greeted by the Pope, and, following the usual ceremony, received his blessing and a kiss. Then, accompanied again in the same manner by the ambassadors and cardinals, he was taken to his own quarters. Once alone, he went to see the Pope right away; they hadn’t spoken to each other in the consistory, and the father and son had countless things to discuss, but surprisingly, the Duke of Gandia was not one of them. His name was never mentioned, and neither that day nor at any other time was there ever a reference to the unfortunate young man: it was as if he had never existed.
It was the fact that Caesar brought good news, King Frederic gave his consent to the proposed union; so the marriage of Sforza and Lucrezia was dissolved on a pretext of nullity. Then Frederic authorised the exhumation of D'jem's body, which, it will be remembered, was worth 300,000 ducats.
Caesar shared some good news: King Frederic agreed to the suggested union, so the marriage between Sforza and Lucrezia was canceled under a false pretext. Then Frederic approved the exhumation of D'jem's body, which was valued at 300,000 ducats, just as a reminder.
After this, all came about as Caesar had desired; he became the man who was all-powerful after the pope; but when he was second in command it was soon evident to the Roman people that their city was making a new stride in the direction of ruin. There was nothing but balls, fetes, masquerades; there were magnificent hunting parties, when Caesar—who had begun to cast off his cardinal's robe,—weary perhaps of the colour, appeared in a French dress, followed, like a king by cardinals, envoys and bodyguard. The whole pontifical town, given up like a courtesan to orgies and debauchery, had never been more the home of sedition, luxury, and carnage, according to the Cardinal of Viterba, not even in the days of Nero and Heliogabalus. Never had she fallen upon days more evil; never had more traitors done her dishonour or sbirri stained her streets with blood. The number of thieves was so great, and their audacity such, that no one could with safety pass the gates of the town; soon it was not even safe within them. No house, no castle, availed for defence. Right and justice no longer existed. Money, farce, pleasure, ruled supreme.
After that, everything went according to Caesar's plans; he became the most powerful man after the pope. But while he was second in command, it quickly became clear to the Roman people that their city was on the brink of disaster. It was all about parties, celebrations, and masquerades; there were lavish hunting events where Caesar—who had started to take off his cardinal's robe—maybe tired of the color, appeared in French clothing, followed like a king by cardinals, envoys, and his bodyguards. The entire papal city, indulging like a courtesan in excess and debauchery, had never been more of a hotspot for rebellion, luxury, and bloodshed, according to the Cardinal of Viterba, not even during the times of Nero and Heliogabalus. It had never seen such dire days; there had never been so many traitors bringing disgrace, nor had enforcers stained her streets with blood. The number of thieves was so great, and their audacity so extreme, that no one could safely pass through the town gates; soon it wasn't even safe within the town. No house or castle provided any protection. Right and justice had vanished. Money, theatrics, and pleasure reigned supreme.
Still, the gold was melting as in a furnace at these Fetes; and, by Heaven's just punishment, Alexander and Caesar were beginning to covet the fortunes of those very men who had risen through their simony to their present elevation. The first attempt at a new method of coining money was tried upon the Cardinal Cosenza. The occasion was as follows. A certain dispensation had been granted some time before to a nun who had taken the vows: she was the only surviving heir to the throne of Portugal, and by means of the dispensation she had been wedded to the natural son of the last king. This marriage was more prejudicial than can easily be imagined to the interests of Ferdinand and Isabella of Spain; so they sent ambassadors to Alexander to lodge a complaint against a proceeding of this nature, especially as it happened at the very moment when an alliance was to be formed between the house of Aragon and the Holy See. Alexander understood the complaint, and resolved that all should be set right. So he denied all knowledge of the papal brief though he had as a fact received 60,000 ducats for signing it—and accused the Archbishop of Cosenza, secretary for apostolic briefs, of having granted a false dispensation. By reason of this accusation, the archbishop was taken to the castle of Sant' Angelo, and a suit was begun.
Still, the gold was melting away like it was in a furnace at these festivals; and, due to Heaven's just punishment, Alexander and Caesar were starting to envy the fortunes of the very men who had risen to their current positions through simony. The first attempt at a new way of minting money was directed at Cardinal Cosenza. Here’s what happened. A nun who had taken her vows had been granted a dispensation some time ago: she was the only surviving heir to the throne of Portugal, and because of this dispensation, she had married the illegitimate son of the last king. This marriage was more damaging than can easily be imagined to the interests of Ferdinand and Isabella of Spain; so they sent ambassadors to Alexander to file a complaint about it, especially since it occurred just when an alliance was about to be formed between the house of Aragon and the Holy See. Alexander understood the complaint and decided that everything should be resolved. So he denied any knowledge of the papal brief, even though he had actually received 60,000 ducats for signing it—and accused the Archbishop of Cosenza, who was the secretary for apostolic briefs, of issuing a false dispensation. Because of this accusation, the archbishop was taken to the castle of Sant' Angelo, and a legal case was initiated.
But as it was no easy task to prove an accusation of this nature, especially if the archbishop should persist in maintaining that the dispensation was really granted by the pope, it was resolved to employ a trick with him which could not fail to succeed. One evening the Archbishop of Cosenza saw Cardinal Valentino come into his prison; with that frank air of affability which he knew well how to assume when it could serve his purpose, he explained to the prisoner the embarrassing situation in which the pope was placed, from which the archbishop alone, whom His Holiness looked upon as his best friend, could save him.
Since it was really hard to prove an accusation like this, especially if the archbishop claimed that the pope had actually given the dispensation, they decided to use a trick on him that would definitely work. One evening, the Archbishop of Cosenza saw Cardinal Valentino enter his prison; with that friendly attitude he could adopt when it suited him, he explained to the prisoner the tricky situation the pope was in, which only the archbishop, viewed by His Holiness as his closest friend, could fix.
The archbishop replied that he was entirely at the service of His Holiness.
The archbishop replied that he was fully at the service of His Holiness.
Caesar, on his entrance, found the captive seated, leaning his elbows on a table, and he took a seat opposite him and explained the pope's position: it was an embarrassing one. At the very time of contracting so important an alliance with the house of Aragon as that of Lucrezia and Alfonso, His Holiness could not avow to Ferdinand and Isabella that, for the sake of a few miserable ducats, he had signed a dispensation which would unite in the husband and wife together all the legitimate claims to a throne to which Ferdinand and Isabella had no right at all but that of conquest. This avowal would necessarily put an end to all negotiations, and the pontifical house would fall by the overthrow of that very pedestal which was to have heightened its grandeur. Accordingly the archbishop would understand what the pope expected of his devotion and friendship: it was a simple and straight avowal that he had supposed he might take it upon himself to accord the dispensation. Then, as the sentence to be passed on such an error would be the business of Alexander, the accused could easily imagine beforehand how truly paternal such a sentence would be. Besides, the reward was in the same hands, and if the sentence was that of a father, the recompense would be that of a king. In fact, this recompense would be no less than the honour of assisting as envoy, with the title of cardinal, at the marriage of Lucrezia and Alfonso—a favour which would be very appropriate, since it would be thanks to his devotion that the marriage could take place.
When Caesar walked in, he found the captive sitting with his elbows on a table. He took a seat across from him and explained the pope's situation: it was complicated. While he was establishing an important alliance with the House of Aragon through Lucrezia and Alfonso, His Holiness couldn’t let Ferdinand and Isabella know that, for a few measly coins, he had signed a dispensation to unite the couple with all the legitimate claims to a throne that Ferdinand and Isabella had no right to, except through conquest. Admitting this would ruin all negotiations, and the papal house would collapse, losing the very foundation meant to boost its power. So, the archbishop needed to understand what the pope expected from his loyalty and friendship: a simple confession that he thought he could handle granting the dispensation. Furthermore, since the decision on such an error would be up to Alexander, the accused could easily see how caring that decision would really be. Plus, the reward was also in the same hands, and if the judgment came from a father, the reward would be that of a king. In fact, this reward would be nothing less than the honor of serving as an envoy, with the title of cardinal, at the marriage of Lucrezia and Alfonso—a favor that would be well-deserved since it would be due to his loyalty that the marriage could take place.
The Archbishop of Cosenza knew the men he was dealing with; he knew that to save their own ends they would hesitate at nothing; he knew they had a poison like sugar to the taste and to the smell, impossible to discover in food—a poison that would kill slowly or quickly as the poisoner willed and would leave no trace behind; he knew the secret of the poisoned key that lay always on the pope's mantelpiece, so that when His Holiness wished to destroy some one of his intimates, he bade him open a certain cupboard: on the handle of the key there was a little spike, and as the lock of the cupboard turned stiffly the hand would naturally press, the lock would yield, and nothing would have come of it but a trifling scratch: the scratch was mortal. He knew, too, that Caesar wore a ring made like two lions' heads, and that he would turn the stone on the inside when he was shaking hands with a friend. Then the lions' teeth became the teeth of a viper, and the friend died cursing Borgia. So he yielded, partly through fear, partly blinded by the thought of the reward; and Caesar returned to the Vatican armed with a precious paper, in which the Archbishop of Cosenza admitted that he was the only person responsible for the dispensation granted to the royal nun.
The Archbishop of Cosenza understood the men he was dealing with; he realized that to achieve their own goals, they would do anything. He knew they had a poison that tasted sweet and smelled nice, which was nearly undetectable in food—a poison that could kill slowly or quickly, depending on the poisoner's intentions, leaving no trace. He was aware of the poisoned key that was always on the pope's mantelpiece, so when His Holiness wanted to get rid of one of his close associates, he would tell him to open a specific cupboard: the handle of the key had a small spike, and as the cupboard lock turned stiffly, the person’s hand would naturally press down, the lock would give way, and the only result would be a minor scratch: that scratch was deadly. He also knew that Caesar wore a ring shaped like two lion heads, which he would flip the stone on the inside while shaking hands with a friend. Then the lions' teeth would turn into the fangs of a viper, and the friend would die cursing Borgia. So he gave in, partly out of fear and partly blinded by the thought of the reward; and Caesar returned to the Vatican with a valuable document, in which the Archbishop of Cosenza admitted that he was solely responsible for the dispensation granted to the royal nun.
Two days later, by means of the proofs kindly furnished by the archbishop, the pope; in the presence of the governor of Rome, the auditor of the apostolic chamber, the advocate, and the fiscal attorney, pronounced sentence, condemning the archbishop to the loss of all his benefices and ecclesiastical offices, degradation from his orders, and confiscation of his goods; his person was to be handed over to the civil arm. Two days later the civil magistrate entered the prison to fulfil his office as received from the pope, and appeared before the archbishop, accompanied by a clerk, two servants, and four guards. The clerk unrolled the paper he carried and read out the sentence; the two servants untied a packet, and, stripping the prisoner of his ecclesiastical garments, they reclothed him in a dress of coarse white cloth which only reached down to his knees, breeches of the same, and a pair of clumsy shoes. Lastly, the guards took him, and led him into one of the deepest dungeons of the castle of Sant' Angelo, where for furniture he found nothing but a wooden crucifix, a table, a chair, and a bed; for occupation, a Bible and a breviary, with a lamp to read by; for nourishment, two pounds of bread and a little cask of water, which were to be renewed every three days, together with a bottle of oil for burning in his lamp.
Two days later, using the evidence kindly provided by the archbishop, the pope announced a verdict in front of the governor of Rome, the auditor of the apostolic chamber, the advocate, and the fiscal attorney. He condemned the archbishop to lose all his positions and church offices, to be removed from his orders, and to have his belongings confiscated; he would be handed over to the civil authorities. Two days later, the civil magistrate entered the prison to carry out the order he received from the pope and appeared before the archbishop, accompanied by a clerk, two attendants, and four guards. The clerk unrolled the document he was carrying and read out the sentence; the two attendants opened a package and, after removing the archbishop's ecclesiastical robes, dressed him in a rough white cloth garment that only reached his knees, matching breeches, and a pair of heavy shoes. Finally, the guards took him and led him into one of the deepest dungeons of the castle of Sant' Angelo, where the only furniture was a wooden crucifix, a table, a chair, and a bed. For entertainment, there was a Bible and a breviary, along with a lamp for reading; for food, he received two pounds of bread and a small barrel of water, which were to be replaced every three days, along with a bottle of oil for his lamp.
At the end of a year the poor archbishop died of despair, not before he had gnawed his own arms in his agony.
By the end of the year, the tragic archbishop died from despair, having even chewed on his own arms in his pain.
The very same day that he was taken into the dungeon, Caesar Borgia, who had managed the affair so ably, was presented by the pope with all the belongings of the condemned prisoner.
On the same day he was imprisoned in the dungeon, Caesar Borgia, who had managed the situation so well, received all the belongings of the condemned prisoner from the pope.
But the hunting parties, balls, and masquerades were not the only pleasures enjoyed by the pope and his family: from time to time strange spectacles were exhibited. We will only describe two—one of them a case of punishment, the other no more nor less than a matter of the stud farm. But as both of these give details with which we would not have our readers credit our imagination, we will first say that they are literally translated from Burchard's Latin journal.
But the hunting parties, balls, and masquerades weren't the only pleasures enjoyed by the pope and his family; occasionally, unusual spectacles were presented. We'll only describe two—one involving a punishment and the other related to the stud farm. Since both of these include details that might seem unbelievable, we'll first note that they are directly translated from Burchard's Latin journal.
"About the same time—that is, about the beginning of 1499—a certain courtesan named La Corsetta was in prison, and had a lover who came to visit her in woman's clothes, a Spanish Moor, called from his disguise 'the Spanish lady from Barbary!' As a punishment, both of them were led through the town, the woman without petticoat or skirt, but wearing only the Moor's dress unbuttoned in front; the man wore his woman's garb; his hands were tied behind his back, and the skirt fastened up to his middle, with a view to complete exposure before the eyes of all. When in this attire they had made the circuit of the town, the Corsetta was sent back to the prison with the Moor. But on the 7th of April following, the Moor was again taken out and escorted in the company of two thieves towards the Campo dei Fiori. The three condemned men were preceded by a constable, who rode backwards on an ass, and held in his hand a long pole, on the end of which were hung, still bleeding, the amputated limbs of a poor Jew who had suffered torture and death for some trifling crime. When the procession reached the place of execution, the thieves were hanged, and the unfortunate Moor was tied to a stake piled round with wood, where he was to have been burnt to death, had not rain fallen in such torrents that the fire would not burn, in spite of all the efforts of the executioner."
Around the same time—specifically, early 1499—a courtesan named La Corsetta was in prison and had a lover who visited her dressed as a woman, a Spanish Moor humorously referred to as 'the Spanish lady from Barbary!' As punishment, they were both paraded through the town, with the woman wearing nothing but the Moor's clothes, which were left unbuttoned in the front; the man was dressed in women's clothing, with his hands tied behind his back and his skirt hitched up to expose him completely to the crowd. After making their way through the town like this, Corsetta was sent back to prison along with the Moor. However, on April 7th later that year, the Moor was taken out again and marched alongside two thieves toward the Campo dei Fiori. The three condemned men were led by a constable riding backwards on a donkey, holding a long pole from which hung the still-bleeding severed limbs of a poor Jew who had suffered torture and death for a minor crime. When they arrived at the execution site, the thieves were hanged, and the unfortunate Moor was tied to a stake surrounded by wood, where he was supposed to be burned alive, if not for the torrential rain that prevented the fire from igniting, despite the executioner's efforts.
This unlooked for accident, taken as a miracle by the people, robbed Lucrezia of the most exciting part of the execution; but her father was holding in reserve another kind of spectacle to console her with later. We inform the reader once more that a few lines we are about to set before him are a translation from the journal of the worthy German Burchard, who saw nothing in the bloodiest or most wanton performances but facts for his journal, which he duly registered with the impassibility of a scribe, appending no remark or moral reflection.
This unexpected incident, considered a miracle by the people, robbed Lucrezia of the most exciting part of the execution; however, her father was planning another type of spectacle to comfort her later. We would like to remind the reader that the following lines are a translation from the journal of the esteemed German Burchard, who viewed even the bloodiest or most shocking events merely as facts for his journal, which he documented with the composure of a scribe, without adding any comments or moral reflections.
"On the 11th of November a certain peasant was entering Rome with two stallions laden with wood, when the servants of His Holiness, just as he passed the Piazza of St. Peter's, cut their girths, so that their loads fell on the ground with the pack-saddles, and led off the horses to a court between the palace and the gate; then the stable doors were opened, and four stallions, quite free and unbridled, rushed out and in an instant all six animals began kicking, biting and fighting each other until several were killed. Roderigo and Madame Lucrezia, who sat at the window just over the palace gate, took the greatest delight in the struggle and called their courtiers to witness the gallant battle that was being fought below them."
On November 11th, a peasant was entering Rome with two stallions carrying wood when the servants of His Holiness, as he was passing the Piazza of St. Peter's, cut the girths of the saddles, causing the loads to fall to the ground along with the pack-saddles. They then took the horses to a courtyard between the palace and the gate. The stable doors were opened, and four free and unbridled stallions rushed out. In an instant, all six animals began kicking, biting, and fighting each other until several were killed. Roderigo and Madame Lucrezia, who were sitting at the window just above the palace gate, were thrilled by the struggle and called their courtiers to watch the exciting battle unfolding below them.
Now Caesar's trick in the matter of the Archbishop of Cosenza had had the desired result, and Isabella and Ferdinand could no longer impute to Alexander the signature of the brief they had complained of: so nothing was now in the way of the marriage of Lucrezia and Alfonso; this certainty gave the pope great joy, for he attached all the more importance to this marriage because he was already cogitating a second, between Caesar and Dona Carlota, Frederic's daughter.
Caesar's plan with the Archbishop of Cosenza had gone smoothly, and Isabella and Ferdinand could no longer hold Alexander responsible for the brief that had troubled them. Now, nothing was preventing Lucrezia and Alfonso's marriage. This assurance made the pope very happy, as he placed even greater significance on this union because he was already considering a second marriage between Caesar and Dona Carlota, Frederic's daughter.
Caesar had shown in all his actions since his brother's death his want of vocation for the ecclesiastical life; so no one was astonished when, a consistory having been summoned one morning by Alexander, Caesar entered, and addressing the pope, began by saying that from his earliest years he had been drawn towards secular pursuits both by natural inclination and ability, and it had only been in obedience to the absolute commands of His Holiness that he entered the Church, accepted the cardinal's scarlet, other dignities, and finally the sacred order of the diaconate; but feeling that in his situation it was improper to follow his passions, and at his age impossible to resist them, he humbly entreated His Holiness graciously to yield to the desire he had failed to overcome, and to permit him to lay aside the dress and dignities of the Church, and enter once more into the world, thereto contract a lawful marriage; also he entreated the lord cardinals to intercede for him with His Holiness, to whom he would freely resign all his churches, abbeys, and benefices, as well as every other ecclesiastical dignity and preferment that had been accorded him. The cardinals, deferring to Caesar's wishes, gave a unanimous vote, and the pope, as we may suppose, like a good father, not wishing to force his son's inclinations, accepted his resignation, and yielded to the petition; thus Caesar put off the scarlet robe, which was suited to him, says his historian Tommaso Tommasi, in one particular only—that it was the colour of blood.
Caesar had shown through all his actions since his brother's death that he wasn't cut out for a life in the church. So, no one was surprised when, one morning, Alexander called a meeting of the consistory and Caesar walked in. He spoke to the pope, starting by saying that since he was young, he had been drawn to secular life because of his natural interests and talents. He had only accepted the role of cardinal and taken on other responsibilities out of respect for the pope’s wishes, eventually becoming a deacon. However, he felt it was wrong to ignore his passions now, and at his age, it was impossible to resist them. He respectfully asked the pope to allow him to pursue his unfulfilled desires and to let him leave the church's robes and positions so he could enter the secular world and marry lawfully. He also requested the cardinals to support him with the pope, to whom he would gladly resign all his churches, abbeys, benefices, and any other church roles and honors he had. The cardinals, respecting Caesar's wishes, voted unanimously in favor, and the pope, being a caring father and not wanting to go against his son’s desires, accepted his resignation and granted his request. Thus, Caesar took off the cardinal's red robe, which, as his historian Tommaso Tommasi noted, suited him only in one way—it was the color of blood.
In truth, the resignation was a pressing necessity, and there was no time to lose. Charles VIII one day after he had came home late and tired from the hunting-field, had bathed his head in cold water; and going straight to table, had been struck down by an apoplectic seizure directly after his supper; and was dead, leaving the throne to the good Louis XII, a man of two conspicuous weaknesses, one as deplorable as the other: the first was the wish to make conquests; the second was the desire to have children. Alexander, who was on the watch for all political changes, had seen in a moment what he could get from Louis XII's accession to the throne, and was prepared to profit by the fact that the new king of France needed his help for the accomplishment of his twofold desire. Louis needed, first, his temporal aid in an expedition against the duchy of Milan, on which, as we explained before, he had inherited claims from Valentina Visconti, his grandmother; and, secondly, his spiritual aid to dissolve his marriage with Jeanne, the daughter of Louis XI; a childless and hideously deformed woman, whom he had only married by reason of the great fear he entertained for her father. Now Alexander was willing to do all this for Louis XII and to give in addition a cardinal's hat to his friend George d'Amboise, provided only that the King of France would use his influence in persuading the young Dona Carlota, who was at his court, to marry his son Caesar.
In reality, resigning was absolutely necessary, and there was no time to waste. One day, after coming home late and exhausted from hunting, Charles VIII soaked his head in cold water. He went straight to the table and was struck down by a stroke right after dinner; he died, leaving the throne to the good Louis XII, a man with two clear shortcomings, both equally unfortunate: the first was his desire for conquests; the second was his wish to have children. Alexander, who was always on the lookout for political shifts, quickly recognized what he could gain from Louis XII's rise to power and was ready to take advantage of the fact that the new King of France needed his help to achieve his two-fold ambition. Louis required, firstly, his military assistance in an expedition against the duchy of Milan, for which, as we mentioned before, he had inherited claims from Valentina Visconti, his grandmother; and secondly, his support in annulling his marriage to Jeanne, the daughter of Louis XI—an unattractive and childless woman he had only married due to his intense fear of her father. Now, Alexander was willing to do all this for Louis XII and also grant a cardinal's hat to his friend George d'Amboise, as long as the King of France would help persuade the young Dona Carlota, who was at his court, to marry his son Caesar.
So, as this business was already far advanced on the day when Caesar doffed his scarlet and donned a secular garb, thus fulfilling the ambition so long cherished, when the lord of Villeneuve, sent by Louis and commissioned to bring Caesar to France, presented himself before the ex-cardinal on his arrival at Rome, the latter, with his usual extravagance of luxury and the kindness he knew well how to bestow on those he needed, entertained his guest for a month, and did all the honours of Rome. After that, they departed, preceded by one of the pope's couriers, who gave orders that every town they passed through was to receive them with marks of honour and respect. The same order had been sent throughout the whole of France, where the illustrious visitors received so numerous a guard, and were welcomed by a populace so eager to behold them, that after they passed through Paris, Caesar's gentlemen-in-waiting wrote to Rome that they had not seen any trees in France, or houses, or walls, but only men, women and sunshine.
As this situation was already in motion the day Caesar took off his red robes and put on regular clothes, finally fulfilling a long-held dream, the lord of Villeneuve, sent by Louis to bring Caesar to France, arrived in Rome to meet the ex-cardinal. True to his usual extravagant lifestyle and the warmth he provided to those he needed, he hosted his guest for a month and performed all the honors of Rome. After that, they set out, accompanied by one of the pope's couriers, who instructed that every town they passed through should welcome them with signs of honor and respect. The same directive had been sent throughout all of France, where the distinguished visitors were greeted by such a large escort and a crowd so eager to see them that after passing through Paris, Caesar's attendants reported back to Rome that they saw no trees, houses, or walls in France, only people, sunshine, and more people.
The king, on the pretext of going out hunting, went to meet his guest two leagues outside the town. As he knew Caesar was very fond of the name of Valentine, which he had used as cardinal, and still continued to employ with the title of Count, although he had resigned the archbishopric which gave him the name, he there and then bestowed an him the investiture of Valence, in Dauphine, with the title of Duke and a pension of 20,000 francs; then, when he had made this magnificent gift and talked with him for nearly a couple of hours, he took his leave, to enable him to prepare the splendid entry he was proposing to make.
The king, pretending to go hunting, met his guest two leagues outside the town. Knowing that Caesar really liked the name Valentine, which he had used as a cardinal and continued to use as a Count even after stepping down from the archbishopric that gave him the name, the king immediately gave him the title of Duke and the investiture of Valence in Dauphiné, along with a pension of 20,000 francs. After making this impressive gift and talking with him for almost two hours, he took his leave so that Caesar could get ready for the grand entrance he was planning to make.
It was Wednesday, the 18th of December 1498, when Caesar Borgia entered the town of Chinon, with pomp worthy of the son of a pope who is about to marry the daughter of a king. The procession began with four-and-twenty mules, caparisoned in red, adorned with escutcheons bearing the duke's arms, laden with carved trunks and chests inlaid with ivory and silver; after them came four-and-twenty more, also caparisoned, this time in the livery of the King of France, yellow and red; next after these came ten other mules, covered in yellow satin with red crossbars; and lastly another ten, covered with striped cloth of gold, the stripes alternately raised and flat gold.
On Wednesday, December 18, 1498, Caesar Borgia arrived in the town of Chinon with all the pomp expected of a pope's son who was about to marry a king's daughter. The parade began with twenty-four mules dressed in red, showcasing the duke's coat of arms, carrying beautifully carved trunks and chests decorated with ivory and silver. Following them were another twenty-four mules, adorned in the colors of the King of France—yellow and red. Next came ten more mules draped in yellow satin with red crossbars, and finally, another ten mules covered in striped gold fabric, featuring alternating raised and flat gold stripes.
Behind the seventy mules which led the procession there pranced sixteen handsome battle-horses, led by equerries who marched alongside; these were followed by eighteen hunters ridden by eighteen pages, who were about fourteen or fifteen years of age; sixteen of them were dressed in crimson velvet, and two in raised gold cloth; so elegantly dressed were these two children, who were also the best looking of the little band, that the sight of them gave rise to strange suspicions as to the reason for this preference, if one may believe what Brantome says. Finally, behind these eighteen horses came six beautiful mules, all harnessed with red velvet, and led by six valets, also in velvet to match.
Behind the seventy mules leading the parade, there were sixteen impressive battle-horses, guided by attendants who walked alongside them. Following them were eighteen hunters ridden by eighteen pages, who appeared to be around fourteen or fifteen years old. Sixteen of the pages were dressed in crimson velvet, while two wore raised gold fabric. These two were so elegantly dressed and the most attractive in the group that it led to some strange speculation about why they were favored, if Brantome is to be believed. Finally, trailing behind the eighteen horses were six beautiful mules, all dressed in red velvet harnesses and led by six valets, also in matching velvet.
The third group consisted of, first, two mules quite covered with cloth of gold, each carrying two chests in which it was said that the duke's treasure was stored, the precious stones he was bringing to his fiancee, and the relics and papal bulls that his father had charged him to convey for him to Louis XII. These were followed by twenty gentlemen dressed in cloth of gold and silver, among whom rode Paul Giordano Orsino and several barons and knights among the chiefs of the state ecclesiastic.
The third group featured two mules entirely covered in gold fabric, each carrying two chests said to hold the duke's treasure, the valuable gems he was bringing to his fiancée, and the relics and papal bulls his father had sent him to deliver to Louis XII. They were accompanied by twenty gentlemen dressed in gold and silver fabric, including Paul Giordano Orsino and several barons and knights from the ecclesiastical elite.
Next came two drums, one rebeck, and four soldiers blowing trumpets and silver clarions; then, in the midst of a party of four-and-twenty lacqueys, dressed half in crimson velvet and half in yellow silk, rode Messire George d'Amboise, anMonseigneur the Duke of Valentinois. Caesar was mounted on a handsome tall courser, very richly harnessed, in a robe half red satin and half cloth of gold, embroidered all over with pearls and precious stones; in his cap were two rows of rubies, the size of beans, which reflected so brilliant a light that one might have fancied they were the famous carbuncles of the Arabian Nights; he also wore on his neck a collar worth at least 200,000 livres; indeed, there was no part of him, even down to his boots, that was not laced with gold and edged with pearls. His horse was covered with a cuirass in a pattern of golden foliage of wonderful workmanship, among which there appeared to grow, like flowers, nosegays of pearls and clusters of rubies.
Next came two drums, a rebec, and four soldiers playing trumpets and silver clarions; then, in the middle of a group of twenty-four attendants, half dressed in crimson velvet and half in yellow silk, rode Sir George d'Amboise, His Excellency the Duke of Valentinois. Caesar was on an elegant tall horse, lavishly adorned, wearing a robe made of half red satin and half cloth of gold, which was embroidered with pearls and precious stones; his cap had two rows of rubies the size of beans that reflected such brilliant light they could have been the famous carbuncles from the Arabian Nights; he also wore a necklace worth at least 200,000 livres; indeed, every part of him, even his boots, was decorated with gold and trimmed with pearls. His horse was covered with a breastplate featuring a beautifully crafted design of golden foliage, among which bloomed clusters of pearls and rubies like flowers.
Lastly, bringing up the rear of the magnificent cortege, behind the duke came twenty-four mules with red caparisons bearing his arms, carrying his silver plate, tents, and baggage.
Finally, following the impressive parade, the duke was accompanied by twenty-four mules with red covers showing his coat of arms, carrying his silverware, tents, and luggage.
What gave to all the cavalcade an air of most wonderful luxury and extravagance was that the horses and mules were shod with golden shoes, and these were so badly nailed on that more than three-quarters of their number, were lost on the road For this extravagance Caesar was greatly blamed, for it was thought an audacious thing to put on his horses' feet a metal of which king's crowns are made.
What made the whole procession feel extremely luxurious and extravagant was that the horses and mules were wearing golden horseshoes, and these were so poorly nailed on that more than three-quarters of them were lost along the way. Because of this extravagance, Caesar faced a lot of criticism, as it was seen as bold to put a metal usually reserved for kings' crowns on his horses' feet.
But all this pomp had no effect on the lady for whose sake it had been displayed; for when Dona Carlota was told that Caesar Borgia had come to France in the hope of becoming her husband, she replied simply that she would never take a priest for her husband, and, moreover, the son of a priest; a man who was not only an assassin, but a fratricide; not only a man of infamous birth, but still more infamous in his morals and his actions.
But all this display meant nothing to the lady it was intended for; when Dona Carlota heard that Caesar Borgia had come to France expecting to marry her, she simply said she would never marry a priest, especially the son of a priest—a man who was not only a killer but also a murderer of his own brother; a man with a shameful background, even more disgraceful in his character and actions.
But, in default of the haughty lady of Aragon, Caesar soon found another princess of noble blood who consented to be his wife: this was Mademoiselle d'Albret, daughter of the King of Navarre. The marriage, arranged on condition that the pope should pay 200,000 ducats dowry to the bride, and should make her brother cardinal, was celebrated on the 10th of May; and on the Whitsunday following the Duke of Valentois received the order of St. Michael, an order founded by Louis XI, and esteemed at this period as the highest in the gift of the kings of France. The news of this marriage, which made an alliance with Louis XII certain, was received with great joy by the pope, who at once gave orders for bonfires and illuminations all over the town.
After the proud lady of Aragon rejected him, Caesar quickly found another noble princess willing to marry him: Mademoiselle d'Albret, the daughter of the King of Navarre. The marriage was arranged with the condition that the pope would provide a dowry of 200,000 ducats for the bride and make her brother a cardinal. The wedding took place on May 10th; then, on the following Whitsunday, the Duke of Valentois received the Order of St. Michael, an award established by Louis XI and considered the highest honor given by the kings of France at that time. The news of this marriage, which secured an alliance with Louis XII, was celebrated with great joy by the pope, who immediately ordered bonfires and fireworks throughout the town.
Louis XII was not only grateful to the pope for dissolving his marriage with Jeanne of France and authorizing his union with Anne of Brittany, but he considered it indispensable to his designs in Italy to have the pope as his ally. So he promised the Duke of Valentinois to put three hundred lances at his disposal, as soon as he had made an entry into Milan, to be used to further his own private interests, and against whomsoever he pleased except only the allies of France. The conquest of Milan should be undertaken so soon as Louis felt assured of the support of the Venetians, or at least of their neutrality, and he had sent them ambassadors authorised to promise in his name the restoration of Cremona and Ghiera d'Adda when he had completed the conquest of Lombardy.
Louis XII was grateful to the pope for ending his marriage to Jeanne of France and allowing him to marry Anne of Brittany. He also viewed the pope as an important ally for his plans in Italy. To this end, he assured the Duke of Valentinois that he would provide three hundred lances as soon as he entered Milan, to be used for his personal interests and against anyone he wanted, except for France's allies. He planned to advance on Milan as soon as he was confident of the Venetians' support, or at least their neutrality, and had sent ambassadors to assure them that in his name, he would return Cremona and Ghiera d'Adda once he had control of Lombardy.
CHAPTER 9
Everything from without was favouring Alexander's encroaching policy, when he was compelled to turn his eyes from France towards the centre of Italy: in Florence dwelt a man, neither duke, nor king, nor soldier, a man whose power was in his genius, whose armour was his purity, who owned no offensive weapon but his tongue, and who yet began to grow more dangerous for him than all the kings, dukes, princes, in the whole world could ever be; this man was the poor Dominican monk Girolamo Savonarola, the same who had refused absolution to Lorenzo dei Medici because he would not restore the liberty of Florence.
EeverythingFrom the outside, Alexander's growing ambitions were supported when he had to change his focus from France to the heart of Italy. In Florence lived a man who was neither a duke, a king, nor a soldier—a man whose power came from his intellect, whose strength was his integrity, who wielded no weapon but words, and who was becoming more threatening to him than all the kings, dukes, and princes in the world combined. This man was the humble Dominican monk Girolamo Savonarola, who had denied absolution to Lorenzo dei Medici because he refused to restore Florence's freedom.
Girolamo Savonarola had prophesied the invasion of a force from beyond the Alps, and Charles VIII had conquered Naples; Girolamo Savonarola had prophesied to Charles VIII that because he had failed to fulfil the mission of liberator entrusted to him by God, he was threatened with a great misfortune as a punishment, and Charles was dead; lastly, Savonarola had prophesied his own fall like the man who paced around the holy city for eight days, crying, "Woe to Jerusalem!" and on the ninth day, "Woe be on my own head!" None the less, the Florentine reformer, who could not recoil from any danger, was determined to attack the colossal abomination that was seated on St. Peter's holy throne; each debauch, each fresh crime that lifted up its brazen face to the light of day or tried to hide its shameful head beneath the veil of night, he had never failed to point out to the people, denouncing it as the off spring of the pope's luxurious living and lust of power. Thus had he stigmatised Alexander's new amour with the beautiful Giulia Farnese, who in the preceding April had added another son to the pope's family; thus had he cursed the Duke of Gandia's murderer, the lustful, jealous fratricide; lastly, he had pointed out to the Florentines, who were excluded from the league then forming, what sort of future was in store for them when the Borgias should have made themselves masters of the small principalities and should come to attack the duchies and republics. It was clear that in Savonarola, the pope had an enemy at once temporal and spiritual, whose importunate and threatening voice must be silenced at any cost.
Girolamo Savonarola predicted an invasion from across the Alps, and Charles VIII took control of Naples. Savonarola warned Charles VIII that because he failed to fulfill his divine mission as a liberator, he faced severe punishment, and then Charles died. Ultimately, Savonarola prophesied his own downfall, like the man who walked around the holy city for eight days, saying, "Woe to Jerusalem!" and on the ninth day, "Woe to my own head!" Despite this, the Florentine reformer, who didn't shy away from danger, was determined to confront the significant corruption on St. Peter's holy throne; he called out every vice and crime that boldly appeared in the open or tried to conceal its shameful actions in the dark, denouncing it as a result of the pope's indulgent lifestyle and thirst for power. He condemned Alexander’s new affair with the beautiful Giulia Farnese, who had given the pope another son the previous April. He also cursed the murderer of the Duke of Gandia, the lustful and envious fratricide. Finally, he warned the Florentines, who were excluded from the league forming at that time, about the bleak future ahead when the Borgias would take control of the small principalities and threaten the duchies and republics. It was clear that Savonarola was an enemy of the pope, both in worldly and spiritual terms, whose persistent and threatening voice needed to be silenced at any cost.
But mighty as the pope's power was, to accomplish a design like this was no easy matter. Savonarola, preaching the stern principles of liberty, had united to his cause, even in the midst of rich, pleasure-loving Florence, a party of some size, known as the 'Piagnoni', or the Penitents: this band was composed of citizens who were anxious for reform in Church and State, who accused the Medici of enslaving the fatherland and the Borgias of upsetting the faith, who demanded two things, that the republic should return to her democratic principles, and religion to a primitive simplicity. Towards the first of these projects considerable progress had been made, since they had successively obtained, first, an amnesty for all crimes and delinquencies committed under other governments; secondly, the abolition of the 'balia', which was an aristocratic magistracy; thirdly, the establishment of a sovereign council, composed of 1800 citizens; and lastly, the substitution of popular elections for drawing by lot and for oligarchical nominations: these changes had been effected in spite of two other factions, the 'Arrabiati', or Madmen, who, consisting of the richest and noblest youths of the Florentine patrician families, desired to have an oligarchical government; and the 'Bigi', or Greys, so called because they always held their meetings in the shade, who desired the return of the Medici.
Despite the pope's significant power, accomplishing something like this was no simple feat. Savonarola, preaching strict ideals of freedom, had gathered a large group known as the 'Piagnoni', or the Penitents, even in the wealthy, pleasure-seeking city of Florence. This group consisted of citizens eager for reform in both the Church and the State, who accused the Medici of enslaving their homeland and the Borgias of corrupting the faith. They demanded two things: that the republic return to its democratic roots and that religion be simplified. They made notable progress on the first goal, having secured, first, an amnesty for all offenses committed under previous governments; second, the abolishment of the 'balia', an aristocratic magistracy; third, the establishment of a sovereign council made up of 1800 citizens; and finally, the replacement of drawing lots and oligarchical appointments with popular elections. These changes occurred despite opposition from two other groups: the 'Arrabiati', or Madmen, comprised of the wealthiest and most noble young men from the Florentine elite who wanted an oligarchic government, and the 'Bigi', or Greys, named for their tendency to meet in the shadows, who sought the return of the Medici.
The first measure Alexander used against the growing power of Savonarola was to declare him heretic, and as such banished from the pulpit; but Savonarola had eluded this prohibition by making his pupil and friend, Domenico Bonvicini di Pescia, preach in his stead. The result was that the master's teachings were issued from other lips, and that was all; the seed, though scattered by another hand, fell none the less on fertile soil, where it would soon burst into flower. Moreover, Savonarola now set an example that was followed to good purpose by Luther, when, twenty-two years later, he burned Leo X's bull of excommunication at Wittenberg; he was weary of silence, so he declared, on the authority of Pope Pelagius, that an unjust excommunication had no efficacy, and that the person excommunicated unjustly did not even need to get absolution. So on Christmas Day, 1497, he declared that by the inspiration of God he renounced his obedience to a corrupt master; and he began to preach once more in the cathedral, with a success that was all the greater for the interruption, and an influence far more formidable than before, because it was strengthened by that sympathy of the masses which an unjust persecution always inspires.
The first step Alexander took against Savonarola's growing influence was to call him a heretic and ban him from preaching. However, Savonarola found a way around this ban by having his student and friend, Domenico Bonvicini di Pescia, preach in his stead. As a result, the master's teachings continued to spread, and even though the message came from another person, it still resonated and began to thrive. Furthermore, Savonarola set an example that Luther would follow effectively twenty-two years later when he burned Leo X's bull of excommunication in Wittenberg. Luther, fed up with remaining silent, argued, based on Pope Pelagius's authority, that an unjust excommunication held no real power and that anyone unjustly excommunicated didn't even need to seek absolution. So, on Christmas Day in 1497, he declared that, inspired by God, he would no longer follow a corrupt leader; he then resumed preaching in the cathedral, achieving even greater success after his break and gaining much stronger influence, supported by the public's sympathy that often comes from unjust persecution.
Then Alexander made overtures to Leonardo dei Medici, vicar of the archbishopric of Florence, to obtain the punishment of the rebel: Leonardo, in obedience to the orders he received, from Rome, issued a mandate forbidding the faithful to attend at Savonarola's sermons. After this mandate, any who should hear the discourses of the excommunicated monk would be refused communion and confession; and as when they died they would be contaminated with heresy, in consequence of their spiritual intercourse with a heretic, their dead bodies would be dragged on a hurdle and deprived of the rights of sepulture. Savonarola appealed from the mandate of his superior both to the people and to the Signoria, and the two together gave orders to the episcopal vicar to leave Florence within two hours: this happened at the beginning of the year 1498.
Then Alexander reached out to Leonardo dei Medici, the vicar of the archbishopric of Florence, to have the rebel punished. Following orders from Rome, Leonardo issued a mandate that prohibited the faithful from attending Savonarola's sermons. After this mandate, anyone who listened to the speeches of the excommunicated monk would be denied communion and confession; when they died, they would be seen as tainted with heresy due to their spiritual connection with a heretic, meaning their bodies would be dragged on a cart and denied burial rights. Savonarola appealed against his superior's mandate to both the people and the Signoria, and together they ordered the episcopal vicar to leave Florence within two hours: this happened at the beginning of the year 1498.
The expulsion of Leonardo's dei Medici was a new triumph for Savonarola, so, wishing to turn to good moral account his growing influence, he resolved to convert the last day of the carnival, hitherto given up to worldly pleasures, into a day of religious sacrifice. So actually on Shrove Tuesday a considerable number of boys were collected in front of the cathedral, and there divided into bands, which traversed the whole town, making a house-to-house visitation, claiming all profane books, licentious paintings, lutes, harps, cards and dice, cosmetics and perfumes—in a word, all the hundreds of products of a corrupt society and civilisation, by the aid of which Satan at times makes victorious war on God. The inhabitants of Florence obeyed, and came forth to the Piazza of the Duoma, bringing these works of perdition, which were soon piled up in a huge stack, which the youthful reformers set on fire, singing religious psalms and hymns the while. On this pile were burned many copies of Boccaccio and of Margante Maggiore, and pictures by Fra Bartalommeo, who from that day forward renounced the art of this world to consecrate his brush utterly and entirely to the reproduction of religious scenes.
The expulsion of the Medici was a new victory for Savonarola, so wanting to capitalize on his growing influence, he decided to transform the last day of carnival, which had always been about worldly pleasures, into a day of religious sacrifice. On Shrove Tuesday, a large group of boys gathered in front of the cathedral and split into teams that covered the entire city, going door-to-door collecting inappropriate books, suggestive paintings, lutes, harps, cards and dice, cosmetics and perfumes—in short, all the countless products of a corrupt society that Satan sometimes uses to wage a successful war against God. The people of Florence complied and came to the Piazza of the Duomo, bringing these sinful items, which were quickly stacked into a massive pile that the young reformers set on fire while singing religious psalms and hymns. Among the items burned were many copies of Boccaccio and Margante Maggiore, as well as paintings by Fra Bartolommeo, who from that day on gave up secular art to focus entirely on creating religious scenes.
A reform such as this was terrifying to Alexander; so he resolved on fighting Savonarola with his own weapons—that is, by the force of eloquence. He chose as the Dominican's opponent a preacher of recognised talent, called Fra Francesco di Paglia; and he sent him to Florence, where he began to preach in Santa Croce, accusing Savonarola of heresy and impiety. At the same time the pope, in a new brief, announced to the Signaria that unless they forbade the arch-heretic to preach, all the goods of Florentine merchants who lived on the papal territory would be confiscated, and the republic laid under an interdict and declared the spiritual and temporal enemy of the Church. The Signoria, abandoned by France, and aware that the material power of Rome was increasing in a frightful manner, was forced this time to yield, and to issue to Savonarola an order to leave off preaching. He obeyed, and bade farewell to his congregation in a sermon full of strength and eloquence.
A reform like this worried Alexander, so he chose to confront Savonarola using his own methods—namely, through public speaking. He selected a well-known preacher, Fra Francesco di Paglia, as Savonarola's rival and sent him to Florence, where he began preaching in Santa Croce, accusing Savonarola of heresy and lacking faith. At the same time, the pope issued a new decree to the Signoria, stating that if they didn't stop the arch-heretic from preaching, all property belonging to Florentine merchants in papal territory would be seized, and the republic would be placed under an interdict, labeling it a spiritual and temporal enemy of the Church. The Signoria, deserted by France and recognizing the increasing power of Rome, had no choice but to concede and order Savonarola to stop preaching. He agreed and said goodbye to his congregation in a powerful and persuasive sermon.
But the withdrawal of Savonarola, so far from calming the ferment, had increased it: there was talk about his prophecies being fulfilled; and some zealots, more ardent than their master added miracle to inspiration, and loudly proclaimed that Savonarola had offered to go down into the vaults of the cathedral with his antagonist, and there bring a dead man to life again, to prove that his doctrine was true, promising to declare himself vanquished if the miracle were performed by his adversary. These rumours reached the ears of Fra Francesco, and as he was a man of warm blood, who counted his own life as nothing if it might be spent to help his cause, he declared in all humility that he felt he was too great a sinner for God to work a miracle in his behalf; but he proposed another challenge: he would try with Savonarola the ordeal of fire. He knew, he said, that he must perish, but at least he should perish avenging the cause of religion, since he was certain to involve in his destruction the tempter who plunged so many souls beside his own into eternal damnation.
But Savonarola's departure didn't calm the unrest; instead, it made it worse. People were talking about his prophecies coming true, and some of his most passionate followers claimed miracles on top of their inspiration. They loudly declared that Savonarola had offered to go into the cathedral vaults with his opponent and bring a dead man back to life to prove his doctrine was true, promising to admit defeat if his rival performed the miracle. These rumors reached Fra Francesco, who, being a man of strong passions and valuing his life only if it could support his cause, humbly declared he felt too much like a sinner for God to work a miracle for him. However, he proposed a different challenge: he would undergo trial by fire with Savonarola. He knew he would likely die, but at least he would die avenging the cause of religion, as he was convinced he would take down the tempter who had led so many souls, including his own, to eternal damnation.
The proposition made by Fra Francesco was taken to Savanarola; but as he had never proposed the earlier challenge, he hesitated to accept the second; hereupon his disciple, Fra Domenico Bonvicini, more confident than his master in his own power, declared himself ready to accept the trial by fire in his stead; so certain was he that God would perform a miracle by the intercession of Savonarola, His prophet.
The proposal from Fra Francesco was presented to Savonarola; however, since he had never accepted the previous challenge, he was unsure about accepting this one. Then his disciple, Fra Domenico Bonvicini, who had more confidence in himself than his master, offered to undergo the trial by fire in Savonarola's stead; he firmly believed that God would perform a miracle through Savonarola's intercession, His prophet.
Instantly the report spread through Florence that the mortal challenge was accepted; Savonarola's partisans, all men of the strongest convictions, felt no doubt as to the success of their cause. His enemies were enchanted at the thought of the heretic giving himself to the flames; and the indifferent saw in the ordeal a spectacle of real and terrible interest.
News quickly spread across Florence that the life-or-death challenge had been accepted; Savonarola's supporters, all truly dedicated individuals, felt confident about their cause's success. His opponents were excited at the thought of the heretic facing the flames, while those who were indifferent saw the event as a genuinely captivating spectacle.
But the devotion of Fra Bonvicini of Pescia was not what Fra Francesco was reckoning with. He was willing, no doubt, to die a terrible death, but on condition that Savanarola died with him. What mattered to him the death of an obscure disciple like Fra Bonvicini? It was the master he would strike, the great teacher who must be involved in his own ruin. So he refused to enter the fire except with Savonarola himself, and, playing this terrible game in his own person, would not allow his adversary to play it by proxy.
But Fra Bonvicini of Pescia's loyalty wasn't what Fra Francesco expected. He was definitely prepared to face a horrible death, but only if Savonarola faced it with him. The death of an unknown follower like Fra Bonvicini didn't matter to him. It was the master he wanted to bring down, the great teacher who had to share in his downfall. So he refused to enter the fire without Savonarola there with him, and, by playing this dangerous game directly, he wouldn’t let his opponent do it through someone else.
Then a thing happened which certainly no one could have anticipated. In the place of Fra Francesco, who would not tilt with any but the master, two Franciscan monks appeared to tilt with the disciple. These were Fra Nicholas de Pilly and Fra Andrea Rondinelli. Immediately the partisans of Savonarola, seeing this arrival of reinforcements for their antagonist, came forward in a crowd to try the ordeal. The Franciscans were unwilling to be behindhand, and everybody took sides with equal ardour for one or other party. All Florence was like a den of madmen; everyone wanted the ordeal, everyone wanted to go into the fire; not only did men challenge one another, but women and even children were clamouring to be allowed to try. At last the Signoria, reserving this privilege for the first applicants, ordered that the strange duel should take place only between Fra Domenico Bonvicini and Fra Andrea Rondinelli; ten of the citizens were to arrange all details; the day was fixed for the 7th of April, 1498, and the place the Piazza del Palazzo.
Then something happened that no one could have predicted. Instead of Fra Francesco, who would only face off against the master, two Franciscan monks showed up to confront the disciple. These were Fra Nicholas de Pilly and Fra Andrea Rondinelli. Immediately, Savonarola's supporters, seeing these reinforcements for their opponent, gathered to witness the trial. The Franciscans were eager to take part, and everyone passionately chose sides for one party or the other. All of Florence was in a frenzy; everyone wanted the trial, everyone wanted to go through the fire; not only men challenged each other, but women and even children were eager to join in. Finally, the Signoria, reserving this right for the first applicants, ordered that the unusual duel should only happen between Fra Domenico Bonvicini and Fra Andrea Rondinelli; ten citizens were designated to handle all the arrangements; the date was set for April 7, 1498, and the location was the Piazza del Palazzo.
The judges of the field made their arrangements conscientiously. By their orders scaffolding was erected at the appointed place, five feet in height, ten in width, and eighty feet long. This scaffolding was covered with faggots and heath, supported by cross-bars of the very driest wood that could be found. Two narrow paths were made, two feet wide at most, their entrance giving on the Loggia dei Lanzi, their exit exactly opposite. The loggia was itself divided into two by a partition, so that each champion had a kind of room to make his preparations in, just as in the theatre every actor has his dressing-room; but in this instance the tragedy that was about to be played was not a fictitious one.
The judges of the field made their plans carefully. Following their instructions, scaffolding was constructed at the designated location, five feet high, ten feet wide, and eighty feet long. This scaffolding was covered with branches and brush, held up by cross-beams made from the driest wood available. Two narrow paths, no more than two feet wide, were created, one entrance leading to the Loggia dei Lanzi and the other directly across from it. The loggia itself was divided by a partition, giving each champion a space to prepare, similar to how each actor has their dressing room in a theater; but in this case, the tragedy about to unfold was not fictional.
The Franciscans arrived on the piazza and entered the compartment reserved for them without making any religious demonstration; while Savonarola, on the contrary, advanced to his own place in the procession, wearing the sacerdotal robes in which he had just celebrated the Holy Eucharist, and holding in his hand the sacred host for all the world to see, as it was enclosed in a crystal tabernacle. Fra Domenico di Pescia, the hero of the occasion, followed, bearing a crucifix, and all the Dominican monks, their red crosses in their hands, marched behind singing a psalm; while behind them again followed the most considerable of the citizens of their party, bearing torches, for, sure as they were of the triumph of their cause, they wished to fire the faggots themselves. The piazza was so crowded that the people overflowed into all the streets around. In every door and window there was nothing to be seen but heads ranged one above the other; the terraces were covered with people, and curious spectators were observed on the roof of the Duomo and on the top of the Campanile.
The Franciscans arrived at the plaza and went directly to their designated area without any show of religion. In contrast, Savonarola made his way to his place in the procession, dressed in the priestly robes he had just worn to celebrate the Holy Eucharist, holding the sacred host for everyone to see in a crystal tabernacle. Fra Domenico di Pescia, the hero of the day, followed him carrying a crucifix, and all the Dominican monks, holding their red crosses, marched behind, singing a psalm. Behind them were the prominent citizens of their faction, carrying torches, confident in their cause’s victory and eager to ignite the flames themselves. The plaza was so crowded that people overflowed into the surrounding streets. In every door and window, heads were stacked one above the other; the terraces were filled with people, and curious onlookers could be seen on the roof of the Duomo and atop the Campanile.
But, brought face to face with the ordeal, the Franciscans raised such difficulties that it was very plain the heart of their champion was failing him. The first fear they expressed was that Fra Bonvicini was an enchanter, and so carried about him some talisman or charm which would save him from the fire. So they insisted that he should be stripped of all his clothes and put on others to be inspected by witnesses. Fra Bonvicini made no objection, though the suspicion was humiliating; he changed shirt, dress, and cowl. Then, when the Franciscans observed that Savanarola was placing the tabernacle in his hands, they protested that it was profanation to expose the sacred host to the risk of burning, that this was not in the bond, and if Bonvicini would not give up this supernatural aid, they for their part would give up the trial altogether. Savonarola replied that it was not astonishing that the champion of religion who put his faith in God should bear in his hands that very God to whom he entrusted his salvation. But this reply did not satisfy the Franciscans, who were unwilling to let go their contention. Savonarola remained inflexible, supporting his own right, and thus nearly four hours passed in the discussion of points which neither party would give up, and affairs remained in 'statu quo'. Meanwhile the people, jammed together in the streets, on the terraces, on the roofs, since break of day, were suffering from hunger and thirst and beginning to get impatient: their impatience soon developed into loud murmurs, which reached even the champions' ears, so that the partisans of Savonarola, who felt such faith in him that they were confident of a miracle, entreated him to yield to all the conditions suggested. To this Savonarola replied that if it were himself making the trial he would be less inexorable; but since another man was incurring the danger; he could not take too many precautions. Two more hours passed, while his partisans tried in vain to combat his refusals. At last, as night was coming on and the people grew ever more and more impatient and their murmurs began to assume a threatening tone, Bonvicini declared that he was ready to walk through the fire, holding nothing in his hand but a crucifix. No one could refuse him this; so Fra Rondinelli was compelled to accept his proposition. The announcement was made to the populace that the champions had come to terms and the trial was about to take place. At this news the people calmed down, in the hope of being compensated at last for their long wait; but at that very moment a storm which had long been threatening brake over Florence with such fury that the faggots which had just been lighted were extinguished by the rain, leaving no possibility of their rekindling. From the moment when the people suspected that they had been fooled, their enthusiasm was changed into derision. They were ignorant from which side the difficulties had arisen that had hindered the trial, so they laid the responsibility on both champions without distinction. The Signoria, foreseeing the disorder that was now imminent, ordered the assembly to retire; but the assembly thought otherwise, and stayed on the piazza, waiting for the departure of the two champions, in spite of the fearful rain that still fell in torrents. Rondinelli was taken back amid shouts and hootings, and pursued with showers of stones. Savonarola, thanks to his sacred garments and the host which he still carried, passed calmly enough through the midst of the mob—a miracle quite as remarkable as if he had passed through the fire unscathed.
But when faced with the challenge, the Franciscans raised so many objections that it was clear their champion was losing confidence. Their first concern was that Fra Bonvicini was a magician who had some sort of charm to protect him from the flames. They insisted he be stripped of all his clothes and put on new ones for witnesses to inspect. Fra Bonvicini did not protest, even though the suspicion was humiliating; he changed his shirt, robe, and cowl. Then, when the Franciscans saw that Savonarola was placing the tabernacle in his hands, they argued it was disrespectful to put the sacred host at risk of burning, claiming this wasn’t part of the arrangement, and threatened to abandon the trial if Bonvicini wouldn’t give up this supernatural assistance. Savonarola argued it was only natural that a champion of faith, who trusted in God, would hold in his hands that very God to whom he was entrusting his salvation. However, this did not convince the Franciscans, who refused to back down. Savonarola stood firm in defending his position, and nearly four hours passed with both sides unwilling to compromise, leaving things at a standstill. Meanwhile, the crowd, packed into the streets, on terraces, and on rooftops since morning, was suffering from hunger and thirst and growing increasingly impatient. Their restlessness soon turned into loud murmurs that reached the champions, prompting Savonarola's supporters, who had faith in him and believed a miracle would occur, to urge him to accept all the conditions suggested. Savonarola replied that if he were the one facing the trial, he might be less stubborn; but since it was another person at risk, he could not afford to be careless. Two more hours passed while his supporters desperately tried to change his mind. Finally, as night approached and the crowd became more agitated with threatening murmurs, Bonvicini declared he was ready to walk through the fire, holding nothing but a crucifix. No one could deny him that request; so Fra Rondinelli had no choice but to accept his proposal. The crowd was informed that the champions had reached an agreement and the trial was about to begin. This news eased the crowd's tension, as they hoped for a reward for their long wait. But at that very moment, a storm, which had been brewing, unleashed its fury on Florence, dousing the bonfires with rain and leaving them unlit. When the crowd suspected they had been deceived, their excitement turned into mockery. They didn’t know which side had caused the complications that delayed the trial, so they blamed both champions equally. The Signoria, anticipating the chaos that was about to erupt, ordered the assembly to disperse; however, the assembly had other plans and remained in the piazza, waiting for the two champions to leave, despite the heavy rain still falling. Rondinelli was sent back amidst shouts and jeers and was pelted with stones. Savonarola, thanks to his sacred attire and the host he still carried, made his way calmly through the crowd—a miracle just as impressive as if he had walked unharmed through the fire.
But it was only the sacred majesty of the host that had protected this man, who was indeed from this moment regarded as a false prophet: the crowd allowed Savonarola to return to his convent, but they regretted the necessity, so excited were they by the Arrabbiati party, who had always denounced him as a liar and a hypocrite. So when the next morning, Palm Sunday, he stood up in the pulpit to explain his conduct, he could not obtain a moment's silence for insults, hooting, and loud laughter. Then the outcry, at first derisive, became menacing: Savonarola, whose voice was too weak to subdue the tumult, descended from his pulpit, retired into the sacristy, and thence to his convent, where he shut himself up in his cell. At that moment a cry was heard, and was repeated by everybody present:
But it was only the sacred authority of the host that had protected this man, now seen as a false prophet. The crowd allowed Savonarola to return to his convent, but they regretted it, stirred up by the Arrabbiati party, who had always called him a liar and a hypocrite. So when, the next morning on Palm Sunday, he stood up in the pulpit to explain his actions, he couldn't get a moment of silence amidst the insults, jeers, and loud laughter. Soon, the mockery turned into something more threatening: Savonarola, whose voice was too weak to calm the chaos, stepped down from the pulpit and retreated to the sacristy, then to his convent, where he locked himself in his cell. At that moment, a cry was heard, echoed by everyone present:
"To San Marco, to San Marco!" The rioters, few at first, were recruited by all the populace as they swept along the streets, and at last reached the convent, dashing like an angry sea against the wall.
"To San Marco, to San Marco!" The rioters, who started as a small group, were soon joined by the entire crowd as they pushed through the streets, finally reaching the convent and slamming against the wall like an angry wave.
The doors, closed on Savonarola's entrance, soon crashed before the vehement onset of the powerful multitude, which struck down on the instant every obstacle it met: the whole convent was quickly flooded with people, and Savonarola, with his two confederates, Domenico Bonvicini and Silvestro Maruffi, was arrested in his cell, and conducted to prison amid the insults of the crowd, who, always in extremes, whether of enthusiasm or hatred, would have liked to tear them to pieces, and would not be quieted till they had exacted a promise that the prisoners should be forcibly compelled to make the trial of fire which they had refused to make of their own free will.
The doors, which had been shut during Savonarola's arrival, soon burst open under the overwhelming force of the furious crowd, which knocked down everything in its way: the entire convent quickly filled with people, and Savonarola, along with his two associates, Domenico Bonvicini and Silvestro Maruffi, was arrested in his cell and taken to prison amid the crowd's insults. The crowd, always intense in their feelings, whether in enthusiasm or hatred, wanted to tear them apart and wouldn't calm down until they received a promise that the prisoners would be forced to undergo the trial by fire they had previously refused to face willingly.
Alexander VI, as we may suppose, had not been without influence in bringing about this sudden and astonishing reaction, although he was not present in person; and had scarcely learned the news of Savonarola's fall and arrest when he claimed him as subject to ecclesiastical jurisdiction. But in spite of the grant of indulgences wherewith this demand was accompanied, the Signoria insisted that Savonarola's trial should take place at Florence, adding a request so as not to appear to withdraw the accused completely from the pontifical authority—that the pope would send two ecclesiastical judges to sit in the Florentine tribunal. Alexander, seeing that he would get nothing better from the magnificent republic, sent as deputies Gioacchino Turriano of Venice, General of the Dominicans, and Francesco Ramolini, doctor in law: they practically brought the sentence with them, declaring Savonarola and his accomplices heretics, schismatics, persecutors of the Church and seducers of the people.
Alexander VI, as we can guess, played a part in triggering this sudden and shocking reaction, even though he wasn't physically present; and he had barely received the news of Savonarola's fall and arrest when he asserted his authority over him. But despite the indulgences that came with this demand, the Signoria insisted that Savonarola's trial should take place in Florence, adding a request to show they weren't completely dismissing the accused from papal authority—that the pope would send two church judges to join the Florentine court. Realizing he wouldn't get a better deal from the influential republic, Alexander sent Gioacchino Turriano of Venice, General of the Dominicans, and Francesco Ramolini, a law doctor, as deputies: they effectively brought the verdict with them, declaring Savonarola and his followers heretics, schismatics, persecutors of the Church, and deceivers of the people.
The firmness shown by the Florentines in claiming their rights of jurisdiction were nothing but an empty show to save appearances; the tribunal, as a fact, was composed of eight members, all known to be fervent haters of Savonarola, whose trial began with the torture. The result was that, feeble in body constitutionally nervous and irritable, he had not been able to endure the rack, and, overcome by agony just at the moment when the executioner had lifted him up by the wrists and then dropped him a distance of two feet to the ground, he had confessed, in order to get some respite, that his prophecies were nothing more than conjectures. If is true that, so soon as he went back to prison, he protested against the confession, saying that it was the weakness of his bodily organs and his want of firmness that had wrested the lie from him, but that the truth really was that the Lord had several times appeared to him in his ecstasies and revealed the things that he had spoken. This protestation led to a new application of the torture, during which Savonarola succumbed once more to the dreadful pain, and once more retracted. But scarcely was he unbound, and was still lying on the bed of torture, when he declared that his confessions were the fault of his torturers, and the vengeance would recoil upon their heads; and he protested yet once more against all he had confessed and might confess again. A third time the torture produced the same avowals, and the relief that followed it the same retractions. The judges therefore, when they condemned him and his two disciples to the flames, decided that his confession should not be read aloud at the stake, according to custom, feeling certain that on this occasion also he would give it the lie, and that publicly, which, as anyone must see who knew the versatile spirit of the public, would be a most dangerous proceeding.
The determination displayed by the Florentines in claiming their rights to jurisdiction was merely a show to keep up appearances; the court was actually composed of eight members, all known to be fierce opponents of Savonarola, whose trial began with torture. Consequently, being physically weak and naturally anxious and irritable, he couldn’t endure the rack. Overcome by pain, just as the executioner had lifted him by the wrists and then let him drop two feet to the ground, he confessed, seeking relief, that his prophecies were just guesses. He quickly returned to his cell and claimed the confession was a result of his physical weakness and lack of resolve, insisting that the truth was the Lord had appeared to him multiple times during his visions and revealed to him the things he had said. This protest led to further torture, during which Savonarola once again succumbed to the intense pain and retracted his statements. But as soon as he was untied and still lying on the torture bed, he claimed that his confessions were due to the actions of his torturers, and that vengeance would come back on them. He protested again against everything he had confessed and might confess again. A third round of torture led to the same admissions, followed by the same retractions afterward. Therefore, when they condemned him and his two followers to be burned, the judges decided that his confession would not be read aloud at the stake, as was customary, convinced that he would deny it publicly once more, which, as anyone familiar with the unpredictable nature of the public could see, would be extremely dangerous.
On the 23rd of May, the fire which had been promised to the people before was a second time prepared on the Piazza del Palazzo, and this time the crowd assembled quite certain that they would not be disappointed of a spectacle so long anticipated. And towards eleven o'clock in the morning, Girolamo Savonarola, Domenico Bonvicini, and Silvestro Maruffi were led to the place of execution, degraded of their orders by the ecclesiastical judges, and bound all three to the same stake in the centre of an immense pile of wood. Then the bishop Pagnanoli told the condemned men that he cut them off from the Church. "Ay, from the Church militant," said Savonarola, who from that very hour, thanks to his martyrdom, was entering into the Church triumphant. No other words were spoken by the condemned men, for at this moment one of the Arrabbiati, a personal enemy of Savonarola, breaking through the hedge of guards around the scaffold, snatched the torch from the executioner's hand and himself set fire to the four corners of the pile. Savonarola and his disciples, from the moment when they saw the smoke arise, began to sing a psalm, and the flames enwrapped them on all sides with a glowing veil, while their religious song was yet heard mounting upward to the gates of heaven.
On May 23rd, the fire that had been promised to the people was set up again in the Piazza del Palazzo, and this time the crowd gathered, fully expecting not to be let down by a long-awaited show. Around eleven o'clock in the morning, Girolamo Savonarola, Domenico Bonvicini, and Silvestro Maruffi were brought to the execution site, stripped of their orders by the church judges, and tied together to the same stake in the middle of a huge pile of wood. Bishop Pagnanoli told the condemned men that he was cutting them off from the Church. "Yes, from the Church militant," replied Savonarola, who at that moment, due to his martyrdom, was entering the Church triumphant. No other words were exchanged among the condemned men before one of Savonarola's enemies, breaking through the guards around the scaffold, snatched the torch from the executioner's hand and set fire to the four corners of the pile. As soon as Savonarola and his disciples saw the smoke, they began to sing a psalm, and the flames wrapped around them like a glowing veil, while their religious song could still be heard rising to the gates of heaven.
Pope Alexander VI was thus set free from perhaps the most formidable enemy who had ever risen against him, and the pontifical vengeance pursued the victims even after their death: the Signoria, yielding to his wishes, gave orders that the ashes of the prophet and his disciples should be thrown into the Arno. But certain half-burned fragments were picked up by the very soldiers whose business it was to keep the people back from approaching the fire, and the holy relics are even now shown, blackened by the flames, to the faithful, who if they no longer regard Savonarola as a prophet, revere him none the less as a martyr.
Pope Alexander VI was finally free from what might have been the strongest enemy he ever encountered, and the church's quest for revenge continued to target the victims even after their deaths: the Signoria, following his orders, decreed that the ashes of the prophet and his followers be thrown into the Arno. However, some partially burned pieces were collected by the very soldiers assigned to keep people away from the fire, and these holy relics are still displayed today, blackened by the flames, to the faithful, who, although they may no longer view Savonarola as a prophet, still honor him as a martyr.
CHAPTER X
The French army was now preparing to cross the Alps a second time, under the command of Trivulce. Louis XII had come as far as Lyons in the company of Caesar Borgia and Giuliano della Rovere, on whom he had forced a reconciliation, and towards the beginning of the month of May had sent his vanguard before him, soon to be followed by the main body of the army. The forces he was employing in this second campaign of conquest were 1600 lances, 5000 Swiss, 9000 Gascons, and 3500 infantry, raised from all parts of France. On the 13th of August this whole body, amounting to nearly 15,000 men, who were to combine their forces with the Venetians, arrived beneath the walls of Arezzo, and immediately laid siege to the town.
TheThe French army was getting ready to cross the Alps for the second time, led by Trivulce. Louis XII had arrived in Lyons with Caesar Borgia and Giuliano della Rovere, with whom he had managed to make peace. At the beginning of May, he sent his vanguard ahead, soon followed by the main army. For this second campaign of conquest, he had gathered 1,600 cavalry, 5,000 Swiss troops, 9,000 Gascons, and 3,500 infantry from all over France. On August 13th, this entire force, totaling nearly 15,000 men, who were to join with the Venetians, arrived at the walls of Arezzo and immediately laid siege to the town.
Ludovico Sforza's position was a terrible one: he was now suffering from his imprudence in calling the French into Italy; all the allies he had thought he might count upon were abandoning him at the same moment, either because they were busy about their own affairs, or because they were afraid of the powerful enemy that the Duke of Milan had made for himself. Maximilian, who had promised him a contribution of 400 lances, to make up for not renewing the hostilities with Louis XII that had been interrupted, had just made a league with the circle of Swabia to war against the Swiss, whom he had declared rebels against the Empire. The Florentines, who had engaged to furnish him with 300 men-at-arms and 2000 infantry, if he would help them to retake Pisa, had just retracted their promise because of Louis XII's threats, and had undertaken to remain neutral. Frederic, who was holding back his troops for the defence of his own States, because he supposed, not without reason, that, Milan once conquered, he would again have to defend Naples, sent him no help, no men, no money, in spite of his promises. Ludovico Sforza was therefore reduced to his own proper forces.
Ludovico Sforza's situation was desperate: he was now facing the consequences of his reckless choice to invite the French into Italy. All the allies he thought he could count on were abandoning him, either because they were dealing with their own problems or because they were scared of the strong enemy that the Duke of Milan had created for himself. Maximilian, who had promised him 400 lances for not resuming hostilities with Louis XII, had just formed an alliance with the Swabian circle to fight against the Swiss, whom he labeled as rebels against the Empire. The Florentines, who had promised to supply him with 300 knights and 2000 infantry if he helped them reclaim Pisa, had just pulled back their support due to Louis XII's threats and chose to remain neutral. Frederic, who was holding back his troops to protect his own lands, believing—correctly—that once Milan was conquered, he would have to defend Naples again, provided him with no aid, no soldiers, no money, despite his assurances. Ludovico Sforza was therefore left with just his own forces.
But as he was a man powerful in arms and clever in artifice, he did not allow himself to succumb at the first blow, and in all haste fortified Annona, Novarro, and Alessandria, sent off Cajazzo with troops to that part of the Milanese territory which borders on the states of Venice, and collected on the Po as many troops as he could. But these precautions availed him nothing against the impetuous onslaught of the French, who in a few days had taken Annona, Arezzo, Novarro, Voghiera, Castelnuovo, Ponte Corona, Tartone, and Alessandria, while Trivulce was on the march to Milan.
But since he was a powerful warrior and a clever strategist, he refused to be defeated at the first strike. He quickly strengthened Annona, Novarro, and Alessandria, sent Cajazzo with troops to the part of Milan’s territory that borders Venice, and gathered as many troops as he could along the Po River. However, these efforts were ineffective against the brutal attack from the French, who, within just a few days, captured Annona, Arezzo, Novarro, Voghiera, Castelnuovo, Ponte Corona, Tartone, and Alessandria, while Trivulce marched toward Milan.
Seeing the rapidity of this conquest and their numerous victories, Ludovico Sforza, despairing of holding out in his capital, resolved to retire to Germany, with his children, his brother, Cardinal Ascanio Sforza, and his treasure, which had been reduced in the course of eight years from 1,500,000 to 200,000 ducats. But before he went he left Bernardino da Carte in charge of the castle of Milan. In vain did his friends warn him to distrust this man, in vain did his brother Ascanio offer to hold the fortress himself, and offer to hold it to the very last; Ludovico refused to make any change in his arrangements, and started on the 2nd of September, leaving in the citadel three thousand foot and enough provisions, ammunition, and money to sustain a siege of several months.
Seeing how quickly the conquest was progressing and their numerous victories, Ludovico Sforza, realizing he couldn't hold his capital any longer, decided to retreat to Germany with his children, his brother, Cardinal Ascanio Sforza, and his treasure, which had decreased over eight years from 1,500,000 to 200,000 ducats. Before he left, he appointed Bernardino da Carte in charge of the castle in Milan. His friends warned him not to trust this man, and his brother Ascanio even offered to take charge of the fortress himself and defend it to the end; however, Ludovico refused to change his plans and set off on September 2nd, leaving three thousand foot soldiers in the citadel along with enough supplies, ammunition, and money to withstand a siege for several months.
Two days after Ludovico's departure, the French entered Milan. Ten days later Bernardino da Come gave up the castle before a single gun had been fired. Twenty-one days had sufficed for the French to get possession of the various towns, the capital, and all the territories of their enemy.
Two days after Ludovico left, the French seized Milan. Ten days later, Bernardino da Come surrendered the castle without any shots being fired. In just twenty-one days, the French had taken control of the various towns, the capital, and all the territories of their opponent.
Louis XII received the news of this success while he was at Lyons, and he at once started for Milan, where he was received with demonstrations of joy that were really sincere. Citizens of every rank had come out three miles' distance from the gates to receive him, and forty boys, dressed in cloth of gold and silk, marched before him singing hymns of victory composed by poets of the period, in which the king was styled their liberator and the envoy of freedom. The great joy of the Milanese people was due to the fact that friends of Louis had been spreading reports beforehand that the King of France was rich enough to abolish all taxes. And so soon as the second day from his arrival at Milan the conqueror made some slight reduction, granted important favours to certain Milanese gentlemen, and bestowed the town of Vigavano on Trivulce as a reward for his swift and glorious campaign. But Caesar Borgia, who had followed Louis XII with a view to playing his part in the great hunting-ground of Italy, scarcely waited for him to attain his end when he claimed the fulfilment of his promise, which the king with his accustomed loyalty hastened to perform. He instantly put at the disposal of Caesar three hundred lances under the command of Yves d'Alegre, and four thousand Swiss under the command of the bailiff of Dijon, as a help in his work of reducing the Vicars of the Church.
Louis XII got the news of this success while he was in Lyon, and he quickly set off for Milan, where he was greeted with genuine joy. Citizens from all walks of life lined up three miles from the gates to welcome him, and forty boys dressed in gold and silk marched ahead of him singing victory songs written by contemporary poets, celebrating the king as their liberator and bringer of freedom. The great happiness of the people of Milan came from supporters of Louis spreading the word that the King of France was rich enough to eliminate all taxes. By the second day of his arrival in Milan, the conqueror made a small tax reduction, granted significant favors to several Milanese gentlemen, and awarded the town of Vigavano to Trivulce as a reward for his quick and glorious campaign. However, Caesar Borgia, who had followed Louis XII with the aim of making his mark in the vast territory of Italy, barely waited for him to achieve his goal before insisting that the king fulfill his promise, which Louis, ever loyal, quickly did. He immediately provided Caesar with three hundred cavalry led by Yves d'Alegre and four thousand Swiss troops under the bailiff of Dijon to help reduce the Vicars of the Church.
We must now explain to our readers who these new personages were whom we introduce upon the scene by the above name.
We need to explain to our readers who these new characters are that we introduced with the name above.
During the eternal wars of Guelphs and Ghibelines and the long exile of the popes at Avignon, most of the towns and fortresses of the Romagna had been usurped by petty tyrants, who for the most part had received from the Empire the investiture of their new possessions; but ever since German influence had retired beyond the Alps, and the popes had again made Rome the centre of the Christian world, all the small princes, robbed of their original protector, had rallied round the papal see, and received at the hands of the pope a new investiture, and now they paid annual dues, for which they received the particular title of duke, count, or lord, and the general name of Vicar of the Church.
During the ongoing conflicts between the Guelphs and Ghibellines and the long period when the popes were in exile in Avignon, most of the towns and fortresses in Romagna were taken over by small tyrants, who usually got their new territories approved by the Empire. However, since German influence pulled back beyond the Alps and the popes reestablished Rome as the center of the Christian world, all the minor princes, no longer protected by their original supporter, came together under papal authority and received new endorsements from the pope. Now, they paid annual fees in exchange for titles like duke, count, or lord, and a general title of Vicar of the Church.
It had been no difficult matter for Alexander, scrupulously examining the actions and behaviour of these gentlemen during the seven years that had elapsed since he was exalted to St. Peter's throne, to find in the conduct of each one of them something that could be called an infraction of the treaty made between vassals and suzerain; accordingly he brought forward his complaints at a tribunal established for the purpose, and obtained sentence from the judges to the effect that the vicars of the Church, having failed to fulfil the conditions of their investiture, were despoiled of their domains, which would again become the property of the Holy See. As the pope was now dealing with men against whom it was easier to pass a sentence than to get it carried out, he had nominated as captain-general the new Duke of Valentinois, who was commissioned to recover the territories for his own benefit. The lords in question were the Malatesti of Rimini, the Sforza of Pesaro, the Manfredi of Faenza, the Riarii of Imola and Forli, the Variani of Camerina, the Montefeltri of Urbino, and the Caetani of Sermoneta.
Alexander had found it easy to observe the actions and behavior of these gentlemen over the seven years since he became the ruler of St. Peter and to identify aspects of their conduct that violated the agreement between vassals and their lord. As a result, he brought his complaints to a tribunal established for this purpose, and the judges ruled that the Church's representatives, having failed to comply with their duties, would lose their lands, which would then return to the Holy See. Since the pope was dealing with men against whom it was easier to issue a ruling than to enforce it, he appointed the new Duke of Valentinois as captain-general, with the mission of reclaiming the territories for his own benefit. The lords involved included the Malatesti of Rimini, the Sforza of Pesaro, the Manfredi of Faenza, the Riarii of Imola and Forli, the Variani of Camerina, the Montefeltri of Urbino, and the Caetani of Sermoneta.
But the Duke of Valentinois, eager to keep as warm as possible his great friendship with his ally and relative Louis XII, was, as we know, staying with him at Milan so long as he remained there, where, after a month's occupation, the king retraced his steps to his own capital, the Duke of Valentinois ordered his men-at-arms and his Swiss to await him between Parma and Modena, and departed posthaste for Rome, to explain his plans to his father viva voce and to receive his final instructions. When he arrived, he found that the fortune of his sister Lucrezia had been greatly augmented in his absence, not from the side of her husband Alfonso, whose future was very uncertain now in consequence of Louis's successes, which had caused some coolness between Alfonso and the pope, but from her father's side, upon whom at this time she exercised an influence more astonishing than ever. The pope had declared Lucrezia Borgia of Aragon life-governor of Spoleto and its duchy, with all emoluments, rights, and revenues accruing thereunto. This had so greatly increased her power and improved her position, that in these days she never showed herself in public without a company of two hundred horses ridden by the most illustrious ladies and noblest knights of Rome. Moreover, as the twofold affection of her father was a secret to nobody, the first prelates in the Church, the frequenters of the Vatican, the friends of His Holiness, were all her most humble servants; cardinals gave her their hands when she stepped from her litter or her horse, archbishops disputed the honour of celebrating mass in her private apartments.
The Duke of Valentinois, eager to maintain his close friendship with his ally and relative Louis XII, stayed with him in Milan for the duration of his visit. After a month of being there, when the king returned to his capital, the Duke of Valentinois sent his soldiers and Swiss troops to wait for him between Parma and Modena and rushed off to Rome to discuss his plans with his father in person and get his final instructions. Upon arriving, he found that his sister Lucrezia's fortunes had greatly improved during his absence, not because of her husband Alfonso, whose future was now quite uncertain due to Louis's victories that had created some tension between Alfonso and the pope, but because of her father, whom she continued to influence more than ever. The pope had appointed Lucrezia Borgia of Aragon as the life-governor of Spoleto and its duchy, along with all the benefits, rights, and revenues that came with that position. This greatly increased her power and status, to the extent that she never appeared in public without a retinue of two hundred riders made up of the most distinguished ladies and noble knights of Rome. Moreover, since her father's strong affection for her was well-known, the highest-ranking church officials, regular visitors to the Vatican, and friends of His Holiness all became her most devoted supporters. Cardinals offered her their hands when she got down from her litter or horse, and archbishops competed for the honor of celebrating mass in her private quarters.
But Lucrezia had been obliged to quit Rome in order to take possession of her new estates; and as her father could not spend much time away from his beloved daughter, he resolved to take into his hands the town of Nepi, which on a former occasion, as the reader will doubtless remember, he had bestowed on Ascanio Sforza in exchange for his suffrage. Ascanio had naturally lost this town when he attached himself to the fortunes of the Duke of Milan, his brother; and when the pope was about to take it again, he invited his daughter Lucrezia to join him there and be present at the rejoicings held in honour of his resuming its possession.
But Lucrezia had to leave Rome to manage her new estates, and since her father couldn’t be apart from his beloved daughter for long, he chose to take control of the town of Nepi, which he had previously given to Ascanio Sforza in return for his support. Naturally, Ascanio lost this town when he sided with his brother, the Duke of Milan; and when the pope was about to reclaim it, he invited his daughter Lucrezia to join him there for the celebrations to mark the return of its ownership.
Lucrezia's readiness in giving way to her father's wishes brought her a new gift from him: this was the town and territory of Sermoneta, which belonged to the Caetani. Of course the gift was as yet a secret, because the two owners of the seigneury, had first to be disposed of, one being Monsignore Giacomo Caetano, apostolic protonotary, the other Prospero Caetano, a young cavalier of great promise; but as both lived at Rome, and entertained no suspicion, but indeed supposed themselves to be in high favour with His Holiness, the one by virtue of his position, the other of his courage, the matter seemed to present no great difficulty. So directly after the return of Alexander to Rome, Giacomo Caetano was arrested, on what pretext we know not, was taken to the castle of Sant' Angelo, and there died shortly after, of poison: Prospero Caetano was strangled in his own house. After these two deaths, which both occurred so suddenly as to give no time for either to make a will, the pope declared that Sermoneta and all of her property appertaining to the Caetani devolved upon the apostolic chamber; and they were sold to Lucrezia for the sum of 80,000 crowns, which her father refunded to her the day after. Though Caesar hurried to Rome, he found when he arrived that his father had been beforehand with him, and had made a beginning of his conquests.
Lucrezia's willingness to meet her father's demands earned her a new gift from him: the town and territory of Sermoneta, previously owned by the Caetani family. Naturally, the gift was still a secret because they had to first handle the two owners of the seigneury: Monsignore Giacomo Caetano, an apostolic protonotary, and Prospero Caetano, an ambitious young knight. Both lived in Rome and had no idea anything was wrong; they thought they were in good standing with His Holiness, with Giacomo benefiting from his position and Prospero from his courage. So, the situation didn't seem too complicated. Shortly after Alexander returned to Rome, Giacomo Caetano was arrested—under circumstances unknown to us—and taken to the castle of Sant' Angelo, where he soon died from poisoning. Prospero Caetano was strangled in his own home. After these two unexpected deaths, which left no time for either to write a will, the pope declared that Sermoneta and all its properties belonging to the Caetani were transferred to the apostolic chamber and sold to Lucrezia for 80,000 crowns, which her father reimbursed her the next day. Although Caesar rushed to Rome, he found that his father had already begun his conquests.
Another fortune also had been making prodigious strides during Caesar's stay in France, viz. the fortune of Gian Borgia, the pope's nephew, who had been one of the most devoted friends of the Duke of Gandia up to the time of his death. It was said in Rome, and not in a whisper, that the young cardinal owed the favours heaped upon him by His Holiness less to the memory of the brother than to the protection of the sister. Both these reasons made Gian Borgia a special object of suspicion to Caesar, and it was with an inward vow that he should not enjoy his new dignities very long that the Duke of Valentinois heard that his cousin Gian had just been nominated cardinal 'a latere' of all the Christian world, and had quitted Rome to make a circuit through all the pontifical states with a suite of archbishops, bishops, prelates, and gentlemen, such as would have done honour to the pope himself.
While Caesar was in France, another fortune was making significant strides: the fortune of Gian Borgia, the pope's nephew, who had been a loyal friend of the Duke of Gandia until his death. It was widely rumored in Rome that the young cardinal owed the favors he received from His Holiness more to his sister’s protection than to his brother’s memory. These two factors made Gian Borgia a particular target of suspicion for Caesar. With a quiet resolve that Gian wouldn’t hold onto his new position for long, the Duke of Valentinois discovered that his cousin Gian had just been appointed cardinal 'a latere' of the entire Christian world. He had left Rome to tour all the papal states, accompanied by a group of archbishops, bishops, prelates, and noblemen, which would have been an honor for the pope himself.
Caesar had only come to Rome to get news; so he only stayed three days, and then, with all the troops His Holiness could supply, rejoined his forces on the borders of the Euza, and marched at once to Imola. This town, abandoned by its chiefs, who had retired to Forli, was forced to capitulate. Imola taken, Caesar marched straight upon Forli. There he met with a serious check; a check, moreover, which came from a woman. Caterina Sforza, widow of Girolamo and mother of Ottaviano Riario, had retired to this town, and stirred up the courage of the garrison by putting herself, her goods and her person, under their protection. Caesar saw that it was no longer a question of a sudden capture, but of a regular siege; so he began to make all his arrangements with a view to it, and placing a battery of cannon in front of the place where the walls seemed to him weakest, he ordered an uninterrupted fire, to be continued until the breach was practicable.
Caesar had only come to Rome to get updates, so he only stayed for three days. After that, he rejoined his troops at the borders of the Euza with all the soldiers that His Holiness could provide and marched straight to Imola. This town, abandoned by its leaders who had retreated to Forli, had to surrender. With Imola taken, Caesar headed directly for Forli. There, he faced a significant setback, which, interestingly, came from a woman. Caterina Sforza, the widow of Girolamo and mother of Ottaviano Riario, had taken refuge in this town and lifted the spirits of the garrison by offering her own protection and resources. Caesar realized that it was no longer about a quick capture but a full siege, so he began to organize accordingly, positioning a cannon battery at the point he thought the walls were weakest and ordered continuous bombardment until the breach was wide enough to use.
When he returned to the camp after giving this order, he found there Gian Borgia, who had gone to Rome from Ferrara and was unwilling to be so near Caesar without paying him a visit: he was received with effusion and apparently the greatest joy, and stayed three days; on the fourth day all the officers and members of the court were invited to a grand farewell supper, and Caesar bade farewell to his cousin, charging him with despatches for the pope, and lavishing upon him all the tokens of affection he had shown on his arrival.
When he returned to the camp after giving this order, he found Gian Borgia there. Gian had come to Rome from Ferrara and wanted to visit Caesar while he was nearby. He was welcomed warmly and seemed to be genuinely happy, staying for three days. On the fourth day, all the officers and court members were invited to a big farewell dinner, and Caesar said goodbye to his cousin, sending him messages for the pope and expressing all the affection he had shown upon his arrival.
Cardinal Gian Borgia posted off as soon as he left the supper-table, but on arriving at Urbino he was seized with such a sudden and strange indisposition that he was forced to stop; but after a few minutes, feeling rather better, he went an; scarcely, however, had he entered Rocca Cantrada when he again felt so extremely ill that he resolved to go no farther, and stayed a couple of days in the town. Then, as he thought he was a little better again, and as he had heard the news of the taking of Forli and also that Caterina Sforza had been taken prisoner while she was making an attempt to retire into the castle, he resolved to go back to Caesar and congratulate him on his victory; but at Fassambrane he was forced to stop a third time, although he had given up his carriage for a litter. This was his last halt: the same day he sought his bed, never to rise from it again; three days later he was dead.
Cardinal Gian Borgia left right after dinner, but when he arrived in Urbino, he suddenly felt very sick and had to take a break. After a few minutes, feeling a bit better, he continued on; however, just as he entered Rocca Cantrada, he felt so ill again that he decided to rest for a couple of days. Once he thought he was feeling somewhat better and found out that Forli had been taken and that Caterina Sforza had been captured while trying to escape into the castle, he decided to return to Caesar to congratulate him on his victory. But at Fassambrane, he had to stop again, even though he had switched from a carriage to a litter. This was his final stop: that same day he went to bed and never got up again; three days later, he was dead.
His body was taken to Rome and buried without any ceremony in the church of Santa Maria del Populo, where lay awaiting him the corpse of his friend the Duke of Gandia; and there was now no more talk of the young cardinal, high as his rank had been, than if he had never existed. Thus in gloom and silence passed away all those who were swept to destruction by the ambition of that terrible trio, Alexander, Lucrezia, and Caesar.
His body was taken to Rome and buried without any ceremony in the church of Santa Maria del Populo, where the body of his friend the Duke of Gandia was already laid to rest. There was now no more discussion of the young cardinal, regardless of how high his status had been, as if he had never existed at all. In this way, in darkness and silence, all those who were consumed by the ambition of that dreadful trio—Alexander, Lucrezia, and Caesar—were erased from existence.
Almost at the same time Rome was terrified by another murder. Don Giovanni Cerviglione, a gentleman by birth and a brave soldier, captain of the pope's men-at-arms, was attacked one evening by the sbirri, as he was on his way home from supping with Don Elisio Pignatelli. One of the men asked his name, and as he pronounced it, seeing that there was no mistake, plunged a dagger into his breast, while a second man with a back stroke of his sword cut off his head, which lay actually at his feet before his body had time to fall.
Almost concurrently, Rome was rocked by another murder. Don Giovanni Cerviglione, a nobleman by birth and a courageous soldier, captain of the pope's guards, was ambushed one evening by the sbirri while returning home after dinner with Don Elisio Pignatelli. One of the assailants asked for his name, and when he confirmed it with no errors, he was stabbed in the chest with a dagger, while a second man quickly beheaded him with a sword, which fell at his feet even before his body had hit the ground.
The governor of Rome lodged a complaint against this assassination with the pope; but quickly perceiving, by the way his intimation was received, that he would have done better to say nothing, he stopped the inquiries he had started, so that neither of the murderers was ever arrested. But the rumour was circulated that Caesar, in the short stay he had made at Rome, had had a rendezvous with Cerviglione's wife, who was a Borgia by birth, and that her husband when he heard of this infringement of conjugal duty had been angry enough to threaten her and her lover, too: the threat had reached Caesar's ears, who, making a long arm of Michelotto, had, himself at Forli, struck down Cerviglione in the streets of Rome.
The governor of Rome reported the assassination to the pope; however, he quickly realized from the response to his message that he should have stayed silent. He then stopped the investigations he had started, so neither of the killers was ever caught. However, rumors began to circulate that during his short time in Rome, Caesar met with Cerviglione's wife, a Borgia by birth, and that when her husband found out about this betrayal, he was furious enough to threaten both her and her lover. This threat reached Caesar, and with Michelotto's help, he ordered Cerviglione to be killed in the streets of Rome while he was in Forli.
Another unexpected death followed so quickly on that of Don Giovanni Cerviglione that it could not but be attributed to the same originator, if not to the same cause. Monsignore Agnelli of Mantua, archbishop of Cosenza, clerk of the chamber and vice-legate of Viterbo, having fallen into disgrace with His Holiness, how it is not known, was poisoned at his own table, at which he had passed a good part of the night in cheerful conversation with three or four guests, the poison gliding meanwhile through his veins; then going to bed in perfect health, he was found dead in the morning. His possessions were at once divided into three portions: the land and houses were given to the Duke of Valentinois; the bishopric went to Francesco Borgia, son of Calixtus III; and the office of clerk of the chamber was sold for 5000 ducats to Ventura Bonnassai, a merchant of Siena, who produced this sum for Alexander, and settled down the very same day in the Vatican.
Another unexpected death came so soon after Don Giovanni Cerviglione’s that it couldn't help but be linked to the same source, if not the same reason. Monsignore Agnelli of Mantua, archbishop of Cosenza, clerk of the chamber, and vice-legate of Viterbo, had fallen out of favor with His Holiness, though the reasons are unclear. He was poisoned at his own dinner table, where he spent much of the night happily chatting with three or four guests while the poison spread through his body. After going to bed in perfect health, he was found dead in the morning. His possessions were quickly divided into three parts: the land and houses went to the Duke of Valentinois; the bishopric was given to Francesco Borgia, son of Calixtus III; and the clerk of the chamber position was sold for 5000 ducats to Ventura Bonnassai, a merchant from Siena, who provided the money to Alexander and settled in the Vatican that very same day.
This last death served the purpose of determining a point of law hitherto uncertain: as Monsignore Agnelli's natural heirs had made some difficulty about being disinherited, Alexander issued a brief; whereby he took from every cardinal and every priest the right of making a will, and declared that all their property should henceforth devolve upon him.
This last death clarified a previously unclear legal issue: since Monsignore Agnelli's natural heirs were unwilling to be disinherited, Alexander issued a decree removing the right to make a will from every cardinal and priest, declaring that all their property would now belong to him.
But Caesar was stopped short in the midst of his victories. Thanks to the 200,000 ducats that yet remained in his treasury, Ludovico Sforza had levied 500 men-at-arms from Burgundy and 8000 Swiss infantry, with whom he had entered Lombardy. So Trivulce, to face this enemy, had been compelled to call back Yves d'Alegre and the troops that Louis XII had lent to Caesar; consequently Caesar, leaving behind a body of pontifical soldiery as garrison at Forli and Imola, betook himself with the rest of his force to Rome.
But Caesar's victories came to a sudden stop. With 200,000 ducats still in his treasury, Ludovico Sforza had enlisted 500 knights from Burgundy and 8,000 Swiss infantry, which he brought into Lombardy. As a result, Trivulce had to call back Yves d'Alegre and the troops that Louis XII had given to Caesar to face this new threat; therefore, Caesar left a group of papal soldiers as a garrison in Forli and Imola and took the rest of his forces to Rome.
It was Alexander's wish that his entry should be a triumph; so when he learned that the quartermasters of the army were only a few leagues from the town, he sent out runners to invite the royal ambassadors, the cardinals, the prelates, the Roman barons, and municipal dignitaries to make procession with all their suite to meet the Duke of Valentinois; and as it always happens that the pride of those who command is surpassed by the baseness of those who obey, the orders were not only fulfilled to the letter, but beyond it.
Alexander wanted his arrival to be a huge success, so when he learned that the army's quartermasters were just a few miles from the town, he sent messengers to invite the royal ambassadors, cardinals, bishops, Roman nobles, and local officials to join a procession with all their attendants to welcome the Duke of Valentinois. As is often the case, the arrogance of those in charge was outdone by the enthusiasm of those who followed, as the orders were not only followed precisely but also exceeded.
The entry of Caesar took place on the 26th of February, 1500. Although this was the great Jubilee year, the festivals of the carnival began none the less for that, and were conducted in a manner even more extravagant and licentious than usual; and the conqueror after the first day prepared a new display of ostentation, which he concealed under the veil of a masquerade. As he was pleased to identify himself with the glory, genius, and fortune of the great man whose name he bore, he resolved on a representation of the triumph of Julius Caesar, to be given on the Piazzi di Navona, the ordinary place for holding the carnival fetes. The next day, therefore, he and his retinue started from that square, and traversed all the streets of Rome, wearing classical costumes and riding in antique cars, on one of which Caesar stood, clad in the robe of an emperor of old, his brow crowned with a golden laurel wreath, surrounded by lictors, soldiers, and ensign-bearers, who carried banners whereon was inscribed the motto, 'Aut Caesar aut nihil'.
Caesar arrived on February 26, 1500. Even though it was a major Jubilee year, the carnival celebrations still began, and they were more extravagant and wild than usual. After the first day, he planned another display of wealth, which he disguised as a masquerade. Aligning himself with the glory, talent, and luck of the famous figure he was named after, he decided to put on a representation of Julius Caesar's triumph in Piazza Navona, the usual location for carnival festivities. So, the next day, he and his entourage left that square and traveled through all the streets of Rome, dressed in classical costumes and riding in ancient chariots. On one of them, Caesar stood dressed in the robe of an ancient emperor, his head crowned with a golden laurel wreath, surrounded by lictors, soldiers, and flag bearers holding banners that read, 'Aut Caesar aut nihil'.
Finally, on the fourth Sunday, in Lent, the pope conferred upon Caesar the dignity he had so long coveted, and appointed him general and gonfaloniere of the Holy Church.
On the fourth Sunday of Lent, the pope finally gave Caesar the position he had wanted for so long, appointing him as the general and gonfaloniere of the Holy Church.
In the meanwhile Sforza had crossed the Alps and passed the Lake of Como, amid acclamations of joy from his former subjects, who had quickly lost the enthusiasm that the French army and Louis's promises had inspired. These demonstrations were so noisy at Milan, that Trivulce, judging that there was no safety for a French garrison in remaining there, made his way to Navarra. Experience proved that he was not deceived; for scarcely had the Milanese observed his preparations for departure when a suppressed excitement began to spread through the town, and soon the streets were filled with armed men. This murmuring crowd had to be passed through, sword in hand and lance in rest; and scarcely had the French got outside the gates when the mob rushed out after the army into the country, pursuing them with shouts and hooting as far as the banks of the Tesino. Trivulce left 400 lances at Navarra as well as the 3000 Swiss that Yves d'Alegre had brought from the Romagna, and directed his course with the rest of the army towards Mortara, where he stopped at last to await the help he had demanded from the King of France. Behind him Cardinal Ascanio and Ludovico entered Milan amid the acclamations of the whole town.
Meanwhile, Sforza had crossed the Alps and passed Lake Como, receiving cheers from his former subjects, who quickly lost the excitement that the French army and Louis's promises had inspired. The celebrations in Milan were so loud that Trivulce, realizing there was no safety for a French garrison there, made his way to Navarra. Experience showed he was right; as soon as the Milanese noticed his preparations to leave, a controlled excitement began to spread through the town, and soon the streets were filled with armed men. This restless crowd had to be navigated through, sword in hand and lance at the ready; and as soon as the French got outside the gates, the mob rushed after the army into the countryside, chasing them with shouts and jeers all the way to the banks of the Tesino. Trivulce left 400 lances in Navarra along with the 3000 Swiss that Yves d'Alegre had brought from the Romagna, and led the rest of the army towards Mortara, where he finally stopped to wait for the assistance he had requested from the King of France. Behind him, Cardinal Ascanio and Ludovico entered Milan to the cheers of the whole town.
Neither of them lost any time, and wishing to profit by this enthusiasm, Ascanio undertook to besiege the castle of Milan while Ludovico should cross the Tesino and attack Navarra.
Neither of them wasted any time, and eager to capitalize on this excitement, Ascanio decided to besiege the castle of Milan while Ludovico crossed the Tesino and launched an attack on Navarra.
There besiegers and besieged were sons of the same nation; for Yves d'Alegre had scarcely as many as 300 French with him, and Ludovico 500 Italians. In fact, for the last sixteen years the Swiss had been practically the only infantry in Europe, and all the Powers came, purse in hand, to draw from the mighty reservoir of their mountains. The consequence was that these rude children of William Tell, put up to auction by the nations, and carried away from the humble, hardy life of a mountain people into cities of wealth and pleasure, had lost, not their ancient courage, but that rigidity of principle for which they had been distinguished before their intercourse with other nations. From being models of honour and good faith they had become a kind of marketable ware, always ready for sale to the highest bidder. The French were the first to experience this venality, which later-on proved so fatal to Ludovico Sforza.
The attackers and defenders came from the same country; Yves d'Alegre had just under 300 French soldiers, while Ludovico had 500 Italians. Over the past sixteen years, the Swiss had mainly been the only infantry in Europe, and every power came with money in hand to tap into the vast resources of their mountains. As a result, these rugged descendants of William Tell, sold off by nations and taken from their humble, resilient lives in the mountains to the cities of wealth and pleasure, hadn't lost their ancient bravery, but they had lost the strong principles that once set them apart before engaging with other nations. Instead of being examples of honor and integrity, they had become a sort of commodity, always ready to be sold to the highest bidder. The French were the first to experience this corruption, which ultimately proved to be incredibly destructive for Ludovico Sforza.
Now the Swiss in the garrison at Navarra had been in communication with their compatriots in the vanguard of the ducal army, and when they found that they, who as a fact were unaware that Ludavico's treasure was nearly exhausted, were better fed as well as better paid than themselves, they offered to give up the town and go over to the Milanese, if they could be certain of the same pay. Ludovico, as we may well suppose, closed with this bargain. The whole of Navarra was given up to him except the citadel, which was defended by Frenchmen: thus the enemy's army was recruited by 3000 men. Then Ludovico made the mistake of stopping to besiege the castle instead of marching on to Mortara with the new reinforcement. The result of this was that Louis XII, to whom runners had been sent by Trivulce, understanding his perilous position, hastened the departure of the French gendarmerie who were already collected to cross into Italy, sent off the bailiff of Dijon to levy new Swiss forces, and ordered Cardinal Amboise, his prime minister, to cross the Alps and take up a position at Asti, to hurry on the work of collecting the troops. There the cardinal found a nest-egg of 3000 men. La Trimouille added 1500 lances and 6000 French infantry; finally, the bailiff of Dijon arrived with 10,000 Swiss; so that, counting the troops which Trivulce had at Mortara, Louis XII found himself master on the other side of the Alps of the first army any French king had ever led out to battle. Soon, by good marching, and before Ludovico knew the strength or even the existence of this army, it took up a position between Navarra and Milan, cutting off all communication between the duke and his capital. He was therefore compelled, in spite of his inferior numbers, to prepare for a pitched battle.
The Swiss soldiers stationed at Navarra had been in contact with their fellow countrymen in the front lines of the ducal army. When they realized that those at the front, who were actually unaware that Ludovico's treasure was nearly depleted, were being better fed and paid, they offered to surrender the town and join the Milanese, as long as they could receive the same pay. Ludovico likely accepted this proposal. The entire area of Navarra was handed over to him except for the citadel, which was defended by French troops, resulting in an increase of 3,000 enemy soldiers. Then Ludovico made the mistake of choosing to besiege the castle instead of advancing to Mortara with the new reinforcements. This allowed Louis XII, who had received urgent messages from Trivulce about the dangerous situation, to speed up the deployment of the French cavalry already gathered to enter Italy. He sent the bailiff of Dijon to recruit new Swiss troops and instructed Cardinal Amboise, his prime minister, to cross the Alps and establish a base at Asti to expedite the assembly of forces. The cardinal found a base of 3,000 men there. La Trimouille added 1,500 lancers and 6,000 French infantry; finally, the bailiff of Dijon arrived with 10,000 Swiss troops. Counting the forces that Trivulce had at Mortara, Louis XII found himself in command of the largest army any French king had ever led into battle across the Alps. Soon, through efficient marching, and before Ludovico was aware of either the size or even the existence of this army, it positioned itself between Navarra and Milan, cutting off all communication between the duke and his capital. He was thus forced, despite his smaller numbers, to prepare for a decisive battle.
But it so happened that just when the preparations for a decisive engagement were being made on both sides, the Swiss Diet, learning that the sons of Helvetia were on the point of cutting one another's throats, sent orders to all the Swiss serving in either army to break their engagements and return to the fatherland. But during the two months that had passed between the surrender of Navarra and the arrival of the French army before the town, there had been a very great change in the face of things, because Ludovico Sforza's treasure was now exhausted. New confabulations had gone on between the outposts, and this time, thanks to the money sent by Louis XII, it was the Swiss in the service of France who were found to be the better fed and better paid. The worthy Helvetians, since they no longer fought for their own liberty, knew the value of their blood too well to allow a single drop of it to be spilled for less than its weight in gold: the result was that, as they had, betrayed Yves d'Alegre, they resolved to betray Ludovico Sforza too; and while the recruits brought in by the bailiff of Dijon were standing firmly by the French flag, careless of the order of the Diet, Ludovico's auxiliaries declared that in fighting against their Swiss brethren they would be acting in disobedience to the Diet, and would risk capital punishment in the end—a danger that nothing would induce them to incur unless they immediately received the arrears of their pay. The duke, who had spent the last ducat he had with him, and was entirely cut off from his capital, knew that he could not get money till he had fought his way through to it, and therefore invited the Swiss to make one last effort, promising them not only the pay that was in arrears but a double hire. But unluckily the fulfilment of this promise was dependent on the doubtful issue of a battle, and the Swiss replied that they had far too much respect for their country to disobey its decree, and that they loved their brothers far too well to consent to shed their blood without reward; and therefore Sforza would do well not to count upon them, since indeed the very next day they proposed to return to their homes. The duke then saw that all was lost, but he made a last appeal to their honour, adjuring them at least to ensure his personal safety by making it a condition of capitulation. But they replied that even if a condition of such a kind, would not make capitulation impossible, it would certainly deprive them of advantages which they had a right to expect, and on which they counted as indemnification for the arrears of their pay. They pretended, however, at last that they were touched by the prayers of the man whose orders they had obeyed so long, and offered to conceal him dressed in their clothes among their ranks. This proposition was barely plausible; for Sforza was short and, by this time an old man, and he could not possibly escape recognition in the midst of an army where the oldest was not past thirty and the shortest not less than five foot six. Still, this was his last chance, and he did not reject it at once, but tried to modify it so that it might help him in his straits. His plan was to disguise himself as a Franciscan monk, so that mounted on a shabby horse he might pass for their chaplain; the others, Galeazzo di San Severing, who commanded under him, and his two brothers, were all tall men, so, adopting the dress of common soldiers, they hoped they might escape detection in the Swiss ranks.
Just as both sides were getting ready for a decisive battle, the Swiss Diet realized the Swiss were about to turn on each other and ordered all Swiss soldiers in either army to break their contracts and go home. However, in the two months between Navarra's surrender and the French army's arrival in town, things had changed a lot because Ludovico Sforza was now out of money. New talks had taken place among the outposts, and this time, thanks to the funds sent by Louis XII, it was the Swiss fighting for France who were better fed and paid. The honorable Swiss, no longer fighting for their freedom, valued their lives too much to shed even a drop of blood for anything less than its weight in gold. So, just as they had betrayed Yves d'Alegre, they decided to betray Ludovico Sforza as well. While the recruits brought in by the bailiff of Dijon stood firmly by the French flag, ignoring the Diet's order, Ludovico’s allies stated that fighting against their Swiss brothers would mean disobeying the Diet, risking capital punishment—a risk they wouldn’t take without receiving their overdue payments immediately. The duke, having spent his last ducat and cut off from his funds, understood he wouldn't get any money until he fought for it, so he urged the Swiss for one last effort, promising not only the overdue payments but double the pay. Unfortunately, this promise depended on the uncertain outcome of a battle, and the Swiss responded that they respected their country too much to disobey its decree and loved their brothers too much to spill blood without compensation; therefore, Sforza shouldn’t count on them since they planned to return home the next day. The duke then realized everything was lost but made a final appeal to their honor, asking them to secure his personal safety as a condition of surrender. They replied that while that condition wouldn’t make surrender impossible, it would certainly deny them the benefits they expected as compensation for their overdue pay. Eventually, they pretended to be touched by the pleas of the man they had obeyed for so long and offered to hide him in their ranks disguised in their clothes. This proposal was only slightly believable; Sforza was short and, by then, an old man, making it tough to go unnoticed in an army where the oldest wasn’t over thirty and the shortest was at least five foot six. Still, it was his last chance, so he didn’t outright reject it but tried to adjust it to help his situation. His plan was to disguise himself as a Franciscan monk so that riding a shabby horse, he might pass for their chaplain; the others, Galeazzo di San Severing, who commanded under him, and his two brothers were all tall men, so by wearing the clothes of common soldiers, they hoped to avoid detection among the Swiss ranks.
Scarcely were these plans settled when the duke heard that the capitulation was signed between Trivulce and the Swiss, who had made no stipulation in favour of him and his generals. They were to go over the next day with arms and baggage right into the French army; so the last hope of the wretched Ludovico and his generals must needs be in their disguise. And so it was. San Severino and his brothers took their place in the ranks of the infantry, and Sforza took his among the baggage, clad in a monk's frock, with the hood pulled over his eyes.
As soon as these plans were finalized, the duke discovered that the surrender had been signed between Trivulce and the Swiss, who had made no agreements in his favor or for his generals. They were set to join the French army the next day with their weapons and belongings; therefore, the last hope for the unfortunate Ludovico and his generals rested on their disguise. And that’s exactly what happened. San Severino and his brothers took their places in the ranks of the infantry, while Sforza blended in among the baggage, dressed in a monk’s robe with the hood pulled down over his eyes.
The army marched off; but the Swiss, who had first trafficked in their blood, now trafficked in their honour. The French were warned of the disguise of Sforza and his generals, and thus they were all four recognised, and Sforza was arrested by Trimouille himself. It is said that the price paid for this treason was the town of Bellinzona; for it then belonged to the French, and when the Swiss returned to their mountains and took possession of it, Louis XII took no steps to get it back again.
The army started moving; however, the Swiss, who once sold their blood, now sold their honor. The French were warned about Sforza and his generals' disguise, so all four were identified, and Sforza was captured by Trimouille himself. It's said that the cost of this betrayal was the town of Bellinzona; it was under French control at the time, and when the Swiss returned to their mountains and claimed it, Louis XII did nothing to retrieve it.
When Ascanio Sforza, who, as we know, had stayed at Milan, learned the news of this cowardly desertion, he supposed that his cause was lost and that it would be the best plan for him to fly, before he found himself a prisoner in the hands of his brother's old subjects: such a change of face on the people's part would be very natural, and they might propose perhaps to purchase their own pardon at the price of his liberty; so he fled by night with the chief nobles of the Ghibelline party, taking the road to Piacenza, an his way to the kingdom of Naples. But when he arrived at Rivolta, he remembered that there was living in that town an old friend of his childhood, by name Conrad Lando, whom he had helped to much wealth in his days of power; and as Ascanio and his companions were extremely tired, he resolved to beg his hospitality for a single night. Conrad received them with every sign of joy, putting all his house and servants at their disposal. But scarcely had they retired to bed when he sent a runner to Piacenza, to inform Carlo Orsini, at that time commanding the Venetian garrison, that he was prepared to deliver up Cardinal Ascanio and the chief men of the Milanese army. Carlo Orsini did not care to resign to another so important an expedition, and mounting hurriedly with twenty-five men, he first surrounded Conrad's house, and then entered sword in hand the chamber wherein Ascanio and his companions lay, and being surprised in the middle of their sleep, they yielded without resistance. The prisoners were taken to Venice, but Louis XII claimed them, and they were given up. Thus the King of France found himself master of Ludovico Sforza and of Ascania, of a legitimate nephew of the great Francesco Sforza named Hermes, of two bastards named Alessandro and Cortino, and of Francesco, son of the unhappy Gian Galeazza who had been poisoned by his uncle.
When Ascanio Sforza, who we know was staying in Milan, heard about this cowardly betrayal, he thought his situation was hopeless and that it would be best for him to escape before he became a prisoner of his brother's former subjects. The sudden change in the people's loyalty made sense, and they might try to save themselves by offering his freedom in exchange for their own pardon. So, he fled at night with the leading nobles of the Ghibelline party, heading to Piacenza on his way to the Kingdom of Naples. But when he reached Rivolta, he remembered an old childhood friend named Conrad Lando who lived there, someone he had helped gain wealth during his time of power. Since Ascanio and his companions were extremely exhausted, he decided to ask for Conrad's hospitality for just one night. Conrad welcomed them with great joy, offering them his home and servants. However, hardly had they settled in for the night when he sent a messenger to Piacenza to inform Carlo Orsini, who was in charge of the Venetian garrison at the time, that he was ready to hand over Cardinal Ascanio and the top leaders of the Milanese army. Carlo Orsini didn’t want to miss such an important opportunity, so he quickly got on his horse with twenty-five men, surrounded Conrad's house, and then stormed into the room where Ascanio and his companions were sleeping, catching them off guard. They surrendered without a fight. The prisoners were taken to Venice, but Louis XII claimed them, and they were handed over. Thus, the King of France found himself in control of Ludovico Sforza, Ascanio, a legitimate nephew of the great Francesco Sforza named Hermes, two illegitimate sons named Alessandro and Cortino, and Francesco, the son of the unfortunate Gian Galeazzo, who had been poisoned by his uncle.
Louis XII, wishing to make an end of the whole family at a blow, forced Francesco to enter a cloister, shut up Cardinal Ascanio in the tower of Baurges, threw into prison Alessandro, Cartino, and Hermes, and finally, after transferring the wretched Ludovico from the fortress of Pierre-Eucise to Lys-Saint-George he relegated him for good and all to the castle of Loches, where he lived for ten years in solitude and utter destitution, and there died, cursing the day when the idea first came into his head of enticing the French into Italy.
Louis XII, wanting to eliminate the whole family at once, forced Francesco to join a monastery, locked Cardinal Ascanio in the tower of Baurges, imprisoned Alessandro, Cartino, and Hermes, and finally, after moving the unfortunate Ludovico from the fortress of Pierre-Eucise to Lys-Saint-George, he banished him permanently to the castle of Loches, where he lived in isolation and complete poverty for ten years and died there, cursing the day he first considered inviting the French into Italy.
The news of the catastrophe of Ludovica and his family caused the greatest joy at Rome, for, while the French were consolidating their power in Milanese territory, the Holy See was gaining ground in the Romagna, where no further opposition was offered to Caesar's conquest. So the runners who brought the news were rewarded with valuable presents, and it was published throughout the whole town of Rome to the sound of the trumpet and drum. The war-cry of Louis, France, France, and that of the Orsini, Orso, Orso, rang through all the streets, which in the evening were illuminated, as though Constantinople or Jerusalem had been taken. And the pope gave the people fetes and fireworks, without troubling his head the least in the world either about its being Holy Week, or because the Jubilee had attracted more than 200,000 people to Rome; the temporal interests of his family seeming to him far more important than the spiritual interests of his subjects.
The news about the disaster affecting Ludovica and his family brought great excitement to Rome. While the French were solidifying their hold in the Milanese region, the Holy See was advancing in Romagna, where there was no longer any resistance to Caesar's conquest. The messengers who brought the news received valuable gifts, and it was announced across the entire city of Rome with the sound of trumpets and drums. The battle cries of Louis, "France, France," and those of the Orsini, "Orso, Orso," echoed through the streets, which were lit up at night as if Constantinople or Jerusalem had been taken. The pope organized celebrations and fireworks, completely disregarding that it was Holy Week or that the Jubilee had drawn over 200,000 people to Rome; the material concerns of his family seemed far more important to him than the spiritual needs of his subjects.
CHAPTER 11
One thing alone was wanting to assure the success of the vast projects that the pope and his son were founding upon the friendship of Louis and an alliance with him—that is,—money. But Alexander was not the man to be troubled about a paltry worry of that kind; true, the sale of benefices was by now exhausted, the ordinary and extraordinary taxes had already been collected for the whole year, and the prospect of inheritance from cardinals and priests was a poor thing now that the richest of them had been poisoned; but Alexander had other means at his disposal, which were none the less efficacious because they were less often used.
OneA thing was needed to ensure the success of the massive projects that the pope and his son were relying on in their friendship and alliance with Louis—that is—money. But Alexander wasn't the kind to stress over such a minor issue; it’s true that selling church positions had already played out, the regular and extra taxes had been collected for the whole year, and the chances of inheriting from cardinals and priests were low since the wealthiest of them had been poisoned. However, Alexander had other options available to him that were still effective, even if they weren't used as often.
The first he employed was to spread a report that the Turks were threatening an invasion of Christendom, and that he knew for a positive fact that before the end of the summer Bajazet would land two considerable armies, one in Romagna, the other in Calabria; he therefore published two bulls, one to levy tithes of all ecclesiastical revenues in Europe of whatever nature they might be, the other to force the Jews into paying an equivalent sum: both bulls contained the severest sentences of excommunication against those who refused to submit, or attempted opposition.
The first thing he did was start a rumor that the Turks were going to invade Christendom and that he was certain Bajazet would send two large armies before summer ended—one to Romagna and the other to Calabria. So, he issued two decrees: one to collect tithes from all church revenues in Europe, regardless of their form, and the other to make the Jews pay a similar amount. Both decrees included the strictest excommunication penalties for anyone who refused to comply or tried to resist.
The second plan was the selling of indulgences, a thing which had never been done before: these indulgences affected the people who had been prevented by reasons of health or business from coming to Rome for the Jubilee; the journey by this expedient was rendered unnecessary, and sins were pardoned for a third of what it would have cost, and just as completely as if the faithful had fulfilled every condition of the pilgrimage. For gathering in this tax a veritable army of collectors was instituted, a certain Ludovico dellaTorre at their head. The sum that Alexander brought into the pontifical treasury is incalculable, and some idea of it may be gathered from the fact that 799,000 livres in gold was paid in from the territory of Venice alone.
The second plan was to sell indulgences, which had never been done before. These indulgences were intended for people who couldn’t travel to Rome for the Jubilee because of health or work issues. This made the trip unnecessary, and sins were forgiven for a third of the cost, just as completely as if the believers had fulfilled every requirement of the pilgrimage. To collect this tax, a large number of collectors were organized, led by a certain Ludovico della Torre. The amount that Alexander brought into the papal treasury is unimaginable, with 799,000 livres in gold coming from the Venice area alone.
But as the Turks did as a fact make some sort of demonstration from the Hungarian side, and the Venetians began to fear that they might be coming in their direction, they asked for help from the pope, who gave orders that at twelve o'clock in the day in all his States an Ave Maria should be said, to pray God to avert the danger which was threatening the most serene republic. This was the only help the Venetians got from His Holiness in exchange for the 799,000 livres in gold that he had got from them.
But when the Turks began to stir from the Hungarian side, and the Venetians got worried they might be on their way, they asked the pope for help. He ordered that at noon in all his territories, an Ave Maria should be recited to pray for God to protect the most serene republic from the impending threat. This was the only support the Venetians got from His Holiness in exchange for the 799,000 livres in gold he had taken from them.
But it seemed as though God wished to show His strange vicar on earth that He was angered by the mockery of sacred things, and on the Eve of St. Peter's Day, just as the pope was passing the Capanile on his way to the tribune of benedictions, an enormous piece of iron broke off and fell at his feet; and then, as though one warning had not been enough, on the next day, St. Peter's, when the pope happened to be in one of the rooms of his ordinary dwelling with Cardinal Capuano and Monsignare Poto, his private chamberlain, he saw through the open windows that a very black cloud was coming up. Foreseeing a thunderstorm, he ordered the cardinal and the chamberlain to shut the windows. He had not been mistaken; for even as they were obeying his command, there came up such a furious gust of wind that the highest chimney of the Vatican was overturned, just as a tree is rooted up, and was dashed upon the roof, breaking it in; smashing the upper flooring, it fell into the very room where they were. Terrified by the noise of this catastrophe, which made the whole palace tremble, the cardinal and Monsignore Poto turned round, and seeing the room full of dust and debris, sprang out upon the parapet and shouted to the guards at the gate, "The pope is dead, the pope is dead!" At this cry, the guards ran up and discovered three persons lying in the rubbish on the floor, one dead and the other two dying. The dead man was a gentleman of Siena called Lorenzo Chigi, and the dying were two resident officials of the Vatican. They had been walking across the floor above, and had been flung down with the debris. But Alexander was not to be found; and as he gave no answer, though they kept on calling to him, the belief that he had perished was confirmed, and very soon spread about the town. But he had only fainted, and at the end of a certain time he began to come to himself, and moaned, whereupon he was discovered, dazed with the blow, and injured, though not seriously, in several parts of his body. He had been saved by little short of a miracle: a beam had broken in half and had left each of its two ends in the side walls; and one of these had formed a sort of roof over the pontifical throne; the pope, who was sitting there at the time, was protected by this overarching beam, and had received only a few contusions.
It seemed like God wanted to show His unusual representative on earth that He was upset about the disrespect towards sacred things. On the Eve of St. Peter's Day, just as the pope was passing by the Campanile on his way to the blessing ceremony, a massive piece of iron broke off and landed at his feet. Then, as if one warning wasn’t enough, the next day, while the pope was in one of his usual rooms with Cardinal Capuano and Monsignore Poto, his private chamberlain, he noticed a very dark cloud rolling in through the open windows. Anticipating a thunderstorm, he told the cardinal and the chamberlain to close the windows. He was right; just as they were following his orders, a powerful gust of wind swept through, knocking down the tallest chimney of the Vatican like it was a tree, crashing onto the roof and breaking it in. The upper floor collapsed right into the room they were in. Startled by the noise of the disaster that shook the entire palace, the cardinal and Monsignore Poto turned around and, seeing the room filled with dust and debris, rushed out onto the parapet, shouting to the guards at the gate, "The pope is dead, the pope is dead!" Hearing this, the guards rushed in and found three people lying in the rubble on the floor—one dead and the other two seriously injured. The deceased was a gentleman from Siena named Lorenzo Chigi, while the injured were two Vatican officials who had been walking on the floor above and were thrown down with the debris. But Alexander was nowhere to be found, and since he didn’t respond to their calls, the belief that he had died spread quickly throughout the town. In reality, he had just fainted, and after a while, he started to regain consciousness and groaned. He was eventually found, disoriented from the impact and injured, though not seriously, in several places. He had been saved by what could only be called a miracle: a beam had snapped in half and left both ends embedded in the side walls, creating a sort of shield over the pontifical throne where the pope had been sitting at the time. Thanks to this overhanging beam, he was protected and only suffered a few bruises.
The two contradictory reports of the sudden death and the miraculous preservation of the pope spread rapidly through Rome; and the Duke of Valentinois, terrified at the thought of what a change might be wrought in his own fortunes by any slight accident to the Holy Father, hurried to the Vatican, unable to assure himself by anything less than the evidence of his own eyes. Alexander desired to render public thanks to Heaven for the protection that had been granted him; and on the very same day was carried to the church of Santa Maria del Popalo, escorted by a numerous procession of prelates and men-at arms, his pontifical seat borne by two valets, two equerries, and two grooms. In this church were buried the Duke of Gandia and Gian Borgia, and perhaps Alexander was drawn thither by some relics of devotion, or may be by the recollection of his love for his former mistress, Rosa Vanazza, whose image, in the guise of the Madonna, was exposed for the veneration of the faithful in a chapel on the left of the high altar. Stopping before this altar, the pope offered to the church the gift of a magnificent chalice in which were three hundred gold crowns, which the Cardinal of Siena poured out into a silver paten before the eyes of all, much to the gratification of the pontifical vanity.
The two conflicting reports about the pope’s sudden death and miraculous survival spread quickly throughout Rome. The Duke of Valentinois, worried about how this might affect his own wealth due to any issues involving the Holy Father, hurried to the Vatican to see for himself. Alexander wanted to publicly thank God for the protection he had received; on the same day, he was taken to the Church of Santa Maria del Popolo, accompanied by a large procession of bishops and soldiers, with his papal chair carried by two attendants, two equerries, and two grooms. This church holds the remains of the Duke of Gandia and Gian Borgia, and perhaps Alexander was drawn there out of devotion or because of memories of his former mistress, Rosa Vanazza, whose image, shown as the Madonna, was displayed for the faithful in a chapel to the left of the main altar. Stopping in front of this altar, the pope gifted the church a stunning chalice containing three hundred gold crowns, which the Cardinal of Siena poured onto a silver plate in front of everyone, greatly satisfying the vanity of the papacy.
But before he left Rome to complete the conquest of the Romagna, the Duke of Valentinois had been reflecting that the marriage, once so ardently desired, between Lucrezia and Alfonso had been quite useless to himself and his father. There was more than this to be considered: Louis XII's rest in Lombardy was only a halt, and Milan was evidently but the stage before Naples. It was very possible that Louis was annoyed about the marriage which converted his enemy's nephew into the son-in-law of his ally. Whereas, if Alfonso were dead, Lucrezia would be in the position to marry some powerful lord of Ferrara or Brescia, who would be able to help his brother-in-law in the conquest of Romagna. Alfonso was now not only useless but dangerous, which to anyone with the character of the Borgias perhaps seemed worse, the death of Alfonso was resolved upon. But Lucrezia's husband, who had understood for a long time past what danger he incurred by living near his terrible father-in-law, had retired to Naples. Since, however, neither Alexander nor Caesar had changed in their perpetual dissimulation towards him, he was beginning to lose his fear, when he received an invitation from the pope and his son to take part in a bull-fight which was to be held in the Spanish fashion in honour of the duke before his departure: In the present precarious position of Naples it would not have been good policy for Alfonso to afford Alexander any sort of pretext for a rupture, so he could not refuse without a motive, and betook himself to Rome. It was thought of no use to consult Lucrezia in this affair, for she had two or three times displayed an absurd attachment for her husband, and they left her undisturbed in her government of Spoleto.
Before he left Rome to complete his conquest of the Romagna, the Duke of Valentinois had realized that the once fervently desired marriage between Lucrezia and Alfonso had become completely useless for him and his father. There were other factors to consider: Louis XII's calm in Lombardy was only temporary, and Milan was clearly just a stop on the way to Naples. It was very likely that Louis was annoyed by the marriage that made his enemy’s nephew the son-in-law of his ally. If Alfonso were dead, Lucrezia could marry a powerful lord from Ferrara or Brescia, who could help her brother-in-law conquer the Romagna. Alfonso was not just useless; he was also a threat, which, to anyone with the nature of the Borgias, might have seemed even worse. They concluded that Alfonso had to die. However, Lucrezia's husband, who understood the danger of being close to his powerful father-in-law, had moved to Naples. Yet, since neither Alexander nor Caesar had altered their constant deceit toward him, he began to lose his fear when he received an invitation from the pope and his son to attend a Spanish-style bullfight in honor of the duke before his departure. Given the unstable situation in Naples, it wouldn't have been wise for Alfonso to give Alexander any reason for a conflict, so he couldn’t refuse without a valid excuse, and he went to Rome. It seemed pointless to consult Lucrezia about this, as she had shown an unreasonable attachment to her husband on two or three occasions, and they left her undisturbed in her management of Spoleto.
Alfonso was received by the pope and the duke with every demonstration of sincere friendship, and rooms in the Vatican were assigned to him that he had inhabited before with Lucrezia, in that part of the building which is known as the Torre Nuova.
Alfonso was greeted by the pope and the duke with real warmth, and he was given rooms in the Vatican where he had stayed before with Lucrezia, in the area of the building called the Torre Nuova.
Great lists were prepared on the Piazza of St. Peter's; the streets about it were barricaded, and the windows of the surrounding houses served as boxes for the spectators. The pope and his court took their places on the balconies of the Vatican.
Large lists were arranged in St. Peter's Square; the nearby streets were closed off, and the windows of the surrounding houses served as seating for the crowd. The pope and his entourage took their places on the balconies of the Vatican.
The fete was started by professional toreadors: after they had exhibited their strength and skill, Alfonso and Caesar in their turn descended to the arena, and to offer a proof of their mutual kindness, settled that the bull which pursued Caesar should be killed by Alfonso, and the bull that pursued Alfonso by Caesar.
The festival was organized by professional bullfighters. After showcasing their strength and skills, Alfonso and Caesar stepped into the arena. To show their friendship, they decided that Alfonso would take down the bull chasing Caesar, while Caesar would handle the bull chasing Alfonso.
Then Caesar remained alone an horseback within the lists, Alfonso going out by an improvised door which was kept ajar, in order that he might go back on the instant if he judged that his presence was necessary. At the same time, from the opposite side of the lists the bull was introduced, and was at the same moment pierced all over with darts and arrows, some of them containing explosives, which took fire, and irritated the bull to such a point that he rolled about with pain, and then got up in a fury, and perceiving a man on horseback, rushed instantly upon him. It was now, in this narrow arena, pursued by his swift enemy, that Caesar displayed all that skill which made him one of the finest horsemen of the period. Still, clever as he was, he could not have remained safe long in that restricted area from an adversary against whom he had no other resource than flight, had not Alfonso appeared suddenly, just when the bull was beginning to gain upon him, waving a red cloak in his left hand, and holding in his right a long delicate Aragon sword. It was high time: the bull was only a few paces distant from Caesar, and the risk he was running appeared so imminent that a woman's scream was heard from one of the windows. But at the sight of a man on foot the bull stopped short, and judging that he would do better business with the new enemy than the old one, he turned upon him instead. For a moment he stood motionless, roaring, kicking up the dust with his hind feet, and lashing his sides with his tail. Then he rushed upon Alfonso, his eyes all bloodshot, his horns tearing up the ground. Alfonso awaited him with a tranquil air; then, when he was only three paces away, he made a bound to one side and presented instead of his body his sword, which disappeared at once to the hilt; the bull, checked in the middle of his onslaught, stopped one instant motionless and trembling, then fell upon his knees, uttered one dull roar, and lying down on the very spot where his course had been checked, breathed his last without moving a single step forward.
Caesar stayed alone on horseback in the arena while Alfonso slipped out through a makeshift door that was left slightly open so he could return quickly if necessary. At the same time, a bull was brought into the arena from the opposite side, and it was immediately struck all over with darts and arrows, some equipped with explosives that ignited, aggravating the bull so much that it rolled in pain before getting up in a rage and charging directly at Caesar. In that confined space, pursued by the furious beast, Caesar displayed the skills that had made him one of the best horsemen of his time. However, no matter how clever he was, he wouldn’t have been able to stay safe for long in that tight area, with fleeing being his only option, if Alfonso hadn't suddenly appeared just as the bull was closing in on him, waving a red cloak in his left hand and holding a long, slender Aragon sword in his right. It was just in time: the bull was only a few steps away from Caesar, and the threat was so imminent that a woman’s scream echoed from one of the windows. But when the bull saw a man on foot, it stopped abruptly, deciding it would have better luck with this new opponent than with Caesar. For a moment, it stood still, roaring, kicking up dust with its hind feet, and lashing its sides with its tail. Then it charged at Alfonso, its eyes bloodshot and its horns tearing up the ground. Alfonso remained calm and, when the bull was only three paces away, he jumped to the side and thrust his sword forward, which drove deep into the bull. The bull halted mid-attack, stood trembling for an instant, then fell to its knees, let out a dull roar, and lay down right where it stopped, breathing its last without taking another step.
Applause resounded an all sides, so rapid and clever had been the blow. Caesar had remained on horseback, seeking to discover the fair spectator who had given so lively a proof of her interest in him, without troubling himself about what was going on: his search had not been unrewarded, for he had recognized one of the maids of honour to Elizabeth, Duchess of Urbino, who was betrothed to Gian Battista Carraciualo, captain-general of the republic of Venice.
Applause rang out from all around; the strike had been so fast and skillful. Caesar remained on his horse, trying to find the beautiful spectator who had cheered for him, while ignoring what was happening around him. His efforts paid off as he spotted one of Elizabeth, Duchess of Urbino's maids of honor, who was engaged to Gian Battista Carraciualo, the captain-general of the Republic of Venice.
It was now Alfonso's turn to run from the bull, Caesar's to fight him: the young men changed parts, and when four mules had reluctantly dragged the dead bull from the arena, and the valets and other servants of His Holiness had scattered sand over the places that were stained with blood, Alfonso mounted a magnificent Andalusian steed of Arab origin, light as the wind of Sahara that had wedded with his mother, while Caesar, dismounting, retired in his turn, to reappear at the moment when Alfonso should be meeting the same danger from which he had just now rescued him.
Now it was Alfonso's turn to run from the bull, and Caesar's turn to fight it: the young men switched roles. After four mules had reluctantly pulled the dead bull out of the arena and the attendants and other servants of His Holiness had sprinkled sand over the bloodstained spots, Alfonso climbed onto a beautiful Andalusian horse of Arab descent, as light as the Sahara wind that had blended with his mother. Meanwhile, Caesar dismounted and stepped back, only to return when Alfonso faced the same danger he had just saved him from.
Then a second bull was introduced upon the scene, excited in the same manner with steeled darts and flaming arrows. Like his predecessor, when he perceived a man on horseback he rushed upon him, and then began a marvellous race, in which it was impossible to see, so quickly did they fly over the ground, whether the horse was pursuing the bull or the bull the horse. But after five or six rounds, the bull began to gain upon the son of Araby, for all his speed, and it was plain to see who fled and who pursued; in another moment there was only the length of two lances between them, and then suddenly Caesar appeared, armed with one of those long two handed swords which the French are accustomed to use, and just when the bull, almost close upon Don Alfonso, came in front of Caesar he brandished the sword, which flashed like lightning, and cut off his head, while his body, impelled by the speed of the run, fell to the ground ten paces farther on. This blow was so unexpected, and had been performed with such dexterity, that it was received not with mere clapping but with wild enthusiasm and frantic outcry. Caesar, apparently remembering nothing else in his hour of triumph but the scream that had been caused by his former danger, picked up the bull's head, and, giving it to one of his equerries, ordered him to lay it as an act of homage at the feet of the fair Venetian who had bestowed upon him so lively a sign of interest. This fete, besides affording a triumph to each of the young men, had another end as well; it was meant to prove to the populace that perfect goodwill existed between the two, since each had saved the life of the other. The result was that, if any accident should happen to Caesar, nobody would dream of accusing Alfanso; and also if any accident should happen to Alfonso, nobody would dream of accusing Caesar.
Then a second bull came onto the scene, provoked in the same way with sharpened darts and flaming arrows. Like the first one, when it spotted a man on horseback, it charged at him, leading to an incredible chase where it was tough to tell whether the horse was chasing the bull or the bull was after the horse; they were moving so fast. After five or six laps, the bull started to catch up to the son of Araby, despite all his speed, clearly showing who was the hunter and who was the prey; in a moment, the gap between them closed to just the length of two lances. Suddenly, Caesar appeared, wielding one of those long two-handed swords that the French are known for. Just as the bull was almost upon Don Alfonso and came in front of Caesar, he swung the sword, which flashed like lightning, and decapitated it, with its body, propelled by its momentum, landing ten paces further on. This unexpected strike, delivered with such skill, was met with not just applause but wild cheers and frantic shouts. Caesar, seemingly recalling the previous danger during his moment of triumph, picked up the bull's head and handed it to one of his attendants, instructing him to present it as an act of homage at the feet of the lovely Venetian who had shown him such lively interest. This event, apart from granting a victory to both young men, also aimed to show the crowd that there was mutual goodwill between them, as each had saved the other's life. As a result, if anything were to happen to Caesar, no one would think to blame Alfonso; and if anything happened to Alfonso, no one would think to blame Caesar.
There was a supper at the Vatican. Alfonso made an elegant toilet, and about ten o'clock at night prepared to go from the quarters he inhabited into those where the pope lived; but the door which separated the two courts of the building was shut, and knock as he would, no one came to open it. Alfonso then thought that it was a simple matter for him to go round by the Piazza of St. Peter's; so he went out unaccompanied through one of the garden gates of the Vatican and made his way across the gloomy streets which led to the stairway which gave on the piazza. But scarcely had he set his foot on the first step when he was attacked by a band of armed men. Alfonso would have drawn his sword; but before it was out of the scabbard he had received two blows from a halberd, one on his head, the other on his shoulder; he was stabbed in the side, and wounded both in the leg and in the temple. Struck down by these five blows, he lost his footing and fell to the ground unconscious; his assassins, supposing he was dead, at once remounted the stairway, and found on the piazza forty horsemen waiting for them: by them they were calmly escorted from the city by the Porta Portesa. Alfonso was found at the point of death, but not actually dead, by some passers-by, some of whom recognised him, and instantly conveyed the news of his assassination to the Vatican, while the others, lifting the wounded man in their arms, carried him to his quarters in the Torre Nuova. The pope and Caesar, who learned this news just as they were sitting down to table, showed great distress, and leaving their companions, at once went to see Alfonso, to be quite certain whether his wounds were fatal or not; and on the next morning, to divert any suspicion that might be turned towards themselves, they arrested Alfonso's maternal uncle, Francesco Gazella, who had come to Rome in his nephew's company. Gazella was found guilty on the evidence of false witnesses, and was consequently beheaded.
There was a dinner at the Vatican. Alfonso dressed up nicely and planned to leave his room around ten o'clock at night to head to the pope's residence; however, the door separating the two sections of the building was closed, and no matter how much he knocked, nobody came to open it. Thinking it would be easier to go around through St. Peter's Piazza, he left alone through one of the Vatican's garden gates and made his way through the dark streets to the steps leading to the piazza. But as soon as he stepped onto the first step, a group of armed men attacked him. Alfonso would have drawn his sword, but before he could, he was hit twice with a halberd—once on his head and once on his shoulder; he was also stabbed in the side and wounded in his leg and temple. Struck down by these five blows, he lost his balance and fell to the ground unconscious; his attackers, thinking he was dead, quickly climbed back up the stairs and found forty horsemen waiting for them in the piazza. They were then calmly escorted out of the city through the Porta Portesa. Some passers-by found Alfonso near death but not actually dead, and some recognized him, immediately spreading the news of his assassination to the Vatican. Others lifted the injured man and carried him back to his quarters in the Torre Nuova. The pope and Caesar, who heard the news just as they were about to sit down for dinner, were greatly distressed, and leaving their guests, they hurried to see Alfonso to find out if his wounds were fatal. The next morning, to avoid any suspicion falling on themselves, they arrested Alfonso's maternal uncle, Francesco Gazella, who had come to Rome with his nephew. Gazella was found guilty based on the testimony of false witnesses and was subsequently beheaded.
But they had only accomplished half of what they wanted. By some means, fair or foul, suspicion had been sufficiently diverted from the true assassins; but Alfonso was not dead, and, thanks to the strength of his constitution and the skill of his doctors, who had taken the lamentations of the pope and Caesar quite seriously, and thought to please them by curing Alexander's son-in-law, the wounded man was making progress towards convalescence: news arrived at the same time that Lucrezia had heard of her husband's accident, and was starting to come and nurse him herself. There was no time to lose, and Caesar summoned Michelotto.
But they had only accomplished half of their goal. Somehow, for better or worse, suspicion had shifted away from the real assassins; however, Alfonso was still alive. Thanks to the resilience of his body and the skill of his doctors, who took the pope's and Caesar's worries seriously and aimed to please them by saving Alexander's son-in-law, the injured man was recovering. Meanwhile, news came that Lucrezia had learned about her husband's accident and was on her way to care for him herself. There was no time to waste, so Caesar called for Michelotto.
"The same night," says Burcardus, "Don Alfonso, who would not die of his wounds, was found strangled in his bed."
"That same night," says Burcardus, "Don Alfonso, who survived his injuries, was found strangled in his bed."
The funeral took place the next day with a ceremony not unbecoming in itself, though, unsuited to his high rank. Dan Francesca Borgia , Archbishop of Cosenza, acted as chief mourner at St. Peter's, where the body was buried in the chapel of Santa Maria delle Febbre.
The funeral took place the following day with a ceremony that was respectable, but not appropriate for his high status. Dan Francesca Borgia, Archbishop of Cosenza, was the lead mourner at St. Peter's, where the body was buried in the chapel of Santa Maria delle Febbre.
Lucrezia arrived the same evening: she knew her father and brother too well to be put on the wrong scent; and although, immediately after Alfonso's death, the Duke of Valentinois had arrested the doctors, the surgeons, and a poor deformed wretch who had been acting as valet, she knew perfectly well from what quarter the blow had proceeded. In fear, therefore, that the manifestation of a grief she felt this time too well might alienate the confidence of her father and brother, she retired to Nepi with her whole household, her whole court, and more than six hundred cavaliers, there to spend the period of her mourning.
Lucrezia arrived that same evening: she knew her father and brother too well to be fooled; and even though, right after Alfonso's death, the Duke of Valentinois had arrested the doctors, the surgeons, and a poor deformed man who had been working as a valet, she understood exactly where the danger had come from. Worried that expressing her grief too openly might jeopardize her father and brother's trust, she retreated to Nepi with her entire household, her whole court, and more than six hundred knights to spend her mourning period there.
This important family business was now settled, and Lucrezia was again a widow, and in consequence ready to be utilized in the pope's new political machinations. Caesar only stayed at Rome to receive the ambassadors from France and Venice; but as their arrival was somewhat delayed, and considerable inroads had been made upon the pope's treasury by the recent festivities, the creation of twelve new cardinals was arranged: this scheme was to have two effects, viz., to bring 600,000 ducats into the pontifical chest, each hat having been priced at 50,000 ducats, and to assure the pope of a constant majority in the sacred council.
This important family business was now resolved, and Lucrezia was once again a widow, preparing her to engage in the pope's new political plans. Caesar stayed in Rome only to meet the ambassadors from France and Venice; however, their arrival was postponed, and the recent celebrations had seriously depleted the pope's treasury. To solve this, a plan was made to create twelve new cardinals: this strategy was intended to bring 600,000 ducats into the papal treasury, with each cardinal's position costing 50,000 ducats, and to secure the pope a reliable majority in the sacred council.
The ambassadors at last arrived: the first was M. de Villeneuve, the same who had come before to see the Duke of Valentinois in the name of France. Just as he entered Rome, he met on the road a masked man, who, without removing his domino, expressed the joy he felt at his arrival. This man was Caesar himself, who did not wish to be recognised, and who took his departure after a short conference without uncovering his face. M. de Villeneuve then entered the city after him, and at the Porta del Populo found the ambassadors of the various Powers, and among them those of Spain and Naples, whose sovereigns were not yet, it is true, in declared hostility to France, though there was already some coolness. The last-named, fearing to compromise themselves, merely said to their colleague of France, by way of complimentary address, "Sir, you are welcome"; whereupon the master of the ceremonies, surprised at the brevity of the greeting, asked if they had nothing else to say. When they replied that they had not, M. de Villeneuve turned his back upon them, remarking that those who had nothing to say required no answer; he then took his place between the Archbishop of Reggia, governor of Rome, and the Archbishop of Ragusa, and made his way to the palace of the Holy Apostles, which had been, got ready for his reception.
The ambassadors finally arrived: the first was M. de Villeneuve, the same one who had previously visited the Duke of Valentinois on behalf of France. As he entered Rome, he came across a masked man on the road who, without removing his disguise, expressed his excitement about the arrival. This man was Caesar himself, who wished to stay unrecognized, and he left after a brief conversation without revealing his face. M. de Villeneuve then entered the city behind him and, at the Porta del Populo, found the ambassadors from various Powers, including those from Spain and Naples, whose leaders were not yet openly hostile to France, although tensions were beginning to be noticeable. The latter, eager to avoid complications, simply greeted their French colleague with, "Sir, you are welcome"; the master of ceremonies, surprised by their lack of elaboration, asked if they had anything else to say. When they replied that they did not, M. de Villeneuve turned away from them, stating that those who had nothing to say needed no response. He then took his place between the Archbishop of Reggia, the governor of Rome, and the Archbishop of Ragusa, and made his way to the palace of the Holy Apostles, which had been prepared for his reception.
Some days later, Maria Giorgi, ambassador extraordinary of Venice, made his arrival. He was commissioned not only to arrange the business on hand with the pope, but also to convey to Alexander and Caesar the title of Venetian nobles, and to inform them that their names were inscribed in the Golden Book—a favour that both of them had long coveted, less for the empty honour's sake than for the new influence that this title might confer. Then the pope went on to bestow the twelve cardinals' hats that had been sold. The new princes of the Church were Don Diego de Mendoza, archbishop of Seville; Jacques, archbishop of Oristagny, the Pope's vicar-general; Thomas, archbishop of Strigania; Piero, archbishop of Reggio, governor of Rome; Francesco Borgia , archbishop of Cosenza, treasurer-general; Gian, archbishop of Salerno, vice-chamberlain; Luigi Borgia , archbishop of Valencia, secretary to His Holiness, and brother of the Gian Borgia whom Caesar had poisoned; Antonio, bishop of Coma; Gian Battista Ferraro, bishop of Modem; Amedee d'Albret, son of the King of Navarre, brother-in-law of the Duke of Valentinois; and Marco Cornaro, a Venetian noble, in whose person His Holiness rendered back to the most serene republic the favour he had just received.
A few days later, Maria Giorgi, the remarkable ambassador from Venice, arrived. He was sent not only to address current issues with the pope but also to present Alexander and Caesar with the title of Venetian nobles and to inform them that their names were added to the Golden Book—a privilege they had both long wanted, not just for the prestige but for the new influence this title could bring. The pope then went on to grant the twelve cardinal hats that had been sold. The new princes of the Church were Don Diego de Mendoza, archbishop of Seville; Jacques, archbishop of Oristagny, the Pope's vicar-general; Thomas, archbishop of Strigania; Piero, archbishop of Reggio, governor of Rome; Francesco Borgia, archbishop of Cosenza, treasurer-general; Gian, archbishop of Salerno, vice-chamberlain; Luigi Borgia, archbishop of Valencia, secretary to His Holiness, and brother of Gian Borgia, whom Caesar had poisoned; Antonio, bishop of Coma; Gian Battista Ferraro, bishop of Modem; Amedee d'Albret, son of the King of Navarre and brother-in-law of the Duke of Valentinois; and Marco Cornaro, a Venetian noble, through whom His Holiness returned a favor to the most serene republic.
Then, as there was nothing further to detain the Duke of Valentinois at Rome, he only waited to effect a loan from a rich banker named Agostino Chigi, brother of the Lorenzo Chigi who had perished on the day when the pope had been nearly killed by the fall of a chimney, and departed for the Romagna, accompanied by Vitellozzo Vitelli, Gian Paolo Baglione, and Jacopo di Santa Croce, at that time his friends, but later on his victims.
With nothing left to hold him in Rome, the Duke of Valentinois waited to finalize a loan from a wealthy banker named Agostino Chigi, the brother of Lorenzo Chigi, who had died on the day the Pope almost got killed by a falling chimney. He then headed to Romagna, accompanied by Vitellozzo Vitelli, Gian Paolo Baglione, and Jacopo di Santa Croce, who were his friends at the time but would later become his victims.
His first enterprise was against Pesaro: this was the polite attention of a brother-in-law, and Gian Sforza very well knew what would be its consequences; for instead of attempting to defend his possessions by taking up arms, or to venture on negotiations, unwilling moreover to expose the fair lands he had ruled so long to the vengeance of an irritated foe, he begged his subjects, to preserve their former affection towards himself, in the hope of better days to come; and he fled into Dalmatia. Malatesta, lord of Rimini, followed his example; thus the Duke of Valentinois entered both these towns without striking a single blow. Caesar left a sufficient garrison behind him, and marched on to Faenza.
His first move was against Pesaro: this was a favor from a brother-in-law, and Gian Sforza was well aware of what would happen. Instead of defending his lands by going to war or risking negotiations, and not wanting to put the beautiful territories he had ruled for so long at the mercy of an angry enemy, he asked his people to stay loyal to him, hoping for better times ahead; then he escaped to Dalmatia. Malatesta, the lord of Rimini, followed his lead; as a result, the Duke of Valentinois took both towns without firing a shot. Caesar left a sufficient garrison behind and moved on to Faenza.
But there the face of things was changed: Faenza at that time was under the rule of Astor Manfredi, a brave and handsome young man of eighteen, who, relying on the love of his subjects towards his family, had resolved on defending himself to the uttermost, although he had been forsaken by the Bentivagli, his near relatives, and by his allies, the Venetian and Florentines, who had not dared to send him any aid because of the affection felt towards Caesar by the King of France. Accordingly, when he perceived that the Duke of Valentinois was marching against him, he assembled in hot haste all those of his vassals who were capable of bearing arms, together with the few foreign soldiers who were willing to come into his pay, and collecting victual and ammunition, he took up his position with them inside the town.
But everything had changed there: At that time, Faenza was ruled by Astor Manfredi, a brave and handsome eighteen-year-old who, relying on the loyalty of his subjects to his family, was determined to fight to the end. His close relatives, the Bentivagli, and his allies, the Venetians and Florentines, had deserted him, too afraid to help due to the King of France's allegiance to Caesar. So, when he saw the Duke of Valentinois approaching, he quickly gathered all his able vassals and the few foreign soldiers willing to join him. After collecting food and ammunition, he took his stand with them inside the town.
By these defensive preparations Caesar was not greatly disconcerted; he commanded a magnificent army, composed of the finest troops of France and Italy; led by such men as Paolo and Giulio Orsini, Vitellozzo Vitelli and Paolo Baglione, not to speak of himself—that is to say, by the first captains of the period. So, after he had reconnoitred, he at once began the siege, pitching his camp between the two rivers, Amana and Marziano, placing his artillery on the side which faces on Forli, at which point the besieged party had erected a powerful bastion.
Caesar wasn't overly concerned about these defensive measures; he had a powerful army composed of the best soldiers from France and Italy, led by notable leaders like Paolo and Giulio Orsini, Vitellozzo Vitelli, and Paolo Baglione, not to mention himself—essentially the top generals of the time. After surveying the area, he quickly started the siege, setting up his camp between the two rivers, Amana and Marziano, and positioning his artillery to face Forli, where the defenders had constructed a stronghold.
At the end of a few days busy with entrenchments, the breach became practicable, and the Duke of Valentinois ordered an assault, and gave the example to his soldiers by being the first to march against the enemy. But in spite of his courage and that of his captains beside him, Astor Manfredi made so good a defence that the besiegers were repulsed with great loss of men, while one of their bravest leaders, Honario Savella was left behind in the trenches.
After a few days of hard work on the fortifications, the gap became useful, and the Duke of Valentinois commanded an attack, leading his troops by being the first to charge at the enemy. However, despite his bravery and that of his commanders alongside him, Astor Manfredi defended so well that the attackers were pushed back with heavy losses, while one of their top leaders, Honario Savella, was left behind in the trenches.
But Faenza, in spite of the courage and devotion of her defenders, could not have held out long against so formidable an army, had not winter come to her aid. Surprised by the rigour of the season, with no houses for protection and no trees for fuel, as the peasants had destroyed both beforehand, the Duke of Valentinois was forced to raise the siege and take up his winter quarters in the neighbouring towns, in order to be quite ready for a return next spring; for Caesar could not forgive the insult of being held in check by a little town which had enjoyed a long time of peace, was governed by a mere boy, and deprived of all outside aid, and had sworn to take his revenge. He therefore broke up his army into three sections, sent one-third to Imola, the second to Forli, and himself took the third to Cesena, a third-rate town, which was thus suddenly transformed into a city of pleasure and luxury.
But Faenza, despite the courage and dedication of its defenders, wouldn't have been able to hold out much longer against such a powerful army if winter hadn't come to its aid. Surprised by the severe season, with no buildings for shelter and no trees for firewood—since the peasants had destroyed both earlier—the Duke of Valentinois had to lift the siege and relocate his forces to nearby towns for the winter, planning to return next spring; Caesar couldn't ignore the embarrassment of being stalled by a small town that had enjoyed a long period of peace, was governed by a young boy, and had no external support, and he promised to take his revenge. He then divided his army into three parts, sending one-third to Imola, another to Forli, and he took the final third to Cesena, a minor town, which was suddenly transformed into a hub of pleasure and luxury.
Indeed, for Caesar's active spirit there must needs be no cessation of warfare or festivities. So, when war was interrupted, fetes began, as magnificent and as exciting as he knew how to make them: the days were passed in games and displays of horsemanship, the nights in dancing and gallantry; for the loveliest women of the Romagna—and that is to say of the whole world had come hither to make a seraglio for the victor which might have been envied by the Sultan of Egypt or the Emperor of Constantinople.
For Caesar's energetic nature, there was no time off from war or celebrations. So, when fighting stopped, festivities began, as extravagant and exciting as he could make them: the days were filled with games and horse shows, while the nights were devoted to dancing and romance; the most beautiful women from Romagna—and truly, the whole world—came here to create a harem for the victor that even the Sultan of Egypt or the Emperor of Constantinople would have envied.
While the Duke of Valentinois was making one of his excursions in the neighbourhood of the town with his retinue of flattering nobles and titled courtesans, who were always about him, he noticed a cortege on the Rimini road so numerous that it must surely indicate the approach of someone of importance. Caesar, soon perceiving that the principal person was a woman, approached, and recognised the very same lady-in-waiting to the Duchess of Urbino who, on the day of the bull-fight, had screamed when Caesar was all but touched by the infuriated beast. At this time she was betrothed, as we mentioned, to Gian Carracciuola, general of the Venetians. Elizabeth of Gonzaga, her protectress and godmother, was now sending her with a suitable retinue to Venice, where the marriage was to take place.
While the Duke of Valentinois was out on one of his trips around town with his group of flattering nobles and titled courtesans, who were always with him, he noticed a procession on the Rimini road that was so large it clearly indicated the arrival of someone important. Caesar soon realized that the main person was a woman, and he moved closer to recognize her as the same lady-in-waiting to the Duchess of Urbino who had screamed when Caesar was nearly attacked by the furious bull during the bullfight. At that moment, she was engaged, as we mentioned, to Gian Carracciuola, the general of the Venetians. Elizabeth of Gonzaga, her protector and godmother, was now sending her with a suitable retinue to Venice, where the wedding was scheduled to happen.
Caesar had already been struck by the beauty of this young girl, when at Rome; but when he saw her again she appeared more lovely than on the first occasion, so he resolved on the instant that he would keep this fair flower of love for himself: having often before reproached himself for his indifference in passing her by. Therefore he saluted her as an old acquaintance, inquired whether she were staying any time at Cesena, and ascertained that she was only passing through, travelling by long stages, as she was awaited with much impatience, and that she would spend the coming night at Forli. This was all that Caesar cared to know; he summoned Michelotto, and in a low voice said a few words to him, which were heard by no one else.
Caesar had already been spellbound by the beauty of this young girl when he was in Rome; but when he saw her again, she appeared even more breathtaking than before. He immediately decided he would keep this beautiful flower of love for himself, often regretting his earlier indifference in letting her slip away. So he greeted her like an old friend, asked if she was staying in Cesena for a while, and found out that she was just passing through, traveling long distances for someone who was eagerly awaiting her. She would be spending the next night in Forli. That was all Caesar wanted to know; he called Michelotto over and quietly exchanged a few words with him that nobody else could hear.
The cortege only made a halt at the neighbouring town, as the fair bride had said, and started at once for Forli, although the day was already far advanced; but scarcely had a league been covered when a troop of horsemen from Cesena overtook and surrounded them. Although the soldiers in the escort were far from being in sufficient force, they were eager to defend their general's bride; but soon some fell dead, and others, terrified, took to flight; and when the lady came down from her litter to try to escape, the chief seized her in his arms and set her in front of him on his horse; then, ordering his men to return to Cesena without him, he put his horse to the gallop in a cross direction, and as the shades of evening were now beginning to fall, he soon disappeared into the darkness.
The procession only paused in the nearby town, as the beautiful bride had said, before immediately heading toward Forli, even though the day was getting late. They had barely traveled a league when a group of horsemen from Cesena caught up with them and surrounded them. Although the soldiers in the escort weren't strong, they were eager to protect their general's bride. But soon, some were killed and others, frightened, started to run away. When the lady got out of her carriage to escape, the leader grabbed her and pulled her in front of him on his horse. Then, telling his men to return to Cesena without him, he spurred his horse into a gallop at an angle, and as the evening shadows began to fall, he quickly disappeared into the darkness.
Carracciuolo learned the news through one of the fugitives, who declared that he had recognised among the ravishers the Duke of Valentinois' soldiers. At first he thought his ears had deceived him, so hard was it to believe this terrible intelligence; but it was repeated, and he stood for one instant motionless, and, as it were, thunderstruck; then suddenly, with a cry of vengeance, he threw off his stupor and dashed away to the ducal palace, where sat the Doge Barberigo and the Council of Ten; unannounced, he rushed into their midst, the very moment after they had heard of Caesar's outrage.
Carracciuolo heard the news from one of the escapees, who claimed he recognized the soldiers of the Duke of Valentinois among the attackers. At first, he thought he must have misheard it because the news was so shocking; but when it was repeated, he froze for a moment, as if he had been hit by lightning. Then, with a shout for revenge, he shook off his shock and rushed to the ducal palace, where Doge Barberigo and the Council of Ten were assembled. Without any warning, he charged into their meeting, just after they had been informed of Caesar's attack.
"Most serene lords," he cried, "I am come to bid you farewell, for I am resolved to sacrifice my life to my private vengeance, though indeed I had hoped to devote it to the service of the republic. I have been wounded in the soul's noblest part—in my honour. The dearest thing I possessed, my wife, has been stolen from me, and the thief is the most treacherous, the most impious, the most infamous of men, it is Valentinois! My lords, I beg you will not be offended if I speak thus of a man whose boast it is to be a member of your noble ranks and to enjoy your protection: it is not so; he lies, and his loose and criminal life has made him unworthy of such honours, even as he is unworthy of the life whereof my sword shall deprive him. In truth, his very birth was a sacrilege; he is a fratricide, an usurper of the goods of other men, an oppressor of the innocent, and a highway assassin; he is a man who will violate every law, even, the law of hospitality respected by the veriest barbarian, a man who will do violence to a virgin who is passing through his own country, where she had every right to expect from him not only the consideration due to her sex and condition, but also that which is due to the most serene republic, whose condottiere I am, and which is insulted in my person and in the dishonouring of my bride; this man, I say, merits indeed to die by another hand than mine. Yet, since he who ought to punish him is not for him a prince and judge, but only a father quite as guilty as the son, I myself will seek him out, and I will sacrifice my own life, not only in avenging my own injury and the blood of so many innocent beings, but also in promoting the welfare of the most serene republic, on which it is his ambition to trample when he has accomplished the ruin of the other princes of Italy."
"Most esteemed lords," he exclaimed, "I’ve come to say farewell because I’m set on sacrificing my life for my personal revenge, even though I truly hoped to dedicate it to serving the republic. I’ve been deeply hurt in the most honorable part of my being—my reputation. The most precious thing I had, my wife, has been taken from me, and the thief is the most deceitful, the most wicked, the most infamous man—Valentinois! My lords, I hope you won’t be offended if I speak this way about a man who claims to be part of your noble circle and to have your protection: he’s lying, and his reckless and criminal life makes him unworthy of such honors, just as he is unworthy of the life my sword will take from him. Truly, his mere existence is a crime; he is a fratricide, a thief of others' possessions, an oppressor of the innocent, and a brutal assassin; he is a man who would break every law, even the law of hospitality that even the most barbaric would respect, a man who would assault a virgin traveling through his own land, where she had every right to expect from him not only respect for her gender and status but also what is due to the most honorable republic, of which I am a soldier, and which is insulted in my own person and in the dishonor of my bride; this man, I say, truly deserves to die by someone else’s hand. Yet, since the one who should punish him is not a prince and judge to him, but merely a father equally guilty as the son, I will seek him out myself, and I will sacrifice my own life, not only to avenge my own wrongs and the blood of so many innocent lives but also to serve the good of the most honorable republic, which he intends to crush once he has destroyed the other princes of Italy."
The doge and the senators, who, as we said, were already apprised of the event that had brought Carracciuolo before them, listened with great interest and profound indignation; for they, as he told them, were themselves insulted in the person of their general: they all swore, on their honour, that if he would put the matter in their hands, and not yield to his rage, which could only work his own undoing, either his bride should be rendered up to him without a smirch upon her bridal veil, or else a punishment should be dealt out proportioned to the affront. And without delay, as a proof of the energy wherewith the noble tribunal would take action in the affair, Luigi Manenti, secretary to the Ten, was sent to Imola, where the duke was reported to be, that he might explain to him the great displeasure with which the most serene republic viewed the outrage perpetrated upon their candottiere. At the same time the Council of Ten and the doge sought out the French ambassador, entreating him to join with them and repair in person with Manenti to the Duke of Valentinois, and summon him, in the name of King Louis XII, immediately to send back to Venice the lady he had carried off.
The doge and the senators, who were already aware of the incident that brought Carracciuolo before them, listened with great interest and anger. They felt personally insulted through their general, as he told them. They all vowed that if he trusted them with the situation and didn't let his rage take over, which would only lead to his own downfall, either his bride would be returned to him without a mark on her wedding veil, or a punishment would be given that fit the offense. Without delay, to show the commitment with which the noble council would handle the matter, Luigi Manenti, secretary to the Ten, was sent to Imola, where the duke was said to be, to express the strong displeasure with which the most serene republic viewed the outrage against their condottiere. At the same time, the Council of Ten and the doge reached out to the French ambassador, asking him to join them and accompany Manenti to the Duke of Valentinois, urging him, in the name of King Louis XII, to promptly return the lady he had taken to Venice.
The two messengers arrived at Imola, where they found Caesar, who listened to their complaint with every mark of utter astonishment, denying that he had been in any way connected with the crime, nay, authorising Manenti and the French ambassador to pursue the culprits and promising that he would himself have the most active search carried on. The duke appeared to act in such complete good faith that the envoys were for the moment hoodwinked, and themselves undertook a search of the most careful nature. They accordingly repaired to the exact spot and began to procure information. On the highroad there had been found dead and wounded. A man had been seen going by at a gallop, carrying a woman in distress on his saddle; he had soon left the beaten track and plunged across country. A peasant coming home from working in the fields had seen him appear and vanish again like a shadow, taking the direction of a lonely house. An old woman declared that she had seen him go into this house. But the next night the house was gone, as though by enchantment, and the ploughshare had passed over where it stood; so that none could say, what had become of her whom they sought, for those who had dwelt in the house, and even the house itself, were there no longer.
The two messengers arrived at Imola, where they found Caesar, who listened to their complaint with complete surprise, denying any involvement in the crime. He even gave Manenti and the French ambassador the go-ahead to pursue the culprits and promised that he would personally ensure a thorough search was conducted. The duke appeared to be acting in good faith, which temporarily misled the envoys, leading them to decide to conduct a careful investigation on their own. They went to the exact location and started gathering information. On the main road, there were dead and injured people. A man was seen riding by quickly, carrying a distressed woman on his saddle; he soon left the main path and headed into the countryside. A peasant returning from the fields saw him appear and then disappear like a shadow, moving toward a secluded house. An old woman claimed she saw him enter this house. But by the next night, the house had vanished as if by magic, and the ground where it once stood had been plowed over. So, no one could say what happened to the woman they were looking for, as the people who lived in the house and the house itself were no longer there.
Manenti and the French ambassador returned to Venice, and related what the duke had said, what they had done, and how all search had been in vain. No one doubted that Caesar was the culprit, but no one could prove it. So the most serene republic, which could not, considering their war with the Turks, be embroiled with the pope, forbade Caracciualo to take any sort of private vengeance, and so the talk grew gradually less, and at last the occurrence was no more mentioned.
Manenti and the French ambassador returned to Venice and reported what the duke had said, what actions they had taken, and how their search had yielded no results. Everyone thought Caesar was guilty, but no one could prove it. Therefore, the peaceful republic, which couldn't risk getting involved with the pope because of their war with the Turks, instructed Caracciualo not to pursue any personal revenge. Eventually, the rumors died down, and the incident was no longer discussed.
But the pleasures of the winter had not diverted Caesar's mind from his plans about Faenza. Scarcely did the spring season allow him to go into the country than he marched anew upon the town, camped opposite the castle, and making a new breach, ordered a general assault, himself going up first of all; but in spite of the courage he personally displayed, and the able seconding of his soldiers, they were repulsed by Astor, who, at the head of his men, defended the breach, while even the women, at the top of the rampart, rolled down stones and trunks of trees upon the besiegers. After an hour's struggle man to man, Caesar was forced to retire, leaving two thousand men in the trenches about the town, and among the two thousand one of his bravest condottieri, Valentino Farnese.
But the enjoyment of winter hadn’t distracted Caesar from his plans for Faenza. As soon as spring came, he marched back toward the town, set up camp opposite the castle, and made a new breach, ordering a full assault and leading the way himself. Despite his display of bravery and the strong support from his soldiers, they were pushed back by Astor, who led his men in defending the breach, while even the women at the top of the rampart rolled stones and logs down on the attackers. After an hour of fighting, Caesar had to retreat, leaving two thousand men in the trenches around the town, including one of his bravest mercenaries, Valentino Farnese.
Then, seeing that neither excommunications nor assaults could help him, Caesar converted the siege into a blockade: all the roads leading to Faenza were cut off, all communications stopped; and further, as various signs of revolt had been remarked at Cesena, a governor was installed there whose powerful will was well known to Caesar, Ramiro d'Orco, with powers of life and death over the inhabitants; he then waited quietly before Faenza, till hunger should drive out the citizens from those walls they defended with such vehement enthusiasm. At the end of a month, during which the people of Faenza had suffered all the horrors of famine, delegates came out to parley with Caesar with a view to capitulation. Caesar, who still had plenty to do in the Romagna, was less hard to satisfy than might have been expected, and the town yielded on condition that he should not touch either the persons or the belongings of the inhabitants, that Astor Manfredi, the youthful ruler, should have the privilege of retiring whenever he pleased, and should enjoy the revenue of his patrimony wherever he might be.
Realizing that neither excommunication nor attacks could save him, Caesar shifted the siege into a blockade: he cut off all roads leading to Faenza and halted all communications. Additionally, due to signs of rebellion in Cesena, he appointed a strong-willed governor named Ramiro d'Orco, who had the power of life and death over the residents. He then patiently waited outside Faenza until hunger forced the citizens to abandon the walls they defended so fiercely. After a month of enduring extreme starvation, delegates came out to negotiate with Caesar about surrendering. Caesar, who still had many responsibilities in Romagna, was easier to satisfy than expected, and the town surrendered on the condition that he wouldn’t harm the people or their property, that Astor Manfredi, the young ruler, could leave whenever he wanted, and that he would continue to receive the income from his inheritance no matter where he was.
The conditions were faithfully kept so far as the inhabitants were concerned; but Caesar, when he had seen Astor, whom he did not know before, was seized by a strange passion for this beautiful youth, who was like a woman: he kept him by his side in his own army, showing him honours befitting a young prince, and evincing before the eyes of all the strongest affection for him: one day Astor disappeared, just as Caracciuolo's bride had disappeared, and no one knew what had become of him; Caesar himself appeared very uneasy, saying that he had no doubt made his escape somewhere, and in order to give credence to this story, he sent out couriers to seek him in all directions.
The locals were paying close attention to the situation; however, when Caesar saw Astor, whom he hadn’t recognized before, he felt an unusual attraction to this handsome young man with a graceful demeanor. He kept Astor close in his own army, granting him honors fit for a young prince and openly expressing his deep affection for him. One day, Astor disappeared, just like Caracciuolo’s bride had, and nobody knew what happened to him. Caesar himself looked quite disturbed, insisting he was sure Astor had run away, and to back up this claim, he sent messengers to search for him in every direction.
A year after this double disappearance, there was picked up in the Tiber, a little below the Castle Sant' Angelo, the body of a beautiful young woman, her hands bound together behind her back, and also the corpse of a handsome youth with the bowstring he had been strangled with tied round his neck. The girl was Caracciuolo's bride, the young man was Astor.
A year after this double disappearance, the body of a beautiful young woman was discovered in the Tiber, just below Castle Sant' Angelo, her hands tied behind her back. Next to her was the corpse of a handsome young man, with the bowstring that had been used to strangle him wrapped around his neck. The girl was Caracciuolo's bride, and the young man was Astor.
During the last year both had been the slaves of Caesar's pleasures; now, tired of them, he had had them thrown into the Tiber.
Over the last year, both had been at Caesar's command; now, tired of them, he had them thrown into the Tiber.
The capture of Faenza had brought Caesar the title of Duke of Romagna, which was first bestowed on him by the pope in full consistory, and afterwards ratified by the King of Hungary, the republic of Venice, and the Kings of Castile and Portugal. The news of the ratification arrived at Rome on the eve of the day on which the people are accustomed to keep the anniversary of the foundation of the Eternal City; this fete, which went back to the days of Pomponius Laetus, acquired a new splendour in their eyes from the joyful events that had just happened to their sovereign: as a sign of joy cannon were fired all day long; in the evening there were illuminations and bonfires, and during part of the night the Prince of Squillace, with the chief lords of the Roman nobility, marched about the streets, bearing torches, and exclaiming, "Long live Alexander! Long live Caesar! Long live the Borgias! Long live the Orsini! Long live the Duke of Romagna!"
The capture of Faenza earned Caesar the title of Duke of Romagna, which was first given to him by the pope in an official assembly and later confirmed by the King of Hungary, the Republic of Venice, and the Kings of Castile and Portugal. The news of the confirmation arrived in Rome just before the anniversary of the founding of the Eternal City; this celebration, which dated back to the time of Pomponius Laetus, took on new meaning for them because of the recent joyful events surrounding their leader. To celebrate, cannon fire echoed throughout the day; in the evening, there were lights and bonfires, and for part of the night, the Prince of Squillace, along with the top nobles of Rome, walked through the streets carrying torches and shouting, "Long live Alexander! Long live Caesar! Long live the Borgias! Long live the Orsini! Long live the Duke of Romagna!"
CHAPTER 12
Caesar's ambition was only fed by victories: scarcely was he master of Faenza before, excited by the Mariscotti, old enemies of the Bentivoglio family, he cast his eyes upon Bologna; but Gian di Bentivoglio, whose ancestors had possessed this town from time immemorial, had not only made all preparations necessary for a long resistance, but he had also put himself under the protection of France; so, scarcely had he learned that Caesar was crossing the frontier of the Bolognese territory with his army, than he sent a courier to Louis XII to claim the fulfilment of his promise. Louis kept it with his accustomed good faith; and when Caesar arrived before Bologna, he received an intimation from the King of France that he was not to enter on any undertaking against his ally Bentivoglio; Caesar, not being the man to have his plans upset for nothing, made conditions for his retreat, to which Bentivoglio consented, only too happy to be quit of him at this price: the conditions were the cession of Castello Bolognese, a fortress between Imola and Faenza, the payment of a tribute of 9000 ducats, and the keeping for his service of a hundred men-at-arms and two thousand infantry. In exchange for these favours, Caesar confided to Bentivoglio that his visit had been due to the counsels of the Mariscotti; then, reinforced by his new ally's contingent, he took the road for Tuscany. But he was scarcely out of sight when Bentivoglio shut the gates of Bologna, and commanded his son Hermes to assassinate with his own hand Agamemnon Mariscotti, the head of the family, and ordered the massacre of four-and-thirty of his near relatives, brothers, sons, daughters, and nephews, and two hundred other of his kindred and friends. The butchery was carried out by the noblest youths of Bologna; whom Bentivoglio forced to bathe their hands in this blood, so that he might attach them to himself through their fear of reprisals.
CCaesar's ambitionwas only driven by victories: he had just taken control of Faenza when, encouraged by the Mariscotti, longtime enemies of the Bentivoglio family, he set his sights on Bologna. However, Gian di Bentivoglio, whose family had owned the town for centuries, not only prepared for a long defense but also sought protection from France. Once he learned that Caesar was crossing into Bolognese territory with his army, he sent a messenger to Louis XII to ask him to honor his promise. Louis kept his word, as usual; when Caesar arrived at Bologna, he got a message from the King of France instructing him not to take any action against his ally Bentivoglio. Not one to easily let his plans be disrupted, Caesar negotiated terms for his withdrawal, which Bentivoglio gladly accepted to get rid of him: the terms included the surrender of Castello Bolognese, a fortress between Imola and Faenza, a payment of 9,000 ducats, and the provision of a hundred men-at-arms and two thousand infantry for his service. In return for these favors, Caesar revealed to Bentivoglio that his visit was encouraged by the Mariscotti; then, supported by his new ally's troops, he headed to Tuscany. But as soon as he was out of sight, Bentivoglio closed the gates of Bologna and ordered his son Hermes to personally kill Agamemnon Mariscotti, the head of the family, and commanded the massacre of thirty-four of his close relatives—brothers, sons, daughters, and nephews—along with two hundred others who were kin or friends. The slaughter was carried out by Bologna's noblest youths, whom Bentivoglio forced to wash their hands in this blood to bind them to him through their fear of retaliation.
Caesar's plans with regard to Florence were now no longer a mystery: since the month of January he had sent to Pisa ten or twelve hundred men under the Command of Regniero della Sassetta and Piero di Gamba Corti, and as soon as the conquest of the Romagna was complete, he had further despatched Oliverotto di Fermo with new detachments. His own army he had reinforced, as we have seen, by a hundred men-at-arms and two thousand infantry; he had just been joined by Vitellozzo Vitelli, lord of Citta, di Castello, and by the Orsini, who had brought him another two or three thousand men; so, without counting the troops sent to Pisa, he had under his control seven hundred men-at-arms and five thousand infantry.
Caesar's plans for Florence were no longer a secret: since January, he had sent about 1,000 to 1,200 men to Pisa led by Regniero della Sassetta and Piero di Gamba Corti. Once he finished conquering Romagna, he also sent Oliverotto di Fermo with more troops. He had increased his own army by a hundred armored soldiers and 2,000 infantry; he had just received reinforcements from Vitellozzo Vitelli, the lord of Citta di Castello, and the Orsini, who brought him another 2,000 to 3,000 men. So, excluding the troops sent to Pisa, he had 700 armored soldiers and 5,000 infantry under his command.
Still, in spite of this formidable company, he entered Tuscany declaring that his intentions were only pacific, protesting that he only desired to pass through the territories of the republic on his way to Rome, and offering to pay in ready money for any victual his army might require. But when he had passed the defiles of the mountains and arrived at Barberino, feeling that the town was in his power and nothing could now hinder his approach, he began to put a price on the friendship he had at first offered freely, and to impose his own conditions instead of accepting those of others. These were that Piero dei Medici, kinsman and ally of the Orsini, should be reinstated in his ancient power; that six Florentine citizens, to be chosen by Vitellozzo, should be put into his hands that they might by their death expiate that of Paolo Vitelli, unjustly executed by the Florentines; that the Signoria should engage to give no aid to the lord of Piombino, whom Caesar intended to dispossess of his estates without delay; and further, that he himself should be taken into the service of the republic, for a pay proportionate to his deserts. But just as Caesar had reached this point in his negotiations with Florence, he received orders from Louis XII to get ready, so soon as he conveniently could, to follow him with his army and help in the conquest of Naples, which he was at last in a position to undertake. Caesar dared not break his word to so powerful an ally; he therefore replied that he was at the king's orders, and as the Florentines were not aware that he was quitting them on compulsion, he sold his retreat for the sum of 36,000 ducats per annum, in exchange for which sum he was to hold three hundred men-at-arms always in readiness to go to the aid of the republic at her earliest call and in any circumstances of need.
Despite this impressive company, he entered Tuscany, claiming that his intentions were purely peaceful. He insisted he only wanted to pass through the republic's lands on his way to Rome and offered to pay cash for any supplies his army might need. However, after navigating the mountain passes and reaching Barberino, feeling in control of the town and believing nothing could stop him, he began to put a price on the friendship he had originally offered for free, imposing his own terms instead of accepting those of others. These conditions included the reinstatement of Piero dei Medici, a relative and ally of the Orsini, to his former position of power; that six Florentine citizens, chosen by Vitellozzo, should be handed over to compensate for the wrongful execution of Paolo Vitelli by the Florentines; that the Signoria should agree to stop helping the lord of Piombino, whom Caesar intended to remove from his lands immediately; and additionally, that he himself should be hired by the republic at a salary that reflected his worth. Just as Caesar was at this stage in talks with Florence, he received orders from Louis XII to prepare, as soon as possible, to follow him with his army and assist in the conquest of Naples, which he was finally ready to undertake. Caesar couldn't afford to break his promise to such a powerful ally; therefore, he replied that he was at the king's service. Since the Florentines were unaware that he was leaving them out of necessity, he negotiated his exit for a sum of 36,000 ducats a year, in exchange for which he would keep three hundred men-at-arms always ready to assist the republic at its earliest call and in any situation of need.
But, hurried as he was, Caesar still hoped that he might find time to conquer the territory of Piombino as he went by, and take the capital by a single vigorous stroke; so he made his entry into the lands of Jacopo IV of Appiano. The latter, he found, however, had been beforehand with him, and, to rob him of all resource, had laid waste his own country, burned his fodder, felled his trees, torn down his vines, and destroyed a few fountains that produced salubrious waters. This did not hinder Caesar from seizing in the space of a few days Severeto, Scarlino, the isle of Elba, and La Pianosa; but he was obliged to stop short at the castle, which opposed a serious resistance. As Louis XII's army was continuing its way towards Rome, and he received a fresh order to join it, he took his departure the next day, leaving behind him, Vitellozzo and Gian Paolo Bagliani to prosecute the siege in his absence.
Even though he was in a rush, Caesar still hoped to find time to conquer the territory of Piombino as he passed through, aiming to capture the capital with a single strong move. So, he entered the lands of Jacopo IV of Appiano. However, he found out that Jacopo had beaten him to it and had devastated his own land to deprive him of resources, burning his supplies, cutting down his trees, destroying his vineyards, and ruining several fountains that provided clean water. This didn’t stop Caesar from taking Severeto, Scarlino, the island of Elba, and La Pianosa in just a few days; however, he was forced to pause at the castle, which put up strong resistance. Since Louis XII's army was still advancing toward Rome, and he received a new order to join them, he left the next day, leaving Vitellozzo and Gian Paolo Bagliani behind to continue the siege in his absence.
Louis XII was this time advancing upon Naples, not with the incautious ardour of Charles VIII, but, on the contrary, with that prudence and circumspection which characterised him. Besides his alliance with Florence and Rome, he had also signed a secret treaty with Ferdinand the Catholic, who had similar pretensions, through the house of Duras, to the throne of Naples to those Louis himself had through the house of Anjou. By this treaty the two kings were sharing their conquests beforehand: Louis would be master of Naples, of the town of Lavore and the Abruzzi, and would bear the title of King of Naples and Jerusalem; Ferdinand reserved for his own share Apulia and Calabria, with the title of Duke of these provinces; both were to receive the investiture from the pope and to hold them of him. This partition was all the more likely to be made, in fact, because Frederic, supposing all the time that Ferdinand was his good and faithful friend, would open the gates of his towns, only to receive into his fortresses conquerors and masters instead of allies. All this perhaps was not very loyal conduct on the part of a king who had so long desired and had just now received the surname of Catholic, but it mattered little to Louis, who profited by treasonable acts he did not have to share.
Louis XII was now advancing toward Naples, not with the reckless excitement of Charles VIII, but with the carefulness and caution that characterized him. In addition to his alliance with Florence and Rome, he had also signed a secret treaty with Ferdinand the Catholic, who had similar claims, through the house of Duras, to the throne of Naples as Louis did through the house of Anjou. According to this treaty, the two kings were dividing their conquests ahead of time: Louis would control Naples, the town of Lavore, and the Abruzzi, holding the title of King of Naples and Jerusalem; Ferdinand would claim Apulia and Calabria, with the title of Duke of those regions. Both were to receive their investiture from the pope and hold these territories from him. This division was likely to occur because Frederic, believing all along that Ferdinand was his loyal friend, would open the gates of his towns, letting conquerors and masters into his fortresses rather than allies. While this might not have been very loyal behavior for a king who had long sought and just received the title of Catholic, it didn't matter much to Louis, who benefited from treacherous actions he didn't have to share.
The French army, which the Duke of Valentinois had just joined, consisted of 1000 lances, 4000 Swiss, and 6000 Gascons and adventurers; further, Philip of Rabenstein was bringing by sea six Breton and Provencal vessels, and three Genoese caracks, carrying 6500 invaders.
The French army, which the Duke of Valentinois had just joined, consisted of 1,000 cavalry, 4,000 Swiss soldiers, and 6,000 Gascons and mercenaries. On top of that, Philip of Rabenstein was bringing six Breton and Provencal ships by sea, along with three Genoese galleons, carrying 6,500 invaders.
Against this mighty host the King of Naples had only 700 men-at-arms, 600 light horse, and 6000 infantry under the command of the Colonna, whom he had taken into his pay after they were exiled by the pope from the States of the Church; but he was counting on Gonsalvo of Cordova, who was to join him at Gaeta, and to whom he had confidingly opened all his fortresses in Calabria.
Against this strong army, the King of Naples had just 700 armored soldiers, 600 light cavalry, and 6,000 infantry led by the Colonna, whom he had hired after they were exiled by the pope from the Papal States. However, he was counting on Gonsalvo of Cordova, who was expected to join him at Gaeta, and to whom he had confidently shared the locations of all his fortresses in Calabria.
But the feeling of safety inspired by Frederic's faithless ally was not destined to endure long: on their arrival at Rome, the French and Spanish ambassadors presented to the pope the treaty signed at Grenada on the 11th of November, 1500, between Louis XII and Ferdinand the Catholic, a treaty which up to that time had been secret. Alexander, foreseeing the probable future, had, by the death of Alfonso, loosened all the bonds that attached him to the house of Aragon, and then began by making some difficulty about it. It was demonstrated that the arrangement had only been undertaken to provide the Christian princes with another weapon for attacking the Ottoman Empire, and before this consideration, one may readily suppose, all the pope's scruples vanished; on the 25th of June, therefore, it was decided to call a consistory which was to declare Frederic deposed from the throne of Naples. When Frederic heard all at once that the French army had arrived at Rome, that his ally Ferdinand had deceived him, and that Alexander had pronounced the sentence of his downfall, he understood that all was lost; but he did not wish it to be said that he had abandoned his kingdom without even attempting to save it. So he charged his two new condottieri, Fabrizio Colonna and Ranuzia di Marciano, to check the French before Capua with 300 men-at-arms, some light horse, and 3000 infantry; in person he occupied Aversa with another division of his army, while Prospero Colonna was sent to defend Naples with the rest, and make a stand against the Spaniards on the side of Calabria.
But the sense of safety that Frederic's unreliable ally provided wasn’t meant to last long: when they arrived in Rome, the French and Spanish ambassadors presented the pope with the treaty signed in Grenada on November 11, 1500, between Louis XII and Ferdinand the Catholic, a treaty that had been kept secret until then. Alexander, expecting what was about to happen, had, after Alfonso's death, severed all ties with the house of Aragon and initially hesitated about it. It was revealed that the arrangement was made to provide the Christian princes with another weapon against the Ottoman Empire, and given this, it’s easy to see how all the pope’s doubts vanished; thus, on June 25th, it was decided to hold a consistory to declare Frederic deposed from the throne of Naples. When Frederic suddenly found out that the French army had arrived in Rome, that his ally Ferdinand had betrayed him, and that Alexander had announced his downfall, he realized everything was lost; however, he didn’t want it to be said that he had surrendered his kingdom without even trying to save it. So, he ordered his two new commanders, Fabrizio Colonna and Ranuzia di Marciano, to hold off the French near Capua with 300 knights, some light cavalry, and 3000 infantry; he took command of Aversa with another part of his army, while Prospero Colonna was sent to defend Naples with the remainder and to confront the Spaniards from Calabria.
These dispositions were scarcely made when d'Aubigny, having passed the Volturno, approached to lay siege to Capua, and invested the town on both sides of the river. Scarcely were the French encamped before the ramparts than they began to set up their batteries, which were soon in play, much to the terror of the besieged, who, poor creatures, were almost all strangers to the town, and had fled thither from every side, expecting to find protection beneath the walls. So, although bravely repulsed by Fabrizio Colonna, the French, from the moment of their first assault, inspired so great and blind a terror that everyone began to talk of opening the gates, and it was only with great difficulty that Colonna made this multitude understood that at least they ought to reap some benefit from the check the besiegers had received and obtain good terms of capitulation. When he had brought them round to his view, he sent out to demand a parley with d'Aubigny, and a conference was fixed for the next day but one, in which they were to treat of the surrender of the town.
The plans were barely in place when d'Aubigny, after crossing the Volturno, moved to lay siege to Capua, encircling the town on both sides of the river. Just as the French set up their camp in front of the walls, they started putting their artillery into position, which soon opened fire, causing panic among the defenders. Most of them were outsiders who had fled from various places, hoping to find safety behind the walls. So, even though Fabrizio Colonna fought back against the French bravely, the fear sparked by their initial assault was so intense that everyone began to talk about opening the gates. Colonna had to work hard to convince them that they should at least capitalize on the French's temporary setback and negotiate better terms for surrender. Once he managed to persuade them, he sent a request for a meeting with d'Aubigny, and a conference was set for the day after next to discuss the town's surrender.
But this was not Caesar Borgia's idea at all: he had stayed behind to confer with the pope, and had joined the French army with some of his troops on the very day on which the conference had been arranged for two days later: and a capitulation of any nature would rob him of his share of the booty and the promise of such pleasure as would come from the capture of a city so rich and populous as Capua. So he opened up negotiations on his own account with a captain who was on guard at one of the gates. Such negotiations, made with cunning supported by bribery, proved as usual more prompt and efficacious than any others. At the very moment when Fabrizio Colonna in a fortified outpost was discussing the conditions of capitulation with the French captains, suddenly great cries of distress were heard. These were caused by Borgia, who without a word to anyone had entered the town with his faithful army from Romagna, and was beginning to cut the throats of the garrison, which had naturally somewhat relaxed their vigilance in the belief that the capitulation was all but signed. The French, when they saw that the town was half taken, rushed on the gates with such impetuosity that the besieged did not even attempt to defend themselves any longer, and forced their way into Capua by three separate sides: nothing more could be done then to stop the issue. Butchery and pillage had begun, and the work of destruction must needs be completed: in vain did Fabrizio Colonna, Ranuzio di Marciano, and Don Ugo di Cardona attempt to make head against the French and Spaniards with such men as they could get together. Fabrizia Colonna and Don Ugo were made prisoners; Ranuzia, wounded by an arrow, fell into the hands of the Duke of Valentinois; seven thousand inhabitants were massacred in the streets, among them the traitor who had given up the gate; the churches were pillaged, the convents of nuns forced open; and then might be seen the spectacle of some of these holy virgins casting themselves into pits or into the river to escape the soldiers. Three hundred of the noblest ladies of the town took refuge in a tower. The Duke of Valentinois broke in the doors, chased out for himself forty of the most beautiful, and handed over the rest to his army.
But this was not at all what Caesar Borgia had planned: he had stayed behind to meet with the pope and had joined the French army with some of his troops on the same day that the conference was scheduled for two days later. Any form of surrender would take away his share of the spoils and the opportunity to enjoy capturing a city as wealthy and populated as Capua. So, he began negotiating on his own with a captain guarding one of the gates. These negotiations, conducted with cleverness and bribery, turned out to be quicker and more effective than any others. Just when Fabrizio Colonna was discussing the terms of surrender with the French captains at a fortified outpost, loud cries of distress erupted. This was caused by Borgia, who had silently entered the town with his loyal army from Romagna and started massacring the garrison, which had understandably let their guard down, believing the surrender was almost finalized. Seeing that the town was half captured, the French charged toward the gates with such force that the besieged no longer attempted to defend themselves, breaking into Capua from three different sides: there was nothing left to stop the outcome. The massacre and looting began, and the destruction had to be completed: Fabrizio Colonna, Ranuzio di Marciano, and Don Ugo di Cardona tried in vain to resist the French and Spaniards with whatever men they could gather. Fabrizio Colonna and Don Ugo were captured; Ranuzio, wounded by an arrow, fell into the hands of the Duke of Valentinois; seven thousand residents were slaughtered in the streets, including the traitor who had opened the gate; churches were looted, nunneries were invaded; and then you could see the horrifying scene of some of these holy virgins jumping into pits or the river to escape the soldiers. Three hundred of the town’s most noble women took refuge in a tower. The Duke of Valentinois broke down the doors, chased out forty of the most beautiful for himself, and gave the rest to his army.
The pillage continued for three days.
The looting lasted for three days.
Capua once taken, Frederic saw that it was useless any longer to attempt defence. So he shut himself up in Castel Nuovo and gave permission to Gaeta and to Naples to treat with the conqueror. Gaeta bought immunity from pillage with 60,000 ducats; and Naples with the surrender of the castle. This surrender was made to d'Aubigny by Frederic himself, on condition that he should be allowed to take to the island of Ischia his money, jewels, and furniture, and there remain with his family for six months secure from all hostile attack. The terms of this capitulation were faithfully adhered to on both sides: d'Aubigny entered Naples, and Frederic retired to Ischia.
Once Capua fell, Frederic realized it was pointless to keep defending himself. So, he locked himself in Castel Nuovo and let Gaeta and Naples negotiate with the conqueror. Gaeta got protection from looting by paying 60,000 ducats, while Naples surrendered the castle. Frederic himself made this surrender to d'Aubigny, on the condition that he could take his money, jewels, and furniture to the island of Ischia, where he could stay with his family for six months without any threat of attack. Both sides stuck to the terms of this agreement: d'Aubigny entered Naples, and Frederic went to Ischia.
Thus, by a last terrible blow, never to rise again, fell this branch of the house of Aragon, which had now reigned for sixty-five years. Frederic, its head, demanded and obtained a safe-conduct to pass into France, where Louis XII gave him the duchy of Anjou and 30,000 ducats a year, on condition that he should never quit the kingdom; and there, in fact, he died, an the 9th of September 1504. His eldest son, Dan Ferdinand, Duke of Calabria, retired to Spain, where he was permitted to marry twice, but each time with a woman who was known to be barren; and there he died in 1550. Alfonso, the second son, who had followed his father to France, died, it is said, of poison, at Grenoble, at the age of twenty-two; lastly Caesar, the third son, died at Ferrara, before he had attained his eighteenth birthday.
With one final devastating blow, this branch of the House of Aragon, which had ruled for sixty-five years, fell and would never rise again. Frederic, its leader, asked for and received safe passage to France, where Louis XII granted him the duchy of Anjou and an annual income of 30,000 ducats, as long as he stayed in the kingdom; he ultimately died there on September 9, 1504. His eldest son, Dan Ferdinand, Duke of Calabria, returned to Spain, where he was allowed to marry twice, but both times to women known to be infertile; he died there in 1550. Alfonso, the second son, who had followed his father to France, reportedly died of poison in Grenoble at the age of twenty-two; finally, Caesar, the third son, died in Ferrara before turning eighteen.
Frederic's daughter Charlotte married in France Nicholas, Count of Laval, governor and admiral of Brittany; a daughter was born of this marriage, Anne de Laval, who married Francois de la Trimauille. Through her those rights were transmitted to the house of La Trimouille which were used later on as a claim upon the kingdom of the Two Sicilies.
Frederic's daughter Charlotte married Nicholas, the Count of Laval, who was the governor and admiral of Brittany in France. They had a daughter named Anne de Laval, who married Francois de la Trimauille. Through her, those rights were transferred to the house of La Trimouille, which later asserted them in their quest for the kingdom of the Two Sicilies.
The capture of Naples gave the Duke of Valentinois his liberty again; so he left the French army, after he had received fresh assurances on his own account of the king's friendliness, and returned to the siege of Piombino, which he had been forced to interrupt. During this interval Alexander had been visiting the scenes of his son's conquests, and traversing all the Romagna with Lucrezia, who was now consoled for her husband's death, and had never before enjoyed quite so much favour with His Holiness; so, when she returned to Rome she no longer had separate rooms from him. The result of this recrudescence of affection was the appearance of two pontifical bulls, converting the towns of Nepi and Sermoneta into duchies: one was bestowed on Gian Borgia , an illegitimate child of the pope, who was not the son of either of his mistresses, Rosa Vanozza or Giulia Farnese, the other on Don Roderigo of Aragon, son of Lucrezia and Alfonso: the lands of the Colonna were in appanage to the two duchies.
The capture of Naples restored the Duke of Valentinois's freedom, so he left the French army after securing new assurances of the king's support and returned to the siege of Piombino, which he had to pause. Meanwhile, Alexander had been visiting the sites of his son's victories, traveling all around Romagna with Lucrezia, who was now finding solace after her husband's death and was enjoying unprecedented favor with the Pope; when she returned to Rome, she no longer had separate rooms from him. This renewal of affection led to two papal bulls that elevated the towns of Nepi and Sermoneta to duchies: one was granted to Gian Borgia, an illegitimate son of the pope, who was not the child of either of his mistresses, Rosa Vanozza or Giulia Farnese, and the other to Don Roderigo of Aragon, Lucrezia's son with Alfonso. The lands of the Colonna were assigned to the two duchies.
But Alexander was dreaming of yet another addition to his fortune; this was to came from a marriage between Lucrezia and Don Alfonso d'Este, son of Duke Hercules of Ferrara, in favour of which alliance Louis XII had negotiated.
But Alexander was dreaming of another way to increase his wealth; this would come from a marriage between Lucrezia and Don Alfonso d'Este, the son of Duke Hercules of Ferrara, an alliance that Louis XII had set up.
His Holiness was now having a run of good fortune, and he learned on the same day that Piombino was taken and that Duke Hercules had given the King of France his assent to the marriage. Both of these pieces of news were good for Alexander, but the one could not compare in importance with the other; and the intimation that Lucrezia was to marry the heir presumptive to the duchy of Ferrara was received with a joy so great that it smacked of the humble beginnings of the Borgian house. The Duke of Valentinois was invited to return to Rome, to take his share in the family rejoicing, and on the day when the news was made public the governor of St. Angelo received orders that cannon should be fired every quarter of an hour from noon to midnight. At two o'clock, Lucrezia, attired as a fiancee, and accompanied by her two brothers, the Dukes of Valentinois and Squillace, issued from the Vatican, followed by all the nobility of Rome, and proceeded to the church of the Madonna del Papalo, where the Duke of Gandia and Cardinal Gian Borgia were buried, to render thanks for this new favour accorded to her house by God; and in the evening, accompanied by the same cavalcade, which shone the more brightly under the torchlight and brilliant illuminations, she made procession through the whole town, greeted by cries of "Long live Pope Alexander VI! Long live the Duchess of Ferrara!" which were shouted aloud by heralds clad in cloth of gold.
His Holiness was on a roll, as he found out on the same day that Piombino had been captured and that Duke Hercules had approved the marriage to the King of France. Both pieces of news were great for Alexander, but one was much more important than the other; the announcement that Lucrezia was to marry the heir apparent to the duchy of Ferrara brought such immense joy that it reflected the humble beginnings of the Borgia family. The Duke of Valentinois received an invitation to return to Rome to join in the family celebration, and on the day the news was shared, the governor of St. Angelo was ordered to fire cannons every fifteen minutes from noon until midnight. At two o'clock, Lucrezia, dressed as a bride-to-be and accompanied by her two brothers, the Dukes of Valentinois and Squillace, left the Vatican, followed by the entire nobility of Rome. They made their way to the church of Madonna del Papalo, where the Duke of Gandia and Cardinal Gian Borgia were buried, to give thanks for this new blessing from God; and in the evening, accompanied by the same procession, which looked even more magnificent in the torchlight and bright decorations, she paraded through the town, greeted by shouts of "Long live Pope Alexander VI! Long live the Duchess of Ferrara!" proclaimed loudly by heralds dressed in cloth of gold.
The next day an announcement was made in the town that a racecourse for women was opened between the castle of Sant' Angelo and the Piazza of St. Peter's; that on every third day there would be a bull-fight in the Spanish fashion; and that from the end of the present month, which was October, until the first day of Lent, masquerades would be permitted in the streets of Rome.
The next day, the town announced that a racecourse for women had opened between the Castle of Sant' Angelo and St. Peter's Square; that every third day there would be a Spanish-style bullfight; and that from the end of October until the first day of Lent, masquerades would be allowed in the streets of Rome.
Such was the nature of the fetes outside; the programme of those going on within the Vatican was not presented to the people; for by the account of Bucciardo, an eye-witness, this is what happened—
The celebrations outside were like this: the schedule of events happening inside the Vatican wasn't made public. According to Bucciardo, an eyewitness, this is what happened—
"On the last Sunday of the month of October, fifty courtesans supped in the apostolic palace in the Duke of Valentinois' rooms, and after supper danced with the equerries and servants, first wearing their usual garments, afterwards in dazzling draperies; when supper was over, the table was removed, candlesticks were set on the floor in a symmetrical pattern, and a great quantity of chestnuts was scattered on the ground: these the fifty women skilfully picked up, running about gracefully, in and out between the burning lights; the pope, the Duke of Valentinois, and his sister Lucrezia, who were looking on at this spectacle from a gallery, encouraged the most agile and industrious with their applause, and they received prizes of embroidered garters, velvet boots, golden caps, and laces; then new diversions took the place of these."
On the last Sunday of October, fifty courtesans had dinner in the apostolic palace in the Duke of Valentinois' rooms. After dinner, they danced with the equerries and servants, starting in their regular outfits and later switching to stunning drapes. Once dinner was finished, the table was cleared, candlesticks were arranged on the floor in a neat pattern, and a large number of chestnuts were scattered around. The fifty women skillfully picked them up, gracefully running among the glowing lights. The pope, the Duke of Valentinois, and his sister Lucrezia watched this spectacle from a gallery, cheering for the most agile and hardworking participants with their applause. They were awarded prizes like embroidered garters, velvet boots, golden caps, and laces; then new entertainments took over from this.
We humbly ask forgiveness of our readers, and especially of our lady readers; but though we have found words to describe the first part of the spectacle, we have sought them in vain for the second; suffice it to say that just as there had been prizes for feats of adroitness, others were given now to the dancers who were most daring and brazen.
We truly apologize to our readers, especially to the women; while we managed to find the right words to describe the first part of the show, we've had a harder time doing the same for the second part. It's enough to say that, just as there were awards for skilled performances earlier, now prizes were awarded to the dancers who were the most bold and daring.
Some days after this strange night, which calls to mind the Roman evenings in the days of Tiberius, Nero, and Heliogabalus, Lucrezia, clad in a robe of golden brocade, her train carried by young girls dressed in white and crowned with roses, issued from her palace to the sound of trumpets and clarions, and made her way over carpets that were laid down in the streets through which she had to pass. Accompanied by the noblest cavaliers and the loveliest women in Rome, she betook herself to the Vatican, where in the Pauline hall the pope awaited her, with the Duke of Valentinois, Don Ferdinand, acting as proxy for Duke Alfonso, and his cousin, Cardinal d'Este. The pope sat on one side of the table, while the envoys from Ferrara stood on the other: into their midst came Lucrezia, and Don Ferdinand placed on her finger the nuptial ring; this ceremony over, Cardinal d'Este approached and presented to the bride four magnificent rings set with precious stones; then a casket was placed on the table, richly inlaid with ivory, whence the cardinal drew forth a great many trinkets, chains, necklaces of pearls and diamonds, of workmanship as costly as their material; these he also begged Lucrezia to accept, before she received those the bridegroom was hoping to offer himself, which would be more worthy of her. Lucrezia showed the utmost delight in accepting these gifts; then she retired into the next room, leaning on the pope's arm, and followed by the ladies of her suite, leaving the Duke of Valentinois to do the honours of the Vatican to the men. That evening the guests met again, and spent half the night in dancing, while a magnificent display of fireworks lighted up the Piazza of San Paolo.
A few days after that strange night, reminiscent of Roman evenings from the times of Tiberius, Nero, and Heliogabalus, Lucrezia, dressed in a golden brocade robe with her train carried by young girls in white who were crowned with roses, left her palace to the sounds of trumpets and clarions. She walked over carpets laid out on the streets along her route. Accompanied by the noblest men and the most beautiful women in Rome, she made her way to the Vatican, where the pope was waiting for her in the Pauline hall, along with the Duke of Valentinois, Don Ferdinand, who stood in for Duke Alfonso, and his cousin, Cardinal d'Este. The pope sat on one side of the table, while the envoys from Ferrara sat on the other. As Lucrezia entered, Don Ferdinand slipped a wedding ring onto her finger. After this ceremony, Cardinal d'Este approached and presented the bride with four magnificent rings set with precious stones. Then, a beautifully inlaid ivory casket was placed on the table, from which the cardinal pulled out numerous trinkets, chains, and necklaces made of pearls and diamonds, all exquisitely crafted and as valuable as their materials. He also asked Lucrezia to accept these gifts before she received those that her groom was eager to give her, which would be more suitable for her. Lucrezia expressed great happiness in accepting these gifts, and then she retired to the next room, leaning on the pope's arm and followed by the ladies of her entourage, leaving the Duke of Valentinois to entertain the men at the Vatican. That evening, the guests reconvened and spent half the night dancing, while a stunning display of fireworks lit up the Piazza of San Paolo.
The ceremony of betrothal over, the pope and the Duke busied themselves with making preparations for the departure. The pope, who wished the journey to be made with a great degree of splendour, sent in his daughter's company, in addition to the two brothers-in-law and the gentlemen in their suite, the Senate of Rome and all the lords who, by virtue of their wealth, could display most magnificence in their costumes and liveries. Among this brilliant throng might be seen Olivero and Ramiro Mattel, sons of Piero Mattel, chancellor of the town, and a daughter of the pope whose mother was not Rosa Vanozza; besides these, the pope nominated in consistory Francesco Borgia, Cardinal of Sosenza, legate a latere, to accompany his daughter to the frontiers of the Ecclesiastical States.
After the engagement ceremony, the pope and the Duke got busy planning for the trip. The pope, wanting the journey to be as extravagant as possible, invited his daughter, along with her two brothers-in-law and their entourage, the Senate of Rome, and all the wealthy nobles who could showcase the most impressive outfits and liveries. Among this distinguished crowd were Olivero and Ramiro Mattel, sons of Piero Mattel, the town chancellor, and a daughter of the pope whose mother wasn't Rosa Vanozza. Additionally, the pope appointed Francesco Borgia, Cardinal of Sosenza, legate a latere, to accompany his daughter to the borders of the Ecclesiastical States.
Also the Duke of Valentinois sent out messengers into all the cities of Romagna to order that Lucrezia should be received as sovereign lady and mistress: grand preparations were at once set on foot for the fulfilment of his orders. But the messengers reported that they greatly feared that there would be some grumbling at Cesena, where it will be remembered that Caesar had left Ramiro d'Orco as governor with plenary powers, to calm the agitation of the town. Now Ramiro d'Orco had accomplished his task so well that there was nothing more to fear in the way of rebellion; for one-sixth of the inhabitants had perished on the scaffold, and the result of this situation was that it was improbable that the same demonstrations of joy could be expected from a town plunged in mourning that were looked for from Imola, Faenza, and Pesaro. The Duke of Valentinais averted this inconvenience in the prompt and efficacious fashion characteristic of him alone. One morning the inhabitants of Cesena awoke to find a scaffold set up in the square, and upon it the four quarters of a man, his head, severed from the trunk, stuck up on the end of a pike.
The Duke of Valentinois sent messengers to all the cities in Romagna to announce that Lucrezia should be recognized as the sovereign lady and ruler. Grand preparations immediately began to carry out his orders. However, the messengers reported that they were quite worried about possible discontent in Cesena. It's important to note that Caesar had appointed Ramiro d'Orco as governor with full power to handle the town's unrest. Ramiro d'Orco had done such an effective job that there was no longer any fear of rebellion; he had executed one-sixth of the population, making it unlikely that the same displays of joy expected from Imola, Faenza, and Pesaro could be seen in a town in mourning. The Duke of Valentinois quickly addressed this concern in his usual swift and effective manner. One morning, the people of Cesena woke up to find a scaffold set up in the square, upon which were the four quarters of a man, with his head, severed from the body, displayed on the end of a pole.
This man was Ramiro d'Orco.
This guy was Ramiro d'Orco.
No one ever knew by whose hands the scaffold had been raised by night, nor by what executioners the terrible deed had been carried out; but when the Florentine Republic sent to ask Macchiavelli, their ambassador at Cesena, what he thought of it, he replied:
No one ever discovered who set up the scaffold at night or who committed the terrible act; however, when the Florentine Republic asked Machiavelli, their ambassador in Cesena, for his thoughts, he responded:
"MAGNIFICENT LORDS,-I can tell you nothing concerning the execution of Ramiro d'Orco, except that Caesar Borgia is the prince who best knows how to make and unmake men according to their deserts. NICCOLO MACCHIAVELLI"
"Dear Lords, I can't tell you much about the execution of Ramiro d'Orco, except that Caesar Borgia is the prince who knows how to evaluate and manipulate people based on their abilities. NICCOLO MACCHIAVELLI"
The Duke of Valentinois was not disappointed, and the future Duchess of Ferrara was admirably received in every town along her route, and particularly at Cesena.
The Duke of Valentinois was happy, and the future Duchess of Ferrara received a warm welcome in every town she passed through, especially in Cesena.
While Lucrezia was on her way to Ferrara to meet her fourth husband, Alexander and the Duke of Valentinois resolved to make a progress in the region of their last conquest, the duchy of Piombino. The apparent object of this journey was that the new subjects might take their oath to Caesar, and the real object was to form an arsenal in Jacopo d'Appiano's capital within reach of Tuscany, a plan which neither the pope nor his son had ever seriously abandoned. The two accordingly started from the port of Corneto with six ships, accompanied by a great number of cardinals and prelates, and arrived the same evening at Piombina. The pontifical court made a stay there of several days, partly with a view of making the duke known to the inhabitants, and also in order to be present at certain ecclesiastical functions, of which the most important was a service held on the third Sunday in Lent, in which the Cardinal of Cosenza sang a mass and the pope officiated in state with the duke and the cardinals. After these solemn functions the customary pleasures followed, and the pope summoned the prettiest girls of the country and ordered them to dance their national dances before him.
While Lucrezia was on her way to Ferrara to meet her fourth husband, Alexander and the Duke of Valentinois decided to travel through the area of their latest conquest, the duchy of Piombino. The official reason for this trip was for the new subjects to swear their loyalty to Caesar, but the real reason was to set up an arsenal in Jacopo d'Appiano's capital, close to Tuscany—a plan that neither the pope nor his son had ever truly abandoned. So, they left from the port of Corneto with six ships, accompanied by a large number of cardinals and prelates, and arrived that same evening at Piombino. The papal court stayed there for several days, partly to introduce the duke to the locals and also to participate in various religious ceremonies, the most important of which was a service held on the third Sunday in Lent, where the Cardinal of Cosenza sang a mass and the pope officiated alongside the duke and the cardinals. After these formal events, the usual celebrations took place, and the pope requested that the most beautiful girls from the area come and perform their traditional dances before him.
Following on these dances came feasts of unheard of magnificence, during which the pope in the sight of all men completely ignored Lent and did not fast. The object of all these fetes was to scatter abroad a great deal of money, and so to make the Duke of Valentinois popular, while poor Jacopo d'Appiano was forgotten.
After these dances, there were extravagant feasts like no one had ever seen, where the pope, in front of everyone, completely ignored Lent and didn't fast. The aim of all these celebrations was to distribute a lot of money and boost the Duke of Valentinois's popularity, while poor Jacopo d'Appiano was totally overlooked.
When they left Piombino, the pope and his son visited the island of Elba, where they only stayed long enough to visit the old fortifications and issue orders for the building of new ones.
When they departed from Piombino, the pope and his son visited the island of Elba, where they stayed just long enough to inspect the old fortifications and to give instructions for building new ones.
Then the illustrious travellers embarked on their return journey to Rome; but scarcely had they put out to sea when the weather became adverse, and the pope not wishing to put in at Porto Ferrajo, they remained five days on board, though they had only two days' provisions. During the last three days the pope lived on fried fish that were caught under great difficulties because of the heavy weather. At last they arrived in sight of Corneto, and there the duke, who was not on the same vessel as the pope, seeing that his ship could not get in, had a boat put out, and so was taken ashore. The pope was obliged to continue on his way towards Pontercole, where at last he arrived, after encountering so violent a tempest that all who were with him were utterly subdued either by sickness or by the terror of death. The pope alone did not show one instant's fear, but remained on the bridge during the storm, sitting on his arm-chair, invoking the name of Jesus and making the sign of the cross. At last his ship entered the roads of Pontercole, where he landed, and after sending to Corneto to fetch horses, he rejoined the duke, who was there awaiting him. They then returned by slow stages, by way of Civita Vecchia and Palo, and reached Rome after an absence of a month. Almost at the same time d'Albret arrived in quest of his cardinal's hat. He was accompanied by two princes of the house of Navarre, who were received with not only those honours which beseemed their rank, but also as brothers-in-law to whom the, duke was eager to show in what spirit he was contracting this alliance.
The famous travelers began their journey back to Rome, but as soon as they set sail, the weather turned bad. The pope, not wanting to stop at Porto Ferrajo, stayed on board for five days, even though they only had enough food for two. For the last three days, the pope survived on fried fish that were hard to catch due to the rough weather. Eventually, they spotted Corneto, and since the duke was on a different ship, he realized his vessel couldn't dock. He had a boat lowered and was taken ashore. The pope had to continue on to Pontercole, where he finally arrived after enduring a violent storm that left everyone with him either sick or terrified. Only the pope remained calm, staying on the bridge during the storm, sitting in his armchair, calling on the name of Jesus, and making the sign of the cross. Eventually, his ship reached the safe waters of Pontercole, where he got off. After sending for horses from Corneto, he reunited with the duke, who was waiting for him. They then returned slowly, passing through Civita Vecchia and Palo, and reached Rome after a month away. Almost at the same time, d'Albret arrived looking for his cardinal's hat. He was accompanied by two princes from the house of Navarre, who were received not only with the respect their status deserved but also like brothers-in-law, as the duke was eager to show how much he valued this alliance.
CHAPTER 13
The time had now come for the Duke of Valentinois to continue the pursuit of his conquests. So, since on the 1st of May in the preceding year the pope had pronounced sentence of forfeiture in full consistory against Julius Caesar of Varano, as punishment for the murder of his brother Rudolph and for the harbouring of the pope's enemies, and he had accordingly been mulcted of his fief of Camerino, which was to be handed over to the apostolic chamber, Caesar left Rome to put the sentence in execution. Consequently, when he arrived on the frontiers of Perugia, which belonged to his lieutenant, Gian Paolo Baglioni, he sent Oliverotta da Fermo and Orsini of Gravina to lay waste the March of Camerino, at the same time petitioning Guido d'Ubaldo di Montefeltro, Duke of Urbino, to lend his soldiers and artillery to help him in this enterprise. This the unlucky Duke of Urbino, who enjoyed the best possible relations with the pope, and who had no reason for distrusting Caesar, did not dare refuse. But on the very same day that the Duke of Urbina's troops started for Camerino, Caesar's troops entered the duchy of Urbino, and took possession of Cagli, one of the four towns of the little State. The Duke of Urbino knew what awaited him if he tried to resist, and fled incontinently, disguised as a peasant; thus in less than eight days Caesar was master of his whole duchy, except the fortresses of Maiolo and San Leone.
TheThe time had come for the Duke of Valentinois to continue his quest for conquests. On May 1st of the previous year, the pope had declared a forfeiture sentence against Julius Caesar of Varano in a full meeting, punishing him for the murder of his brother Rudolph and for protecting the pope's enemies. As a result, Julius lost his fief of Camerino, which was to be handed over to the apostolic chamber. So, Julius left Rome to fulfill the sentence. When he reached the borders of Perugia, controlled by his lieutenant, Gian Paolo Baglioni, he sent Oliverotta da Fermo and Orsini of Gravina to ravage the March of Camerino while also asking Guido d'Ubaldo di Montefeltro, Duke of Urbino, for troops and artillery to help with this mission. The unfortunate Duke of Urbino, who had a good relationship with the pope and no reason to distrust Caesar, couldn’t refuse. However, on the same day the Duke of Urbino's forces set out for Camerino, Caesar's troops invaded the duchy of Urbino and seized Cagli, one of the four towns in the small state. The Duke of Urbino knew what would happen if he tried to resist, so he immediately fled, disguised as a peasant. In less than eight days, Caesar had taken over the entire duchy, except for the fortresses of Maiolo and San Leone.
The Duke of Valentinois forthwith returned to Camerino, where the inhabitants still held out, encouraged by the presence of Julius Caesar di Varano, their lord, and his two sons, Venantio and Hannibal; the eldest son, Gian Maria, had been sent by his father to Venice.
The Duke of Valentinois quickly returned to Camerino, where the locals were still resisting, driven by the presence of their lord, Julius Caesar di Varano, and his two sons, Venantio and Hannibal; the eldest son, Gian Maria, had been sent by his father to Venice.
The presence of Caesar was the occasion of parleying between the besiegers and besieged. A capitulation was arranged whereby Varano engaged to give up the town, on condition that he and his sons were allowed to retire safe and sound, taking with them their furniture, treasure, and carriages. But this was by no means Caesar's intention; so, profiting by the relaxation in vigilance that had naturally come about in the garrison when the news of the capitulation had been announced, he surprised the town in the night preceding the surrender, and seized Caesar di Varano and his two sons, who were strangled a short time after, the father at La Pergola and the sons at Pesaro, by Don Michele Correglio, who, though he had left the position of sbirro for that of a captain, every now and then returned to his first business.
Caesar's arrival sparked negotiations between the attackers and the defenders. They worked out a surrender deal in which Varano agreed to give up the town, as long as he and his sons could leave safely with their furniture, valuables, and carriages. However, that wasn't Caesar's real plan; taking advantage of the reduced alertness among the garrison after news of the surrender spread, he launched a surprise attack on the town the night before the transfer. He captured Caesar di Varano and his two sons, who were soon strangled—Varano at La Pergola and his sons at Pesaro—by Don Michele Correglio. Although he had moved up from being a henchman to a captain, he sometimes slipped back into his old ways.
Meanwhile Vitellozzo Vitelli, who had assumed the title of General of the Church, and had under him 800 men-at-arms and 3,000 infantry, was following the secret instructions that he had received from Caesar by word of mouth, and was carrying forward that system of invasion which was to encircle Florence in a network of iron, and in the end make her defence an impossibility. A worthy pupil of his master, in whose school he had learned to use in turn the cunning of a fox and the strength of a lion, he had established an understanding between himself and certain young gentlemen of Arezzo to get that town delivered into his hands. But the plot had been discovered by Guglielma dei Pazzi, commissary of the Florentine Republic, and he had arrested two of the conspirators, whereupon the others, who were much more numerous than was supposed, had instantly dispersed about the town summoning the citizens to arms. All the republican faction, who saw in any sort of revolution the means of subjugating Florence, joined their party, set the captives at liberty, and seized Guglielmo; then proclaiming the establishment of the ancient constitution, they besieged the citadel, whither Cosimo dei Pazzi, Bishop of Arezzo, the son of Guglielmo, had fled for refuge; he, finding himself invested on every side, sent a messenger in hot haste to Florence to ask for help.
Meanwhile, Vitellozzo Vitelli, who had taken on the title of General of the Church and commanded 800 men-at-arms and 3,000 infantry, was following the secret instructions he had received directly from Caesar. He was putting together a plan to invade that aimed to trap Florence in an iron grip, making it impossible for her to defend herself. A skilled pupil of his mentor, having learned to use both the cleverness of a fox and the strength of a lion, he had arranged a deal with some young men from Arezzo to surrender that town to him. However, Guglielmo dei Pazzi, commissary of the Florentine Republic, uncovered the plot and arrested two of the conspirators. As a result, the others, who were more numerous than expected, quickly scattered throughout the town, rallying the citizens to take up arms. All the republican factions, eager to seize any uprising as a chance to control Florence, joined in, freeing the captured conspirators and capturing Guglielmo. They then declared the reinstatement of the old constitution and laid siege to the citadel, where Cosimo dei Pazzi, Bishop of Arezzo and Guglielmo’s son, had taken refuge. Finding himself surrounded, he sent a messenger in a hurry to Florence asking for help.
Unfortunately for the cardinal, Vitellozzo's troops were nearer to the besiegers than were the soldiers of the most serene republic to the besieged, and instead of help—the whole army of the enemy came down upon him. This army was under the command of Vitellozzo, of Gian Paolo Baglioni, and of Fabio Orsino, and with them were the two Medici, ever ready to go wherever there was a league against Florence, and ever ready at the command of Borgia, on any conditions whatever, to re-enter the town whence they had been banished. The next day more help in the form of money and artillery arrived, sent by Pandolfo Petrucci, and on the 18th of June the citadel of Arezzo, which had received no news from Florence, was obliged to surrender.
Unfortunately for the cardinal, Vitellozzo’s troops were closer to the attackers than the soldiers of the Most Serene Republic were to those under siege, and instead of receiving assistance, the whole enemy army came down on him. This army was led by Vitellozzo, Gian Paolo Baglioni, and Fabio Orsino, and along with them were the two Medici, who were always ready to support any alliance against Florence and eager to return to the city from which they had been exiled, at Borgia’s command, under any conditions. The next day, extra support in the form of money and artillery arrived, sent by Pandolfo Petrucci, and on June 18th, the citadel of Arezzo, which hadn’t received any news from Florence, had no choice but to surrender.
Vitellozzo left the men of Arezzo to look after their town themselves, leaving also Fabio Orsina to garrison the citadel with a thousand men. Then, profiting by the terror that had been spread throughout all this part of Italy by the successive captures of the duchy of Urbino, of Camerino, and of Arezzo, he marched upon Monte San Severino, Castiglione, Aretino, Cortone, and the other towns of the valley of Chiana, which submitted one after the other almost without a struggle. When he was only ten or twelve leagues from Florence, and dared not on his own account attempt anything against her, he made known the state of affairs to the Duke of Valentinois. He, fancying the hour had came at last for striking the blow so long delayed, started off at once to deliver his answer in person to his faithful lieutenants.
Vitellozzo left the people of Arezzo to manage their town independently, assigning Fabio Orsina to guard the citadel with a thousand men. Then, taking advantage of the fear that had spread through this part of Italy due to the recent captures of the duchy of Urbino, Camerino, and Arezzo, he marched on Monte San Severino, Castiglione, Aretino, Cortone, and the other towns in the valley of Chiana, which surrendered one after another with little resistance. When he was only ten or twelve leagues from Florence, and too cautious to make a move against her on his own, he informed the Duke of Valentinois about the situation. The Duke, believing the time had finally come to act, immediately set out to deliver his response in person to his loyal lieutenants.
But the Florentines, though they had sent no help to Guglielmo dei Pazzi, had demanded aid from Chaumont d'Amboise, governor of the Milanese, on behalf of Louis XII, not only explaining the danger they themselves were in but also Caesar's ambitious projects, namely that after first overcoming the small principalities and then the states of the second order, he had now, it seemed, reached such a height of pride that he would attack the King of France himself. The news from Naples was disquieting; serious differences had already occurred between the Count of Armagnac and Gonzalva di Cordova, and Louis might any day need Florence, whom he had always found loyal and faithful. He therefore resolved to check Caesar's progress, and not only sent him orders to advance no further step forwards, but also sent off, to give effect to his injunction, the captain Imbaut with 400 lances. The Duke of Valentinois on the frontier of Tuscany received a copy of the treaty signed between the republic and the King of France, a treaty in which the king engaged to help his ally against any enemy whatsoever, and at the same moment the formal prohibition from Louis to advance any further. Caesar also learned that beside the 400 lances with the captain Imbaut, which were on the road to Florence, Louis XII had as soon as he reached Asti sent off to Parma Louis de la Trimouille and 200 men-at-arms, 3000 Swiss, and a considerable train of artillery. In these two movements combined he saw hostile intentions towards himself, and turning right about face with his usual agility, he profited by the fact that he had given nothing but verbal instructions to all his lieutenants, and wrote a furious letter to Vitellozzo, reproaching him for compromising his master with a view to his own private interest, and ordering the instant surrender to the Florentines of the towns and fortresses he had taken, threatening to march down with his own troops and take them if he hesitated for a moment.
But the people of Florence, although they hadn’t sent any help to Guglielmo dei Pazzi, had asked Chaumont d'Amboise, the governor of Milan, for assistance on behalf of Louis XII. They explained not only the danger they were facing but also Caesar's ambitious plans. It seemed that after defeating the smaller principalities and then the mid-tier states, he had grown so arrogant that he would go after the King of France himself. The news from Naples was troubling; serious conflicts had already emerged between the Count of Armagnac and Gonzalva di Cordova, and Louis might need Florence any day, as he had always found them to be loyal. He decided to stop Caesar's advances. Not only did he send orders for him to go no further, but he also sent Captain Imbaut with 400 lances to enforce the command. The Duke of Valentinois, on the Tuscan border, received a copy of the treaty signed between the republic and the King of France, which promised that the king would support his ally against any enemy. At the same time, he got a formal order from Louis to halt any further advance. Caesar also learned that besides the 400 lances with Captain Imbaut heading to Florence, Louis XII had sent Louis de la Trimouille and 200 men-at-arms, along with 3000 Swiss soldiers and a significant artillery train, to Parma as soon as he reached Asti. He viewed these coordinated moves as threats against himself. Quickly turning around, he took advantage of the fact that he had only given verbal orders to his lieutenants, and he wrote an angry letter to Vitellozzo, accusing him of endangering his master for his own gain, and demanding the immediate surrender of the towns and fortresses he had captured. He threatened to march down with his own troops and seize them by force if there was any delay.
As soon as this letter was written, Caesar departed for Milan, where Louis XII had just arrived, bringing with him proof positive that he had been calumniated in the evacuation of the conquered towns. He also was entrusted with the pope's mission to renew for another eighteen months the title of legate 'a latere' in France to Cardinal d'Amboise, the friend rather than the minister of Louis XII. Thus, thanks to the public proof of his innocence and the private use of his influence, Caesar soon made his peace with the King of France.
Once this letter was written, Caesar headed to Milan, where Louis XII had just arrived with clear proof that he had been wrongfully accused of abandoning the conquered towns. He was also given the pope's order to extend the title of legate 'a latere' in France for another eighteen months to Cardinal d'Amboise, who was more of a friend than a minister to Louis XII. With public evidence of his innocence and the private leverage of his influence, Caesar swiftly made peace with the King of France.
But this was not all. It was in the nature of Caesar's genius to divert an impending calamity that threatened his destruction so as to come out of it better than before, and he suddenly saw the advantage he might take from the pretended disobedience of his lieutenants. Already he had been disturbed now and again by their growing power, and coveted their towns, now he thought the hour had perhaps come for suppressing them also, and in the usurpation of their private possessions striking a blow at Florence, who always escaped him at the very moment when he thought to take her. It was indeed an annoying thing to have these fortresses and towns displaying another banner than his own in the midst of the beautiful Romagna which he desired for his own kingdom. For Vitellozzo possessed Citta di Castello, Bentivoglio Bologna, Gian Paolo Baglioni was in command of Perugia, Oliverotto had just taken Fermo, and Pandolfo Petrucci was lord of Siena; it was high time that all these returned: into his own hands. The lieutenants of the Duke of Valentinois, like Alexander's, were becoming too powerful, and Borgia must inherit from them, unless he were willing to let them become his own heirs. He obtained from Louis XII three hundred lances wherewith to march against them. As soon as Vitellozzo Vitelli received Caesar's letter he perceived that he was being sacrificed to the fear that the King of France inspired; but he was not one of those victims who suffer their throats to be cut in the expiation of a mistake: he was a buffalo of Romagna who opposed his horns to the knife of the butcher; besides, he had the example of Varano and the Manfredi before him, and, death for death, he preferred to perish in arms.
But that wasn’t all. It was in Caesar's nature to turn a looming disaster that threatened his downfall into a chance to come out ahead, and he suddenly realized he could exploit his lieutenants’ fake disobedience. He had been increasingly unsettled by their growing power and had long wanted their territories; now he thought the time had come to crush them and, by taking their lands, strike a blow at Florence, which had always eluded him just when he thought he could capture it. It was truly frustrating to see these fortresses and towns flying banners other than his own in the beautiful Romagna, which he wanted for himself. Vitellozzo held Citta di Castello, Bentivoglio was in Bologna, Gian Paolo Baglioni was in charge of Perugia, Oliverotto had just taken Fermo, and Pandolfo Petrucci ruled Siena; it was high time to bring all these back under his control. The lieutenants of the Duke of Valentinois, much like Alexander's, were becoming too powerful, and Borgia needed to take over from them, unless he wanted to let them become his own successors. He secured three hundred lances from Louis XII to march against them. As soon as Vitellozzo Vitelli received Caesar's letter, he realized he was being sacrificed out of fear of the King of France; but he wasn’t one of those victims who let themselves be slaughtered because of someone else's mistake: he was a buffalo from Romagna who charged against the butcher’s knife; besides, he had the examples of Varano and the Manfredi before him, and when it came to death, he would rather fight until the end.
So Vitellozzo convoked at Maggione all whose lives or lands were threatened by this new reversal of Caesar's policy. These were Paolo Orsino, Gian Paolo Baglioni, Hermes Bentivoglio, representing his father Gian, Antonio di Venafro, the envoy of Pandolfo Petrucci, Olivertoxo da Fermo, and the Duke of Urbino: the first six had everything to lose, and the last had already lost everything.
Vitellozzo gathered everyone at Maggione whose lives or lands were threatened by this new direction in Caesar's policy. This included Paolo Orsino, Gian Paolo Baglioni, Hermes Bentivoglio, representing his father Gian, Antonio di Venafro, the envoy of Pandolfo Petrucci, Olivertoxo da Fermo, and the Duke of Urbino: the first six had everything to lose, while the last had already lost everything.
A treaty of alliance was signed between the confederates: they engaged to resist whether he attacked them severally or all together.
An alliance treaty was signed among the confederates: they agreed to stand together whether he attacked them one by one or all at once.
Caesar learned the existence of this league by its first effects: the Duke of Urbino, who was adored by his subjects, had come with a handful of soldiers to the fortress of San Leone, and it had yielded at once. In less than a week towns and fortresses followed this example, and all the duchy was once more in the hands of the Duke of Urbino.
Caesar learned about this alliance from its early effects: the Duke of Urbino, who was adored by his people, came with a small band of soldiers to the fortress of San Leone, and it gave in right away. In less than a week, towns and fortresses fell in line, and the entire duchy was once more under the Duke of Urbino's control.
At the same time, each member of the confederacy openly proclaimed his revolt against the common enemy, and took up a hostile attitude.
At the same time, every member of the confederation publicly announced their rebellion against the shared enemy and took a confrontational position.
Caesar was at Imola, awaiting the French troops, but with scarcely any men; so that Bentivoglio, who held part of the country, and the Duke of Urbino, who had just reconquered the rest of it, could probably have either taken him or forced him to fly and quit the Romagna, had they marched against him; all the more since the two men on whom he counted, viz., Don Ugo di Cardona, who had entered his service after Capua was taken, and Michelotto had mistaken his intention, and were all at once separated from him. He had really ordered them to fall back upon Rimini, and bring 200 light horse and 500 infantry of which they had the command; but, unaware of the urgency of his situation, at the very moment when they were attempting to surprise La Pergola and Fossombrone, they were surrounded by Orsino of Gravina and Vitellozzo. Ugo di Cardona and Michelotto defended themselves like lions; but in spite of their utmost efforts their little band was cut to pieces, and Ugo di Cardona taken prisoner, while Michelotto only escaped the same fate by lying down among the dead; when night came on, he escaped to Fano.
Caesar was at Imola, waiting for the French troops, but he had very few men. Bentivoglio, who controlled part of the region, and the Duke of Urbino, who had just regained the rest, could have easily captured him or forced him to flee from Romagna if they had decided to march against him. This was especially true since the two men he depended on, Don Ugo di Cardona and Michelotto, had misunderstood his orders and were suddenly cut off from him. He had actually told them to retreat to Rimini and bring back 200 light cavalry and 500 infantry that they commanded; however, unaware of how urgent his situation was, they were trying to ambush La Pergola and Fossombrone when they were attacked by Orsino of Gravina and Vitellozzo. Ugo di Cardona and Michelotto fought bravely; however, despite their best efforts, their small group was overwhelmed, and Ugo di Cardona was captured, while Michelotto narrowly escaped by hiding among the dead and eventually made his way to Fano under the cover of night.
But even alone as he was, almost without troops at Imola, the confederates dared attempt nothing against Caesar, whether because of the personal fear he inspired, or because in him they respected the ally of the King of France; they contented themselves with taking the towns and fortresses in the neighbourhood. Vitellozzo had retaken the fortresses of Fossombrone, Urbino, Cagli, and Aggobbio; Orsino of Gravina had reconquered Fano and the whole province; while Gian Maria de Varano, the same who by his absence had escaped being massacred with the rest of his family, had re-entered Camerino, borne in triumph by his people. Not even all this could destroy Caesar's confidence in his own good fortune, and while he was on the one hand urging on the arrival of the French troops and calling into his pay all those gentlemen known as "broken lances," because they went about the country in parties of five or six only, and attached themselves to anyone who wanted them, he had opened up negotiations with his enemies, certain that from that very day when he should persuade them to a conference they were undone. Indeed, Caesar had the power of persuasion as a gift from heaven; and though they perfectly well knew his duplicity, they had no power of resisting, not so much his actual eloquence as that air of frank good-nature which Macchiavelli so greatly admired, and which indeed more than once deceived even him, wily politician as he was. In order to get Paolo Orsino to treat with him at Imola, Caesar sent Cardinal Borgia to the confederates as a hostage; and on this Paolo Orsino hesitated no longer, and on the 25th of October, 1502, arrived at Imola.
Even though he was alone and nearly outnumbered at Imola, the confederates didn’t dare to make any moves against Caesar, either because they feared him personally or respected him as an ally of the King of France. Instead, they focused on seizing control of nearby towns and fortresses. Vitellozzo had taken back the forts at Fossombrone, Urbino, Cagli, and Aggobbio; Orsino of Gravina had reclaimed Fano and the entire province; while Gian Maria de Varano, who had avoided the slaughter of his family by being absent, returned to Camerino, celebrated by his people. Still, none of this affected Caesar’s confidence in his own luck. He was actively calling for the arrival of French troops and hiring a group of gentlemen known as "broken lances," who roamed in small packs of five or six, joining anyone who needed them. At the same time, he started negotiating with his enemies, sure that once he convinced them to meet, they were done for. Indeed, Caesar had a talent for persuasion that felt almost like a divine gift. Even though they were aware of his deceitfulness, they found it hard to resist not only his genuine eloquence but also the sincere manner that Machiavelli greatly admired, which sometimes even fooled him, a shrewd politician himself. To prompt Paolo Orsino to negotiate with him in Imola, Caesar sent Cardinal Borgia to the confederates as a hostage; with that, Paolo Orsino no longer hesitated and arrived in Imola on October 25, 1502.
Caesar received him as an old friend from whom one might have been estranged a few days because of some slight passing differences; he frankly avowed that all the fault was no doubt on his side, since he had contrived to alienate men who were such loyal lords and also such brave captains; but with men of their nature, he added, an honest, honourable explanation such as he would give must put everything once more in statu quo. To prove that it was goodwill, not fear, that brought him back to them, he showed Orsino the letters from Cardinal Amboise which announced the speedy arrival of French troops; he showed him those he had collected about him, in the wish, he declared, that they might be thoroughly convinced that what he chiefly regretted in the whole matter was not so much the loss of the distinguished captains who were the very soul of his vast enterprise, as that he had led the world to believe, in a way so fatal to his own interest, that he could for a single instant fail to recognise their merit; adding that he consequently relied upon him, Paolo Orsino, whom he had always cared for most, to bring back the confederates by a peace which would be as much for the profit of all as a war was hurtful to all, and that he was ready to sign a treaty in consonance with their wishes so long as it should not prejudice his own honour.
Caesar greeted him like an old friend, someone he might have lost touch with for just a few days due to some small disagreements. He honestly admitted that he was to blame for pushing away such loyal and brave leaders. But he added that with men like them, a sincere and honorable explanation from him would put everything back to normal. To demonstrate that his return was motivated by goodwill, not fear, he showed Orsino the letters from Cardinal Amboise announcing the quick arrival of French troops. He also shared the letters he had gathered, expressing his hope that they would fully understand that what he regretted most in this whole situation was not just losing the exceptional leaders who were central to his large undertaking, but that he had made the world think, in a way that jeopardized his own interests, that he could ever fail to recognize their value. He mentioned that he was relying on Paolo Orsino, whom he had always valued the most, to guide the allies back to a peace that would benefit everyone, just as war harmed all, and that he was ready to sign an agreement in line with their wishes as long as it didn't compromise his honor.
Orsino was the man Caesar wanted: full of pride and confidence in himself, he was convinced of the truth of the old proverb that says, "A pope cannot reign eight days, if he has both the Colonnas and the Orsini against him." He believed, therefore, if not in Caesar's good faith, at any rate in the necessity he must feel for making peace; accordingly he signed with him the following conventions—which only needed ratification—on the 18th of October, 1502, which we reproduce here as Macchiavelli sent them to the magnificent republic of Florence.
Orsino was the man Caesar wanted: proud and confident, he strongly believed in the old saying, "A pope can't last eight days if both the Colonnas and the Orsini are against him." So, he thought that, if not out of real trust in Caesar, at least out of a need for peace, he should sign the following agreements—which only needed approval—on October 18, 1502. Here they are, as Machiavelli sent them to the great Republic of Florence.
"Agreement between the Duke of Valentinois and the Confederates.
"Agreement between the Duke of Valentinois and the Confederates."
"Let it be known to the parties mentioned below, and to all who shall see these presents, that His Excellency the Duke of Romagna of the one part and the Orsini of the other part, together with their confederates, desiring to put an end to differences, enmities, misunderstandings, and suspicions which have arisen between them, have resolved as follows:
This is to inform the parties listed below and anyone reading this document that His Excellency the Duke of Romagna on one side and the Orsini on the other, along with their allies, aiming to resolve disputes, hostilities, misunderstandings, and suspicions that have arisen between them, have agreed to the following:
"There shall be between them peace and alliance true and perpetual, with a complete obliteration of wrongs and injuries which may have taken place up to this day, both parties engaging to preserve no resentment of the same; and in conformity with the aforesaid peace and union, His Excellency the Duke of Romagna shall receive into perpetual confederation, league, and alliance all the lords aforesaid; and each of them shall promise to defend the estates of all in general and of each in particular against any power that may annoy or attack them for any cause whatsoever, excepting always nevertheless the Pope Alexander VI and his Very Christian Majesty Louis XII, King of France: the lords above named promising on the other part to unite in the defence of the person and estates of His Excellency, as also those of the most illustrious lords, Don Gaffredo Borgia , Prince of Squillace, Don Roderigo Borgia , Duke of Sermaneta and Biselli, and Don Gian Borgia, Duke of Camerino and Negi, all brothers or nephews of the Duke of Romagna.
There will be peace and a true, lasting alliance among them, completely forgetting any wrongs or harms that may have happened up to now, with both sides agreeing to hold no grudges. In this spirit of peace and unity, His Excellency the Duke of Romagna will welcome all the aforementioned lords into a lasting confederation, league, and alliance. Each of them will promise to defend everyone's properties as a group and individually against any force that may disturb or attack them for any reason, except for Pope Alexander VI and His Very Christian Majesty Louis XII, King of France. The mentioned lords also promise to come together to defend His Excellency’s person and properties, as well as those of the distinguished lords, Don Gaffredo Borgia, Prince of Squillace, Don Roderigo Borgia, Duke of Sermaneta and Biselli, and Don Gian Borgia, Duke of Camerino and Negi, who are all brothers or nephews of the Duke of Romagna.
"Moreover, since the rebellion and usurpation of Urbino have occurred during the above-mentioned misunderstandings, all the confederates aforesaid and each of them shall bind themselves to unite all their forces for the recovery of the estates aforesaid and of such other places as have revolted and been usurped.
"Also, since the rebellion and takeover of Urbino occurred during these misunderstandings, all the confederates mentioned above, both individually and together, agree to join forces to reclaim the estates mentioned earlier and any other locations that have revolted and been seized."
"His Excellency the Duke of Romagna shall undertake to continue to the Orsini and Vitelli their ancient engagements in the way of military service and on the same conditions.
His Excellency the Duke of Romagna will keep supporting the Orsini and Vitelli's long-standing commitments to military service under the same conditions.
"His Excellency promises further not to insist on the service in person of more than one of them, as they may choose: the service that the others may render shall be voluntary.
His Excellency also promises that only one of them will need to serve in person, if they want to; the contributions from the others will be voluntary.
"He also promises that the second treaty shall be ratified by the sovereign pontiff, who shall not compel Cardinal Orsino to reside in Rome longer than shall seem convenient to this prelate.
"He also assures that the second treaty will be approved by the pope, who won't require Cardinal Orsino to stay in Rome any longer than what seems appropriate for this bishop."
"Furthermore, since there are certain differences between the Pope and the lord Gian Bentivoglio, the confederates aforesaid agree that they shall be put to the arbitration of Cardinal Orsino, of His Excellency the Duke of Romagna, and of the lord Pandolfo Petrucci, without appeal.
Also, since there are some differences between the Pope and Lord Gian Bentivoglio, the confederates mentioned above agree to let Cardinal Orsino, His Excellency the Duke of Romagna, and Lord Pandolfo Petrucci make a final decision, with no chance for appeal.
"Thus the confederates engage, each and all, so soon as they may be required by the Duke of Romagna, to put into his hands as a hostage one of the legitimate sons of each of them, in that place and at that time which he may be pleased to indicate.
"The confederates agree that whenever the Duke of Romagna needs it, each of them will provide one of their legitimate sons as a hostage, at the location and time he chooses."
"The same confederates promising moreover, all and each, that if any project directed against any one of them come to their knowledge, to give warning thereof, and all to prevent such project reciprocally.
The same allies also agreed that if they discovered any plans against any of them, they would inform one another and collaborate to stop those plans.
"It is agreed, over and above, between the Duke of Romagna and the confederates aforesaid, to regard as a common enemy any who shall fail to keep the present stipulations, and to unite in the destruction of any States not conforming thereto.
"It is also agreed between the Duke of Romagna and the aforementioned allies to regard anyone who does not follow these agreements as a common enemy, and to unite in eliminating any states that do not comply."
"(Signed) CAESAR, PAOLO ORSINO.
"(Signed) CAESAR, PAOLO ORSINO."
"AGAPIT, Secretary."
"AGAPIT, Secretary."
At the same time, while Orsino was carrying to the confederates the treaty drawn up between him and the duke, Bentivoglio, not willing to submit to the arbitration indicated, made an offer to Caesar of settling their differences by a private treaty, and sent his son to arrange the conditions: after some parleying, they were settled as follows:—
While Orsino was presenting the treaty he prepared with the duke to the allies, Bentivoglio, not wanting to accept the suggested arbitration, offered Caesar a way to settle their disagreements through a private agreement and sent his son to negotiate the terms. After some discussions, they reached an agreement as follows:—
Bentivaglio should separate his fortunes from the Vitelli and Orsini;
Bentivaglio should keep his wealth distinct from the Vitelli and Orsini.
He should furnish the Duke of Valentinois with a hundred men-at-arms and a hundred mounted archers for eight years;
He must supply the Duke of Valentinois with a hundred armored soldiers and a hundred mounted archers for eight years.
He should pay 12,000 ducats per annum to Caesar, for the support of a hundred lances;
He should pay 12,000 ducats every year to Caesar to support a hundred soldiers;
In return for this, his son Hannibal was to marry the sister of the Archbishop of Enna, who was Caesar's niece, and the pope was to recognise his sovereignty in Bologna;
In return for this, his son Hannibal was supposed to marry the sister of the Archbishop of Enna, who was also Caesar's niece, and the pope was expected to recognize his authority in Bologna;
The King of France, the Duke of Ferrara, and the republic of Florence were to be the guarantors of this treaty.
The King of France, the Duke of Ferrara, and the Republic of Florence were set to ensure this treaty.
But the convention brought to the confederates by Orsino was the cause of great difficulties on their part. Vitellozza Vitelli in particular, who knew Caesar the best, never ceased to tell the other condottieri that so prompt and easy a peace must needs be the cover to some trap; but since Caesar had meanwhile collected a considerable army at Imola, and the four hundred lances lent him by Louis XII had arrived at last, Vitellozzo and Oliverotto decided to sign the treaty that Orsino brought, and to let the Duke of Urbino and the lord of Camerino know of it; they, seeing plainly that it was henceforth impossible to make a defence unaided, had retired, the one to Citta di Castello and the other into the kingdom of Naples.
The agreement that Orsino brought to the allies posed major challenges for them. Vitellozzo Vitelli, who knew Caesar best, kept warning the other mercenaries that such a quick and easy peace must hide some kind of trap. However, since Caesar had assembled a large army at Imola and the four hundred lances provided by Louis XII had finally arrived, Vitellozzo and Oliverotto decided to sign the treaty presented by Orsino and inform the Duke of Urbino and the lord of Camerino about it. They realized that it was now impossible to defend themselves without assistance, so they had retreated—one to Citta di Castello and the other to the kingdom of Naples.
But Caesar, saying nothing of his intentions, started on the 10th of December, and made his way to Cesena with a powerful army once more under his command. Fear began to spread on all sides, not only in Romagna but in the whole of Northern Italy; Florence, seeing him move away from her, only thought it a blind to conceal his intentions; while Venice, seeing him approach her frontiers, despatched all her troops to the banks of the Po. Caesar perceived their fear, and lest harm should be done to himself by the mistrust it might inspire, he sent away all French troops in his service as soon as he reached Cesena, except a hundred men with M. de Candale, his brother-in-law; it was then seen that he only had 2000 cavalry and 2000 infantry with him. Several days were spent in parleying, for at Cesena Caesar found the envoys of the Vitelli and Orsini, who themselves were with their army in the duchy of Urbino; but after the preliminary discussions as to the right course to follow in carrying on the plan of conquest, there arose such difficulties between the general-in-chief and these agents, that they could not but see the impossibility of getting anything settled by intermediaries, and the urgent necessity of a conference between Caesar and one of the chiefs. So Oliverotto ran the risk of joining the duke in order to make proposals to him, either to march on Tuscany or to take Sinigaglia, which was the only place in the duchy of Urbino that had not again fallen into Caesar's power. Caesar's reply was that he did not desire to war upon Tuscany, because the Tuscans were his friends; but that he approved of the lieutenants' plan with regard to Sinigaglia, and therefore was marching towards Fano.
Caesar, keeping his plans to himself, left on December 10th and headed to Cesena with a powerful army once again. Panic began to spread everywhere, not just in Romagna but throughout Northern Italy; Florence, noticing his movement, thought it was merely a distraction to hide his true intentions, while Venice, seeing him approach her borders, sent all her troops to the banks of the Po. Caesar recognized their fear, and to prevent any issues his presence might cause due to their distrust, he dismissed all the French troops he had with him as soon as he arrived in Cesena, keeping only a hundred men led by M. de Candale, his brother-in-law. It became clear that he had only 2000 cavalry and 2000 infantry with him. Several days were spent negotiating, as Caesar encountered the envoys of the Vitelli and Orsini in Cesena, who were with their army in the duchy of Urbino. However, after initial talks about the best way to proceed with the conquest, major disagreements arose between the commander-in-chief and these envoys, making it evident that resolving anything through intermediaries was impossible, and that a direct meeting between Caesar and one of the leaders was urgently needed. Oliverotto took the risk of approaching the duke to suggest either advancing into Tuscany or taking Sinigaglia, which was the only place in the duchy of Urbino that had not returned under Caesar's control. Caesar replied that he did not want to wage war on Tuscany since the Tuscans were his friends, but he supported the lieutenants' plan regarding Sinigaglia, and thus was heading towards Fano.
But the daughter of Frederic, the former Duke of Urbino, who held the town of Sinigaglia, and who was called the lady-prefect, because she had married Gian della Rovere, whom his uncle, Sixtus IV, had made prefect of Rome, judging that it would be impossible to defend herself against the forces the Duke of Valentinois was bringing, left the citadel in the hands of a captain, recommending him to get the best terms he could for the town, and took boat for Venice.
The daughter of Frederic, the former Duke of Urbino, who ruled over the town of Sinigaglia and was known as the lady-prefect because she married Gian della Rovere, appointed prefect of Rome by his uncle Sixtus IV, understood that she couldn't protect herself against the forces led by the Duke of Valentinois. She left the citadel in the care of a captain, advising him to negotiate the best deal for the town, and took a boat to Venice.
Caesar learned this news at Rimini, through a messenger from Vitelli and the Orsini, who said that the governor of the citadel, though refusing to yield to them, was quite ready to make terms with him, and consequently they would engage to go to the town and finish the business there. Caesar's reply was that in consequence of this information he was sending some of his troops to Cesena and Imola, for they would be useless to him, as he should now have theirs, which together with the escort he retained would be sufficient, since his only object was the complete pacification of the duchy of Urbino. He added that this pacification would not be possible if his old friends continued to distrust him, and to discuss through intermediaries alone plans in which their own fortunes were interested as well as his. The messenger returned with this answer, and the confederates, though feeling, it is true, the justice of Caesar's remarks, none the less hesitated to comply with his demand. Vitellozzo Vitelli in particular showed a want of confidence in him which nothing seemed able to subdue; but, pressed by Oliverotto, Gravina, and Orsino, he consented at last to await the duke's coming; making concession rather because he could not bear to appear more timid than his companions, than because of any confidence he felt in the return of friendship that Borgia was displaying.
Caesar received this news in Rimini from a messenger sent by Vitelli and the Orsini, who reported that the governor of the citadel, while refusing to surrender, was open to negotiations with him. Therefore, they agreed to head to the town and settle things there. In response, Caesar said that because of this information, he was sending some of his troops to Cesena and Imola, as they would be of no use to him now that he would have theirs. The combined forces, along with the escort he kept, would be sufficient, since his main goal was to completely pacify the duchy of Urbino. He pointed out that this pacification wouldn’t happen if his old allies continued to distrust him and only talked about plans through intermediaries that affected both their fortunes and his own. The messenger returned with this response, and while the confederates recognized the validity of Caesar’s points, they still hesitated to meet his demands. Vitellozzo Vitelli, in particular, showed a lack of confidence in him that nothing seemed to change; however, under pressure from Oliverotto, Gravina, and Orsino, he eventually agreed to wait for the duke's arrival, compromising more because he couldn’t stand to seem more cowardly than his peers than out of any belief in the friendship that Borgia was showing.
The duke learned the news of this decision, so much desired, when he arrived at Fano on the 20th of December 1502. At once he summoned eight of his most faithful friends, among whom were d'Enna, his nephew, Michelotto, and Ugo di Cardona, and ordered them, as soon as they arrived at Sinigaglia, and had seen Vitellozzo, Gravina, Oliveratta, and Orsino come out to meet them, on a pretext of doing them honour, to place themselves on the right and left hand of the four generals, two beside each, so that at a given signal they might either stab or arrest them; next he assigned to each of them his particular man, bidding them not quit his side until he had reentered Sinigaglia and arrived at the quarters prepared for him; then he sent orders to such of the soldiers as were in cantonments in the neighbourhood to assemble to the number of 8000 on the banks of the Metaurus, a little river of Umbria which runs into the Adriatic and has been made famous by the defeat of Hannibal.
The duke found out about this much-anticipated decision when he arrived in Fano on December 20, 1502. Right away, he summoned eight of his most loyal friends, including d'Enna, his nephew, Michelotto, and Ugo di Cardona. He instructed them that as soon as they arrived in Sinigaglia and saw Vitellozzo, Gravina, Oliveratta, and Orsino come out to greet them—under the pretense of honoring them—they should position themselves to the right and left of the four generals, two next to each, so that at a signal, they could either stab or arrest them. He then assigned each of them a specific target and told them not to leave his side until he had reentered Sinigaglia and reached the quarters prepared for him. He also sent orders to the soldiers stationed nearby to assemble, totaling 8,000, along the banks of the Metaurus, a small river in Umbria that flows into the Adriatic and is known for Hannibal's defeat.
The duke arrived at the rendezvous given to his army on the 31st of December, and instantly sent out in front two hundred horse, and immediately behind them his infantry; following close in the midst of his men-at-arms, following the coast of the Adriatic, with the mountains on his right and the sea on his left, which in part of the way left only space for the army to march ten abreast.
The duke arrived at the meeting point he had set for his army on December 31st and quickly dispatched two hundred cavalry ahead, followed immediately by his infantry. He marched closely with his knights along the Adriatic coast, with the mountains on his right and the sea on his left, which at times only allowed the army to march ten wide.
After four hours' march, the duke at a turn of the path perceived Sinigaglia, nearly a mile distant from the sea, and a bowshot from the mountains; between the army and the town ran a little river, whose banks he had to follow for some distance. At last he found a bridge opposite a suburb of the town, and here Caesar ordered his cavalry to stop: it was drawn up in two lines, one between the road and the river, the other on the side of the country, leaving the whole width of the road to the infantry: which latter defiled, crossed the bridge, and entering the town, drew themselves up in battle array in the great square.
After marching for four hours, the duke reached a bend in the path and spotted Sinigaglia, about a mile from the sea and close to the mountains. A small river flowed between the army and the town, which he needed to follow for a while. Eventually, he found a bridge near a suburb of the town, and here Caesar ordered his cavalry to stop. They lined up in two rows, one between the road and the river, and the other on the countryside side, keeping the entire road open for the infantry. The infantry crossed the bridge and entered the town, assembling in battle formation in the main square.
On their side, Vitellazzo, Gravina, Orsino, and Oliverotto, to make room for the duke's army, had quartered their soldiers in little towns or villages in the neighbourhood of Sinigaglia; Oliverotto alone had kept nearly 1000 infantry and 150 horse, who were in barracks in the suburb through which the duke entered.
Vitellazzo, Gravina, Orsino, and Oliverotto had positioned their soldiers in small towns and villages around Sinigaglia to support the duke's army. Oliverotto alone had about 1,000 infantry and 150 cavalry stationed in the suburb where the duke entered.
Caesar had made only a few steps towards the town when he perceived Vitellozzo at the gate, with the Duke of Gravina and Orsina, who all came out to meet him; the last two quite gay and confident, but the first so gloomy and dejected that you would have thought he foresaw the fate that was in store for him; and doubtless he had not been without same presentiments; for when he left his army to came to Sinigaglia, he had bidden them farewell as though never to meet again, had commended the care of his family to the captains, and embraced his children with tears—a weakness which appeared strange to all who knew him as a brave condottiere.
Caesar had taken just a few steps toward the town when he spotted Vitellozzo at the gate, along with the Duke of Gravina and Orsina, who all came out to welcome him. The latter two were quite cheerful and confident, but Vitellozzo appeared so gloomy and depressed that you would think he was foreseeing his own fate; and he likely had some bad feelings about it. When he left his army to head to Sinigaglia, he said goodbye as if he would never see them again, entrusted his family's care to the captains, and embraced his children with tears—an emotional reaction that seemed unusual to everyone who knew him as a brave condottiere.
The duke marched up to them holding out his hand, as a sign that all was over and forgotten, and did it with an air at once so loyal and so smiling that Gravina and Orsina could no longer doubt the genuine return of his friendship, and it was only Vitellozzo still appeared sad. At the same moment, exactly as they had been commanded, the duke's accomplices took their posts on the right and left of those they were to watch, who were all there except Oliverotto, whom the duke could not see, and began to seek with uneasy looks; but as he crossed the suburb he perceived him exercising his troops on the square. Caesar at once despatched Michelotto and d'Enna, with a message that it was a rash thing to have his troops out, when they might easily start some quarrel with the duke's men and bring about an affray: it would be much better to settle them in barracks and then come to join his companions, who were with Caesar. Oliverotto, drawn by the same fate as his friends, made no objection, ordered his soldiers indoors, and put his horse to the gallop to join the duke, escorted on either side by d'Enna and Michelotto. Caesar, on seeing him, called him, took him by the hand, and continued his march to the palace that had been prepared for him, his four victims following after.
The duke approached them with his hand extended, indicating that everything was over and forgotten. He did this with such loyalty and a smile that Gravina and Orsina could no longer doubt his sincere friendship, while only Vitellozzo still appeared sad. At that moment, just as they had been instructed, the duke's accomplices took their positions on the right and left of those they were assigned to watch; everyone was there except Oliverotto, whom the duke couldn’t see and started to search for nervously. However, as he crossed the suburb, he spotted Oliverotto training his troops in the square. Caesar quickly sent Michelotto and d'Enna with a message, stating it was unwise to have his troops out, as it could easily lead to a conflict with the duke's men and result in a fight: it would be better to put them in the barracks and then join his companions with Caesar. Oliverotto, facing the same fate as his friends, raised no objections, ordered his soldiers inside, and urged his horse to speed up to meet the duke, flanked by d'Enna and Michelotto. When Caesar saw him, he called him over, took his hand, and continued walking to the palace that had been prepared for him, with his four victims following behind.
Arrived on the threshold, Caesar dismounted, and signing to the leader of the men-at-arms to await his orders, he went in first, followed by Oliverotto, Gravina, Vitellozzo Vitelli, and Orsino, each accompanied by his two satellites; but scarcely had they gone upstairs and into the first room when the door was shut behind them, and Caesar turned round, saying, "The hour has come!" This was the signal agreed upon. Instantly the former confederates were seized, thrown down, and forced to surrender with a dagger at their throat. Then, while they were being carried to a dungeon, Caesar opened the window, went out on the balcony and cried out to the leader of his men-at-arms, "Go forward!" The man was in the secret, he rushed on with his band towards the barracks where Oliverotto's soldiers had just been consigned, and they, suddenly surprised and off their guard, were at once made prisoners; then the duke's troops began to pillage the town, and he summoned Macchiavelli.
When Caesar arrived at the entrance, he got off his horse and told the leader of the soldiers to wait for his orders. He went inside first, followed by Oliverotto, Gravina, Vitellozzo Vitelli, and Orsino, each with their two companions. But as soon as they went upstairs and entered the first room, the door was shut behind them, and Caesar turned around, saying, "The time has come!" This was the agreed signal. Immediately, the former allies were seized, thrown down, and forced to surrender with daggers at their throats. Then, while they were taken to a dungeon, Caesar opened the window, stepped out onto the balcony, and shouted to the leader of his soldiers, "Go ahead!" The man was in on the plan and quickly rushed forward with his group to the barracks where Oliverotto's soldiers had just been stationed. They were caught off guard and swiftly captured. Then the duke's troops began to loot the town, and he called for Machiavelli.
Caesar and the Florentine envoy were nearly two hours shut up together, and since Macchiavelli himself recounts the history of this interview, we will give his own words.
Caesar and the Florentine envoy met for nearly two hours, and since Machiavelli himself tells the story of this meeting, we will use his own words.
"He summoned me," says the Florentine ambassador, "and in the calmest manner showed me his joy at the success of this enterprise, which he assured me he had spoken of to me the evening before; I remember that he did, but I did not at that time understand what he meant; next he explained, in terms of much feeling and lively affection for our city, the different motives which had made him desire your alliance, a desire to which he hopes you will respond. He ended with charging me to lay three proposals before your lordships: first, that you rejoice with him in the destruction at a single blow of the mortal enemies of the king, himself, and you, and the consequent disappearance of all seeds of trouble and dissension likely to waste Italy: this service of his, together with his refusal to allow the prisoners to march against you, ought, he thinks, to excite your gratitude towards him; secondly, he begs that you will at this juncture give him a striking proof of your friendliness, by urging your cavalry's advance towards Borgo, and there assembling some infantry also, in order that they may march with him, should need arise, on Castello or on Perugia. Lastly, he desires—and this is his third condition—that you arrest the Duke of Urbino, if he should flee from Castello into your territories, when he learns that Vitellozzo is a prisoner.
"He called me in," says the Florentine ambassador, "and calmly expressed his happiness about the success of this venture, which he assured me he had mentioned the night before; I remember he did, but I didn't fully grasp his meaning at the time; then he explained, with a lot of feeling and deep affection for our city, the various reasons that made him want your alliance, a request he hopes you will consider. He ended by asking me to present three proposals to your lordships: first, that you join him in celebrating the swift defeat of the king's, his, and your mortal enemies, which would eliminate all causes of conflict and strife likely to harm Italy; he believes that this act, along with his refusal to let the prisoners march against you, should earn your appreciation for him; second, he asks that you now show him a clear sign of your friendship by encouraging your cavalry to advance towards Borgo and gathering some infantry there as well, so they can march with him, if necessary, on Castello or Perugia. Lastly, he wishes—and this is his third condition—that you capture the Duke of Urbino if he attempts to flee from Castello into your territory when he learns that Vitellozzo is a prisoner."
"When I objected that to give him up would not beseem the dignity of the republic, and that you would never consent, he approved of my words, and said that it would be enough for you to keep the duke, and not give him his liberty without His Excellency's permission. I have promised to give you all this information, to which he awaits your reply."
"When I stated that giving him up wouldn't uphold the dignity of the republic and that you would never agree to it, he concurred and mentioned it would be enough for you to keep the duke and not grant him his freedom without His Excellency's approval. I've promised to share all this information with you, and he is waiting for your response."
The same night eight masked men descended to the dungeon where the prisoners lay: they believed at that moment that the fatal hour had arrived for all. But this time the executioners had to do with Vitellozzo and Oliverotto alone. When these two captains heard that they were condemned, Oliverotto burst forth into reproaches against Vitellozzo, saying that it was all his fault that they had taken up arms against the duke: not a word Vitellozzo answered except a prayer that the pope might grant him plenary indulgence for all his sins. Then the masked men took them away, leaving Orsino and Gravina to await a similar fate, and led away the two chosen out to die to a secluded spot outside the ramparts of the town, where they were strangled and buried at once in two trenches that had been dug beforehand.
That same night, eight masked men went down to the dungeon where the prisoners were kept: they thought it was the end for all of them. But this time, the executioners only had to deal with Vitellozzo and Oliverotto. When these two leaders found out they were condemned, Oliverotto attacked Vitellozzo, blaming him for their rebellion against the duke. Vitellozzo didn’t respond except to pray that the pope would forgive him for all his sins. The masked men then took them away, leaving Orsino and Gravina to face a similar fate, and led the two chosen ones to a remote spot outside the town's walls, where they were strangled and quickly buried in two trenches that had already been dug.
The two others were kept alive until it should be known if the pope had arrested Cardinal Orsino, archbishop of Florence and lord of Santa Croce; and when the answer was received in the affirmative from His Holiness, Gravina and Orsina, who had been transferred to a castle, were likewise strangled.
The other two were kept alive until it was confirmed whether the pope had arrested Cardinal Orsino, the archbishop of Florence and lord of Santa Croce. When the response came back positive from His Holiness, Gravina and Orsina, who had been moved to a castle, were also strangled.
The duke, leaving instructions with Michelotto, set off for Sinigaglia as soon as the first execution was over, assuring Macchiavelli that he had never had any other thought than that of giving tranquillity to the Romagna and to Tuscany, and also that he thought he had succeeded by taking and putting to death the men who had been the cause of all the trouble; also that any other revolt that might take place in the future would be nothing but sparks that a drop of water could extinguish.
The duke, after giving instructions to Michelotto, headed to Sinigaglia right after the first execution, telling Machiavelli that he only wanted to bring peace to Romagna and Tuscany. He also thought he had accomplished this by capturing and executing the men who caused all the chaos. Additionally, he claimed that any future revolts would be mere sparks that a drop of water could extinguish.
The pope had barely learned that Caesar had his enemies in his power, when, eager to play the same winning game himself, he announced to Cardinal Orsino, though it was then midnight, that his son had taken Sinigaglia, and gave him an invitation to come the next morning and talk over the good news. The cardinal, delighted at this increase of favour, did not miss his appointment. So, in the morning, he started on horseback for the Vatican; but at a turn of the first street he met the governor of Rome with a detachment of cavalry, who congratulated himself on the happy chance that they were taking the same road, and accompanied him to the threshold of the Vatican. There the cardinal dismounted, and began to ascend the stairs; scarcely, however, had he reached the first landing before his mules and carriages were seized and shut in the palace stables. When he entered the hall of the Perropont, he found that he and all his suite were surrounded by armed men, who led him into another apartment, called the Vicar's Hall, where he found the Abbate Alviano, the protonotary Orsino, Jacopo Santa Croce, and Rinaldo Orsino, who were all prisoners like himself; at the same time the governor received orders to seize the castle of Monte Giardino, which belonged to the Orsini, and take away all the jewels, all the hangings, all the furniture, and all the silver that he might find.
The pope had just learned that Caesar had his enemies under control when, wanting to emulate that success, he told Cardinal Orsino, even though it was midnight, that his son had captured Sinigaglia and invited him to come the next morning to discuss the good news. The cardinal, excited about this favor, didn't miss his appointment. So, the next morning, he set off on horseback for the Vatican; but at the first street corner, he ran into the governor of Rome with a group of cavalry, who congratulated himself on the lucky coincidence of them taking the same route, and he accompanied the cardinal to the Vatican entrance. There, the cardinal got off his horse and started to climb the stairs; barely had he reached the first landing when his mules and carriages were seized and taken into the palace stables. Upon entering the hall of the Perropont, he found himself and his entire entourage surrounded by armed men, who led him into another room called the Vicar's Hall. There he found Abbate Alviano, protonotary Orsino, Jacopo Santa Croce, and Rinaldo Orsino, all prisoners like him; at the same time, the governor received orders to seize the castle of Monte Giardino, owned by the Orsini, and take all the jewels, tapestries, furniture, and silver he could find.
The governor carried out his orders conscientiously, and brought to the Vatican everything he seized, down to the cardinal's account-book. On consulting this book, the pope found out two things: first, that a sum of 2000 ducats was due to the cardinal, no debtor's name being mentioned; secondly, that the cardinal had bought three months before, for 1500 Roman crowns, a magnificent pearl which could not be found among the objects belonging to him: on which Alexander ordered that from that very moment until the negligence in the cardinal's accounts was repaired, the men who were in the habit of bringing him food twice a day on behalf of his mother should not be admitted into the Castle Sant' Angelo. The same day, the cardinal's mother sent the pope the 2000 ducats, and the next day his mistress, in man's attire, came in person to bring the missing pearl. His Holiness, however, was so struck with her beauty in this costume, that, we are told, he let her keep the pearl for the same price she had paid for it.
The governor carefully followed his orders and took everything he found to the Vatican, including the cardinal's account book. When the pope examined this book, he uncovered two things: first, that the cardinal was owed 2000 ducats, with no mention of the debtor’s name; second, that the cardinal had bought a beautiful pearl three months earlier for 1500 Roman crowns, which was now missing from his belongings. As a result, Alexander ordered that starting immediately and until the cardinal's accounts were resolved, the men who usually brought him food twice a day on behalf of his mother were not allowed into Castle Sant' Angelo. Later that same day, the cardinal's mother sent the pope the 2000 ducats, and the next day, his mistress, disguised as a man, came to personally deliver the missing pearl. However, His Holiness was so captivated by her beauty in that outfit that, it is said, he let her keep the pearl for the same price she originally paid for it.
Then the pope allowed the cardinal to have his food brought as before, and he died of poison on the 22nd of February—that is, two days after his accounts had been set right.
Then the pope allowed the cardinal to have his meals delivered as usual, and he died from poison on February 22nd—two days after his finances had been taken care of.
That same night the Prince of Squillace set off to take possession, in the pope's name, of the lands of the deceased.
That same night, the Prince of Squillace set out to take control, in the pope's name, of the lands owned by the deceased.
CHAPTER 14
The Duke of Valentinois had continued his road towards Citta di Castello and Perugia, and had seized these two towns without striking a blow; for the Vitelli had fled from the former, and the latter had been abandoned by Gian Paolo Baglione with no attempt whatever at resistance. There still remained Siena, where Pandolfo Petrucci was shut up, the only man remaining of all who had joined the league against Caesar.
TheThe Duke of Valentinois had advanced toward Citta di Castello and Perugia, taking both towns without any resistance; the Vitelli had fled from the former, and Gian Paolo Baglione had abandoned the latter without any fight. The only remaining stronghold was Siena, where Pandolfo Petrucci was barricaded, the last person left from those who had allied against Caesar.
But Siena was under the protection of the French. Besides, Siena was not one of the States of the Church, and Caesar had no rights there. Therefore he was content with insisting upon Pandolfo Petrucci's leaving the town and retiring to Lucca, which he accordingly did.
But Siena was under French protection. Besides, Siena wasn’t part of the Papal States, and Caesar had no power there. So, he was okay with just demanding that Pandolfo Petrucci leave the town and move to Lucca, which he did.
Then all on this side being peaceful and the whole of Romagna in subjection, Caesar resolved to return to Rome and help the pope to destroy all that was left of the Orsini.
With everything calm on this side and all of Romagna under control, Caesar decided to return to Rome and help the pope eliminate the remaining Orsini.
This was all the easier because Louis XII, having suffered reverses in the kingdom of Naples, had since then been much concerned with his own affairs to disturb himself about his allies. So Caesar, doing for the neighbourhood of the Holy See the same thing that he had done for the Romagna, seized in succession Vicovaro, Cera, Palombera, Lanzano, and Cervetti; when these conquests were achieved, having nothing else to do now that he had brought the pontifical States into subjection from the frontiers of Naples to those of Venice, he returned to Rome to concert with his father as to the means of converting his duchy into a kingdom.
This was made easier because Louis XII, after dealing with problems in the kingdom of Naples, was too focused on his own issues to think about his allies. So, Caesar, repeating what he had done in the Romagna, took control of Vicovaro, Cera, Palombera, Lanzano, and Cervetti one after the other. With these victories achieved and nothing else to occupy him now that he had secured the papal States from the borders of Naples to those of Venice, he returned to Rome to talk with his father about how to transform his duchy into a kingdom.
Caesar arrived at the right moment to share with Alexander the property of Cardinal Gian Michele, who had just died, having received a poisoned cup from the hands of the pope.
Caesar arrived at just the right time to share with Alexander the estate of Cardinal Gian Michele, who had recently died after drinking a poisoned drink given by the pope.
The future King of Italy found his father preoccupied with a grand project: he had resolved, for the Feast of St. Peter's, to create nine cardinals. What he had to gain from these nominations is as follows:
The future King of Italy found out that his father was occupied with a major project: he had chosen to appoint nine cardinals for the Feast of St. Peter's. Here’s what he aimed to accomplish with these appointments:
First, the cardinals elected would leave all their offices vacant; these offices would fall into the hands of the pope, and he would sell them;
First, the elected cardinals would resign from all their roles; these roles would then be transferred to the pope, who would sell them;
Secondly, each of them would buy his election, more or less dear according to his fortune; the price, left to be settled at the pope's fancy, would vary from 10,000 to 40,000 ducats;
Secondly, each candidate would cover the costs of his election, with the amount based on his wealth; the price, set by the pope's preference, would range from 10,000 to 40,000 ducats;
Lastly, since as cardinals they would by law lose the right of making a will, the pope, in order to inherit from them, had only to poison them: this put him in the position of a butcher who, if he needs money, has only to cut the throat of the fattest sheep in the flock.
Ultimately, since cardinals would legally lose the right to create a will, the pope only needed to poison them to inherit their riches: this placed him in the role of a butcher who, when he needs cash, just has to slaughter the fattest sheep in the herd.
The nomination came to pass: the new cardinals were Giovanni Castellaro Valentine, archbishop of Trani; Francesco Remolini, ambassador from the King of Aragon; Francesco Soderini, bishop of Volterra; Melchiore Copis, bishop of Brissina; Nicolas Fiesque, bishop of Frejus; Francesco di Sprate, bishop of Leome; Adriano Castellense, clerk of the chamber, treasurer-general, and secretary of the briefs; Francesco Boris, bishop of Elva, patriarch of Constantinople, and secretary to the pope; and Giacomo Casanova, protonotary and private chamberlain to His Holiness.
The nominations took place: the new cardinals were Giovanni Castellaro Valentine, the archbishop of Trani; Francesco Remolini, the ambassador from the King of Aragon; Francesco Soderini, the bishop of Volterra; Melchiore Copis, the bishop of Brissina; Nicolas Fiesque, the bishop of Frejus; Francesco di Sprate, the bishop of Leome; Adriano Castellense, the clerk of the chamber, treasurer-general, and secretary of briefs; Francesco Boris, the bishop of Elva, patriarch of Constantinople, and secretary to the pope; and Giacomo Casanova, protonotary and private chamberlain to His Holiness.
The price of their simony paid and their vacated offices sold, the pope made his choice of those he was to poison: the number was fixed at three, one old and two new; the old one was Cardinal Casanova, and the new ones Melchiore Copis and Adriano Castellense, who had taken the name of Adrian of Carneta from that town where he had been born, and where, in the capacity of clerk of the chamber, treasurer-general, and secretary of briefs, he had amassed an immense fortune.
After dealing with their corrupt practices and selling their vacant positions, the pope chose the three people he planned to remove: one was Cardinal Casanova, an older figure, and the other two were newcomers, Melchiore Copis and Adriano Castellense. The latter adopted the name Adrian of Carneta, named after the town where he was born, where he had amassed significant wealth while working as clerk of the chamber, treasurer-general, and secretary of briefs.
So, when all was settled between Caesar and the pope, they invited their chosen guests to supper in a vineyard situated near the Vatican, belonging to the Cardinal of Corneto. In the morning of this day, the 2nd of August, they sent their servants and the steward to make all preparations, and Caesar himself gave the pope's butler two bottles of wine prepared with the white powder resembling sugar whose mortal properties he had so often proved, and gave orders that he was to serve this wine only when he was told, and only to persons specially indicated; the butler accordingly put the wine an a sideboard apart, bidding the waiters on no account to touch it, as it was reserved for the pope's drinking.
Once everything was arranged between Caesar and the pope, they invited their selected guests to dinner at a vineyard near the Vatican owned by the Cardinal of Corneto. On the morning of August 2nd, they sent their servants and the steward to handle all the preparations, and Caesar himself gave the pope's butler two bottles of wine mixed with a white powder that resembled sugar, which he had proven to be deadly many times before. He instructed that the wine should only be served when specifically requested and only to certain guests; the butler then put the wine on a separate sideboard, telling the waitstaff not to touch it, as it was reserved for the pope.
[The poison of the Borgias, say contemporary writers, was of two kinds, powder and liquid. The poison in the form of powder was a sort of white flour, almost impalpable, with the taste of sugar, and called Contarella. Its composition is unknown.
Contemporary writers claim that the Borgias' poison came in two types: powder and liquid. The powdered poison was a fine white substance, almost like flour, with a taste similar to sugar, and it was called Contarella. Its exact composition is unknown.
The liquid poison was prepared, we are told in so strange a fashion that we cannot pass it by in silence. We repeat here what we read, and vouch for nothing ourselves, lest science should give us the lie.
The poison was mixed in such a strange manner that we can't overlook it. We're just repeating what we've read and aren't taking responsibility for it ourselves, just in case science proves us wrong.
A strong dose of arsenic was administered to a boar; as soon as the poison began to take effect, he was hung up by his heels; convulsions supervened, and a froth deadly and abundant ran out from his jaws; it was this froth, collected into a silver vessel and transferred into a bottle hermetically sealed, that made the liquid poison.]
A large amount of arsenic was administered to a boar; as soon as the poison took effect, he was hung by his heels. Convulsions followed, and thick, deadly foam came out of his mouth. This foam, collected in a silver container and placed into a tightly sealed bottle, became the liquid poison.
Towards evening Alexander VI walked from the Vatican leaning on Caesar's arm, and turned his steps towards the vineyard, accompanied by Cardinal Caraffa; but as the heat was great and the climb rather steep, the pope, when he reached the top, stopped to take breath; then putting his hand on his breast, he found that he had left in his bedroom a chain that he always wore round his neck, which suspended a gold medallion that enclosed the sacred host. He owed this habit to a prophecy that an astrologer had made, that so long as he carried about a consecrated wafer, neither steel nor poison could take hold upon him. Now, finding himself without his talisman, he ordered Monsignor Caraffa to hurry back at once to the Vatican, and told him in which part of his room he had left it, so that he might get it and bring it him without delay. Then, as the walk had made him thirsty, he turned to a valet, giving signs with his hand as he did so that his messenger should make haste, and asked for something to drink. Caesar, who was also thirsty, ordered the man to bring two glasses. By a curious coincidence, the butler had just gone back to the Vatican to fetch some magnificent peaches that had been sent that very day to the pope, but which had been forgotten when he came here; so the valet went to the under butler, saying that His Holiness and Monsignors the Duke of Romagna were thirsty and asking for a drink. The under butler, seeing two bottles of wine set apart, and having heard that this wine was reserved for the pope, took one, and telling the valet to bring two glasses on a tray, poured out this wine, which both drank, little thinking that it was what they had themselves prepared to poison their guests.
As evening fell, Alexander VI walked away from the Vatican, leaning on Caesar's arm, and made his way toward the vineyard with Cardinal Caraffa. However, due to the intense heat and the steep climb, the pope paused to catch his breath when he reached the top. He then touched his chest and realized he had forgotten the chain he always wore around his neck, which held a gold medallion containing the sacred host, back in his bedroom. This habit came from a prophecy by an astrologer who said that as long as he carried a consecrated wafer, neither steel nor poison could harm him. Now, without his talisman, he told Monsignor Caraffa to hurry back to the Vatican and pointed out where in his room he had left it for a quick retrieval. Thirsty from the walk, he turned to a servant, gesturing for his messenger to hurry, and asked for something to drink. Caesar, feeling thirsty as well, asked the servant to bring two glasses. Interestingly, the butler had just returned to the Vatican to fetch some exquisite peaches that had arrived that day for the pope but were forgotten earlier. The valet approached the under butler, letting him know that His Holiness and the Duke of Romagna were thirsty and requested drinks. The under butler, noticing two bottles of wine set aside for the pope, took one and instructed the valet to bring two glasses on a tray, pouring the wine for both of them, unaware that it was meant to poison their guests.
Meanwhile Caraffa hurried to the Vatican, and, as he knew the palace well, went up to the pope's bedroom, a light in his hand and attended by no servant. As he turned round a corridor a puff of wind blew out his lamp; still, as he knew the way, he went on, thinking there was no need of seeing to find the object he was in search of; but as he entered the room he recoiled a step, with a cry of terror: he beheld a ghastly apparition; it seemed that there before his eyes, in the middle of the room, between the door and the cabinet which held the medallion, Alexander VI, motionless and livid, was lying on a bier at whose four corners there burned four torches. The cardinal stood still for a moment, his eyes fixed, and his hair standing on end, without strength to move either backward or forward; then thinking it was all a trick of fancy or an apparition of the devil's making, he made the sign of the cross, invoking God's holy name; all instantly vanished, torches, bier, and corpse, and the seeming mortuary chamber was once more in darkness.
Meanwhile, Caraffa hurried to the Vatican. Familiar with the palace, he went straight to the pope's bedroom, carrying a light without any servant accompanying him. As he turned a corner, a gust of wind blew out his lamp; however, he knew the way, so he pressed on, thinking he didn’t need to see to find what he was looking for. But when he entered the room, he recoiled in terror, letting out a scream. Before him, in the center of the room, between the door and the cabinet with the medallion, lay Alexander VI, motionless and pale on a bier, with four torches lit at its corners. The cardinal froze for a moment, his eyes wide and his hair standing on end, unable to move forward or backward. Then, believing it was just an illusion or a devil's trick, he crossed himself, calling on God's holy name. Instantly, everything vanished—the torches, the bier, and the corpse—and the eerie room was plunged back into darkness.
Then Cardinal Caraffa, who has himself recorded this strange event, and who was afterwards Pope Paul IV, entered boldly, and though an icy sweat ran down his brow, he went straight to the cabinet, and in the drawer indicated found the gold chain and the medallion, took them, and hastily went out to give them to the pope. He found supper served, the guests arrived, and His Holiness ready to take his place at table; as soon as the cardinal was in sight, His Holiness, who was very pale, made one step towards him; Caraffa doubled his pace, and handed the medallion to him; but as the pope stretched forth his arm to take it, he fell back with a cry, instantly followed by violent convulsions: an instant later, as he advanced to render his father assistance, Caesar was similarly seized; the effect of the poison had been more rapid than usual, for Caesar had doubled the dose, and there is little doubt that their heated condition increased its activity.
Then Cardinal Caraffa, who personally recorded this bizarre event and later became Pope Paul IV, entered boldly. Despite a cold sweat running down his forehead, he went straight to the cabinet, found the gold chain and the medallion in the specified drawer, took them, and rushed out to deliver them to the pope. He arrived to find the dinner set, guests present, and His Holiness ready to sit at the table. As soon as the cardinal appeared, His Holiness, looking very pale, stepped towards him. Caraffa quickened his pace and handed him the medallion, but as the pope reached out to take it, he shouted and staggered back, followed by violent convulsions. At that moment, as he tried to help his father, Caesar was struck down in the same way. The poison took effect more quickly than usual because Caesar had increased the dose, and it’s likely that their heightened state made it act even faster.
The two stricken men were carried side by side to the Vatican, where each was taken to his own rooms: from that moment they never met again.
The two injured men were taken together to the Vatican, where they were brought to their separate rooms: from then on, they never saw each other again.
As soon as he reached his bed, the pope was seized with a violent fever, which did not give way to emetics or to bleeding; almost immediately it became necessary to administer the last sacraments of the Church; but his admirable bodily constitution, which seemed to have defied old age, was strong enough to fight eight days with death; at last, after a week of mortal agony, he died, without once uttering the name of Caesar or Lucrezia, who were the two poles around which had turned all his affections and all his crimes. His age was seventy-two, and he had reigned eleven years.
As soon as the pope got to his bed, he was hit with a severe fever that wouldn't respond to medicine or bloodletting. Almost right away, it became necessary to give him the last rites of the Church. However, his remarkable health, which seemed to defy aging, was strong enough to fight death for eight days. Finally, after a week of intense suffering, he passed away without ever mentioning Caesar or Lucrezia, the two people who were at the heart of all his love and all his sins. He was seventy-two years old and had reigned for eleven years.
Caesar, perhaps because he had taken less of the fatal beverage, perhaps because the strength of his youth overcame the strength of the poison, or maybe, as some say, because when he reached his own rooms he had swallowed an antidote known only to himself, was not so prostrated as to lose sight for a moment of the terrible position he was in: he summoned his faithful Michelotto, with those he could best count on among his men, and disposed this band in the various rooms that led to his own, ordering the chief never to leave the foot of his bed, but to sleep lying on a rug, his hand upon the handle of his sword.
Caesar, perhaps because he had drunk less of the lethal beverage, or maybe his youthful strength fought off the poison, or as some suggest, he took a secret antidote when he got to his own quarters, was not so out of it that he was unaware of the serious situation he faced: he called for his loyal Michelotto and gathered those he trusted most among his men, placing them in the different rooms that led to his, instructing the chief to always stay at the foot of his bed and to sleep on a rug with his hand resting on the hilt of his sword.
The treatment had been the same for Caesar as for the pope, but in addition to bleeding and emetics strange baths were added, which Caesar had himself asked for, having heard that in a similar case they had once cured Ladislaus, King of Naples. Four posts, strongly welded to the floor and ceiling, were set up in his room, like the machines at which farriers shoe horses; every day a bull was brought in, turned over on his back and tied by his four legs to the four posts; then, when he was thus fixed, a cut was made in his belly a foot and a half long, through which the intestines were drawn out; then Caesar slipped into this living bath of blood: when the bull was dead, Caesar was taken out and rolled up in burning hot blankets, where, after copious perspirations, he almost always felt some sort of relief.
The treatment for Caesar was similar to that for the pope, but in addition to bleeding and emetics, he also included unusual baths that he specifically requested after hearing they had once cured Ladislaus, King of Naples, with a similar technique. Four strong posts were fixed to the floor and ceiling in his room, much like the setups used by farriers to shoe horses. Each day, a bull was brought in, flipped onto its back, and tied by its legs to the four posts. Once secured, a cut about a foot and a half long was made in its belly, and the intestines were pulled out; then Caesar would slip into this living blood bath. When the bull died, Caesar was taken out and wrapped in hot blankets, where he would often feel some kind of relief after sweating profusely.
Every two hours Caesar sent to ask news of his father: he hardly waited to hear that he was dead before, though still at death's door himself, he summoned up all the force of character and presence of mind that naturally belonged to him. He ordered Michelotto to shut the doors of the Vatican before the report of Alexander's decease could spread about the town, and forbade anyone whatsoever to enter the pope's apartments until the money and papers had been removed. Michelotto obeyed at once, went to find Cardinal Casanova, held a dagger at his throat, and made him deliver up the keys of the pope's rooms and cabinets; then, under his guidance, took away two chests full of gold, which perhaps contained 100,000 Roman crowns in specie, several boxes full of jewels, much silver and many precious vases; all these were carried to Caesar's chamber; the guards of the room were doubled; then the doors of the Vatican were once more thrown open, and the death of the pope was proclaimed.
Every two hours, Caesar checked for updates about his father. He barely waited to hear that his father was dead before, even though he was on the verge of death himself, he summoned all his strength and composure. He ordered Michelotto to close the Vatican doors before the news of Alexander's death could spread through the city and instructed that no one be allowed to enter the pope's rooms until the cash and documents were cleared out. Michelotto immediately complied, went to find Cardinal Casanova, held a dagger to his throat, and forced him to hand over the keys to the pope's rooms and cabinets. Then, with his help, he took away two chests full of gold, possibly containing 100,000 Roman crowns in cash, several boxes of jewels, a lot of silver, and many valuable vases; all of these were moved to Caesar's room. The guards in that room were doubled, and then the Vatican's doors were reopened, and the pope's death was announced.
Although the news was expected, it produced none the less a terrible effect in Rome; for although Caesar was still alive, his condition left everyone in suspense: had the mighty Duke of Romagna, the powerful condottiere who had taken thirty towns and fifteen fortresses in five years, been seated, sword in hand, upon his charger, nothing would have been uncertain of fluctuating even for a moment; for, as Caesar afterwards told Macchiavelli, his ambitious soul had provided for all things that could occur on the day of the pope's death, except the one that he should be dying himself; but being nailed down to his bed, sweating off the effects the poison had wrought; so, though he had kept his power of thinking he could no longer act, but must needs wait and suffer the course of events, instead of marching on in front and controlling them.
Even though the news was anticipated, it still had a devastating effect in Rome; because while Caesar was alive, his condition left everyone in suspense. If the powerful Duke of Romagna, the strong leader who had captured thirty towns and fifteen fortresses in five years, had been on his horse with a sword in hand, nothing would have felt uncertain for even a moment. As Caesar later told Machiavelli, his ambitious mind had prepared for everything that could happen on the day of the pope's death, except the one possibility that he would be dying himself. But, stuck in bed and sweating off the effects of the poison, he could no longer act, even though he could still think. Instead, he had to wait and endure whatever happened, rather than moving forward and taking control.
Thus he was forced to regulate his actions no longer by his own plans but according to circumstances. His most bitter enemies, who could press him hardest, were the Orsini and the Colonnas: from the one family he had taken their blood, from the other their goods.
He had to change his actions not according to his own plans but based on the situation. His strongest enemies, the Orsini and the Colonnas, were the ones who could challenge him the most: he had taken their blood from one family and their wealth from the other.
So he addressed himself to those to whom he could return what he had taken, and opened negotiations with the Colonnas.
So he talked to those he could return what he had taken from and began discussions with the Colonnas.
Meanwhile the obsequies of the pope were going forward: the vice-chancellor had sent out orders to the highest among the clergy, the superiors of convents, and the secular orders, not to fail to appear, according to regular custom, on pain of being despoiled of their office and dignities, each bringing his own company to the Vatican, to be present at the pope's funeral; each therefore appeared on the day and at the hour appointed at the pontifical palace, whence the body was to be conveyed to the church of St. Peter's, and there buried. The corpse was found to be abandoned and alone in the mortuary chamber; for everyone of the name of Borgia, except Caesar, lay hidden, not knowing what might come to pass. This was indeed well justified; for Fabio Orsino, meeting one member of the family, stabbed him, and as a sign of the hatred they had sworn to one another, bathed his mouth and hands in the blood.
Meanwhile, preparations for the pope's funeral were in full swing: the vice-chancellor had sent out orders to senior clergy, heads of convents, and secular leaders, telling them to attend as is tradition, with the threat of losing their positions if they didn't, each one bringing their own group to the Vatican for the funeral. Consequently, everyone arrived on the designated day and time at the papal palace, where the body would be taken to St. Peter's Church for burial. The corpse was found left alone in the mortuary; every member of the Borgia family, except Caesar, was hiding, unsure of what would happen next. This caution was more than justified; Fabio Orsino had attacked a family member, stabbing him, and as a sign of their sworn enmity, he soaked his mouth and hands in the blood.
The agitation in Rome was so great, that when the corpse of Alexander VI was about to enter the church there occurred a kind of panic, such as will suddenly arise in times of popular agitation, instantly causing so great a disturbance in the funeral cortege that the guards drew up in battle array, the clergy fled into the sacristy, and the bearers dropped the bier.
The excitement in Rome was so intense that when Alexander VI's body was about to be taken into the church, panic broke out, similar to what happens during times of civil unrest. This caused such a disturbance in the funeral procession that the guards formed a battle line, the clergy hurried into the sacristy, and the pallbearers dropped the casket.
The people, tearing off the pall which covered it, disclosed the corpse, and everyone could see with impunity and close at hand the man who, fifteen days before, had made princes, kings and emperors tremble, from one end of the world to the other.
The crowd tore off the covering, exposing the body, and everyone got a close look at the man who, just fifteen days earlier, had made princes, kings, and emperors tremble across the entire globe.
But in accordance with that religious feeling towards death which all men instinctively feel, and which alone survives every other, even in the heart of the atheist, the bier was taken up again and carried to the foot of the great altar in St. Peter's, where, set on trestles, it was exposed to public view; but the body had become so black, so deformed and swollen, that it was horrible to behold; from its nose a bloody matter escaped, the mouth gaped hideously, and the tongue was so monstrously enlarged that it filled the whole cavity; to this frightful appearance was added a decomposition so great that, although at the pope's funeral it is customary to kiss the hand which bore the Fisherman's ring, not one approached to offer this mark of respect and religious reverence to the representative of God on earth.
But based on that instinctive feeling about death that everyone experiences, which even atheists can’t completely ignore, the coffin was lifted again and taken to the foot of the great altar in St. Peter's, where it was placed on trestles for the public to see. However, the body had turned so black, so distorted, and bloated that it was horrifying to look at. Bloody discharge was oozing from its nose, the mouth was grotesquely open, and the tongue was so enlarged that it filled the entire space. This terrifying sight was further intensified by such extensive decay that, even though it's customary at the pope's funeral to kiss the hand that wore the Fisherman's ring, no one dared to approach and show this sign of respect and religious reverence to the representative of God on earth.
Towards seven o'clock in the evening, when the declining day adds so deep a melancholy to the silence of a church, four porters and two working carpenters carried the corpse into the chapel where it was to be interred, and, lifting it off the catafalque, where it lay in state, put it in the coffin which was to be its last abode; but it was found that the coffin was too short, and the body could not be got in till the legs were bent and thrust in with violent blows; then the carpenters put on the lid, and while one of them sat on the top to force the knees to bend, the others hammered in the nails: amid those Shakespearian pleasantries that sound as the last orison in the ear of the mighty; then, says Tommaso Tommasi, he was placed on the right of the great altar of St. Peter's, beneath a very ugly tomb.
Around seven in the evening, as the fading light brings a deep sadness to the stillness of a church, four porters and two carpenters carried the body into the chapel where it would be buried. They lifted it off the catafalque, where it had been displayed, and placed it in the coffin that would be its final resting place; however, they found that the coffin was too short, and they couldn't fit the body in until they bent the legs and forced them inside. Then, the carpenters put on the lid, with one of them sitting on top to push the knees down while the others hammered in the nails, amidst those Shakespearean jokes that echo like a final prayer for the powerful; then, as Tommaso Tommasi notes, he was laid to rest on the right side of the great altar of St. Peter's, under a rather unattractive tomb.
The next morning this epitaph was found inscribed upon the tomb:
The following morning, this epitaph was found written on the tomb:
"Alexander sells keys, altars, and Christ:He must have purchased them first to be able to sell them.";
that is,
that is,
"Pope Alexander sold Christ, the altars, and the keys:But anyone who buys something can sell it if they want."
CHAPTER 15
From the effect produced at Rome by Alexander's death, one may imagine what happened not only in the whole of Italy but also in the rest of the world: for a moment Europe swayed, for the column which supported the vault of the political edifice had given way, and the star with eyes of flame and rays of blood, round which all things had revolved for the last eleven years, was now extinguished, and for a moment the world, on a sudden struck motionless, remained in silence and darkness.
FromThe effect of Alexander's death in Rome was felt everywhere, not just in Italy but around the world: for a brief moment, Europe was shaken because the foundation of the political system had crumbled. The bright star, once shining and surrounded by rays of blood, which everything had revolved around for the last eleven years, was suddenly extinguished, leaving the world suddenly trapped in silence and darkness.
After the first moment of stupefaction, all who had an injury to avenge arose and hurried to the chase. Sforza retook Pesaro, Bagloine Perugia, Guido and Ubaldo Urbino, and La Rovere Sinigaglia; the Vitelli entered Citta di Castello, the Appiani Piombino, the Orsini Monte Giordano and their other territories; Romagna alone remained impassive and loyal, for the people, who have no concern with the quarrels of the great, provided they do not affect themselves, had never been so happy as under the government of Caesar.
Once the initial shock faded, everyone with a grudge jumped into action and rushed to the fight. Sforza reclaimed Pesaro, Bagloine took Perugia, Guido and Ubaldo captured Urbino, and La Rovere secured Sinigaglia. The Vitelli seized Citta di Castello, the Appiani took Piombino, and the Orsini claimed Monte Giordano along with their other territories. Only Romagna remained calm and loyal, as the people, who were indifferent to the disputes of the powerful as long as they didn’t affect them, had never been happier than under Caesar’s rule.
The Colonnas were pledged to maintain a neutrality, and had been consequently restored to the possession of their castles and the cities of Chiuzano, Capo d'Anno, Frascati, Rocca di Papa, and Nettuno, which they found in a better condition than when they had left them, as the pope had had them embellished and fortified.
The Colonnas were dedicated to remaining neutral, and as a result, they got back their castles and the towns of Chiuzano, Capo d'Anno, Frascati, Rocca di Papa, and Nettuno, which were in better condition than when they had left them, because the pope had upgraded and strengthened them.
Caesar was still in the Vatican with his troops, who, loyal to him in his misfortune, kept watch about the palace, where he was writhing on his bed of pain and roaring like a wounded lion. The cardinals, who had in their first terror fled, each his own way, instead of attending the pope's obsequies, began to assemble once more, some at the Minerva, others around Cardinal Caraffa. Frightened by the troops that Caesar still had, especially since the command was entrusted to Michelotto, they collected all the money they could to levy an army of 2000 soldiers with Charles Taneo at their head, with the title of Captain of the Sacred College. It was then hoped that peace was re-established, when it was heard that Prospero Colonna was coming with 3000 men from the side of Naples, and Fabio Orsino from the side of Viterbo with 200 horse and more than 1000 infantry. Indeed, they entered Rome at only one day's interval one from another, by so similar an ardour were they inspired.
Caesar was still in the Vatican with his troops, who remained loyal to him during his troubles, guarding the palace where he was in pain and roaring like a wounded lion. The cardinals, who had initially panicked and scattered instead of attending the pope's funeral, began to gather again, some at the Minerva and others around Cardinal Caraffa. Frightened by the troops Caesar still had, especially since command was given to Michelotto, they pooled all the money they could to recruit an army of 2,000 soldiers, led by Charles Taneo, who they named Captain of the Sacred College. Hopes for peace were rising when news came that Prospero Colonna was approaching with 3,000 men from Naples, and Fabio Orsino was arriving with 200 cavalry and over 1,000 infantry from Viterbo. They both entered Rome just a day apart, driven by such similar zeal.
Thus there were five armies in Rome: Caesar's army, holding the Vatican and the Borgo; the army of the Bishop of Nicastro, who had received from Alexander the guardianship of the Castle Sant' Angelo and had shut himself up there, refusing to yield; the army of the Sacred College, which was stationed round about the Minerva; the army of Prospero Colonna, which was encamped at the Capitol; and the army of Fabio Orsino, in barracks at the Ripetta.
There were five armies in Rome: Caesar's army, which controlled the Vatican and the Borgo; the army of the Bishop of Nicastro, who had been entrusted with the guardianship of Castle Sant' Angelo by Alexander and had barricaded himself inside, refusing to give up; the army of the Sacred College, based around Minerva; the army of Prospero Colonna, stationed at the Capitol; and the army of Fabio Orsino, located at the Ripetta.
On their side, the Spaniards had advanced to Terracino, and the French to Nepi. The cardinals saw that Rome now stood upon a mine which the least spark might cause to explode: they summoned the ambassadors of the Emperor of Germany, the Kings of France and Spain, and the republic of Venice to raise their voice in the name of their masters. The ambassadors, impressed with the urgency of the situation, began by declaring the Sacred College inviolable: they then ordered the Orsini, the Colonnas, and the Duke of Valentinois to leave Rome and go each his own way.
The Spaniards had moved to Terracino, while the French were in Nepi. The cardinals understood that Rome was now extremely volatile and could erupt with the slightest provocation: they called in the ambassadors from the German Emperor, the Kings of France and Spain, and the Republic of Venice to represent their leaders. The ambassadors, recognizing the urgency of the situation, started by declaring the Sacred College inviolable: they then instructed the Orsini, the Colonnas, and the Duke of Valentinois to leave Rome and go their separate ways.
The Orsini were the first to submit: the next morning their example was followed by the Colonnas. No one was left but Caesar, who said he was willing to go, but desired to make his conditions beforehand: the Vatican was undermined, he declared, and if his demands were refused he and those who came to take him should be blown up together.
The Orsini were the first to surrender: the next morning, the Colonnas followed suit. The only one remaining was Caesar, who claimed he was ready to leave but wanted to establish his conditions first: he asserted that the Vatican was in danger, and if his demands weren’t met, he and anyone who tried to apprehend him would be blown up together.
It was known that his were never empty threats so they came to terms with him.
Everyone recognized that his threats were serious, so they chose to reach an agreement with him.
[Caesar promised to remain ten miles away from Rome the whole time the Conclave lasted, and not to take any action against the town or any other of the Ecclesiastical States: Fabio Orsino and. Prospero Colonna had made the same promises.]
Caesar promised to remain ten miles away from Rome throughout the entire Conclave and not to take any action against the city or any other Ecclesiastical States. Fabio Orsino and Prospero Colonna made the same promises.
[It was agreed that Caesar should quit Rome with his army, artillery, and baggage; and to ensure his not being attacked or molested in the streets, the Sacred College should add to his numbers 400 infantry, who, in case of attack or insult, would fight for him. The Venetian ambassador answered for the Orsini, the Spanish ambassador for the Colonnas, the ambassador of France for Caesar.]
They agreed that Caesar would leave Rome with his army, weapons, and possessions; and to ensure he wouldn't be attacked or disturbed in the streets, the Sacred College would add 400 infantry to his forces, who would fight for him if there was an attack or insult. The Venetian ambassador represented the Orsini, the Spanish ambassador spoke for the Colonnas, and the French ambassador advocated for Caesar.
At the day and hour appointed Caesar sent out his artillery, which consisted of eighteen pieces of cannon, and 400 infantry of the Sacred College, on each of whom he bestowed a ducat: behind the artillery came a hundred chariots escorted by his advance guard.
On the designated day and time, Caesar set up his artillery, which consisted of eighteen cannons, and 400 infantry from the Sacred College, each receiving a ducat from him. Behind the artillery were a hundred chariots, followed by his advance guard.
The duke was carried out of the gate of the Vatican: he lay on a bed covered with a scarlet canopy, supported by twelve halberdiers, leaning forward on his cushions so that no one might see his face with its purple lips and bloodshot eyes: beside him was his naked sword, to show that, feeble as he was, he could use it at need: his finest charger, caparisoned in black velvet embroidered with his arms, walked beside the bed, led by a page, so that Caesar could mount in case of surprise or attack: before him and behind, both right and left, marched his army, their arms in rest, but without beating of drums or blowing of trumpets: this gave a sombre, funereal air to the whole procession, which at the gate of the city met Prospero Colonna awaiting it with a considerable band of men.
The duke was carried out of the Vatican gate on a bed draped with a red canopy, held up by twelve halberdiers. He leaned forward on his cushions so that no one could see his face, which had purple lips and bloodshot eyes. Next to him was his unsheathed sword, a reminder that, even in his weakened state, he could still fight if needed. His best horse, dressed in black velvet and embroidered with his coat of arms, walked alongside the bed, led by a page so he could mount quickly in case of surprise or attack. His army marched in front of him, behind him, and on both sides, weapons at rest but without the sound of drums or trumpets. This created a dark, funereal vibe for the entire procession, which met Prospero Colonna waiting at the city gate with a large group of men.
Caesar thought at first that, breaking his word as he had so often done himself, Prospero Colonna was going to attack him. He ordered a halt, and prepared to mount his horse; but Prospera Colonna, seeing the state he was in, advanced to his bedside alone: he came, against expectation, to offer him an escort, fearing an ambuscade on the part of Fabio Orsino, who had loudly sworn that he would lose his honour or avenge the death of Paolo Orsina, his father. Caesar thanked Colanna, and replied that from the moment that Orsini stood alone he ceased to fear him. Then Colonna saluted the duke, and rejoined his men, directing them towards Albano, while Caesar took the road to Citta Castellana, which had remained loyal.
Caesar initially thought that, breaking his promise as he often did, Prospero Colonna was going to attack him. He called for a stop and got ready to mount his horse; but Prospero Colonna, seeing his state, approached his bedside alone. Contrary to expectations, he came to offer him an escort, concerned about a possible ambush from Fabio Orsino, who had loudly declared he would either lose his honor or avenge the death of his father, Paolo Orsina. Caesar thanked Colonna and replied that once Orsini was alone, he didn’t fear him anymore. Colonna then saluted the duke and rejoined his men, directing them towards Albano, while Caesar took the road to Citta Castellana, which had remained loyal.
When there, Caesar found himself not only master of his own fate but of others as well: of the twenty-two votes he owned in the Sacred College twelve had remained faithful, and as the Conclave was composed in all of thirty-seven cardinals, he with his twelve votes could make the majority incline to whichever side he chose. Accordingly he was courted both by the Spanish and the French party, each desiring the election of a pope of their own nation. Caesar listened, promising nothing and refusing nothing: he gave his twelve votes to Francesco Piccolomini, Cardinal of Siena, one of his father's creatures who had remained his friend, and the latter was elected on the 8th of October and took the name of Pius III.
When he arrived, Caesar realized he was not only in charge of his own fate but also of others'. Out of the twenty-two votes he had in the Sacred College, twelve remained loyal to him. Given that the Conclave consisted of thirty-seven cardinals in total, his twelve votes could influence the majority to whichever side he chose. Therefore, both the Spanish and French factions sought his backing, each wanting to elect a pope from their own country. Caesar listened, promising nothing and rejecting nothing: he cast his twelve votes for Francesco Piccolomini, Cardinal of Siena, who supported his father and had stayed his friend. Piccolomini was elected on October 8th and chose the name Pius III.
Caesar's hopes did not deceive him: Pius III was hardly elected before he sent him a safe-conduct to Rome: the duke came back with 250 men-at-arms, 250 light horse, and 800 infantry, and lodged in his palace, the soldiers camping round about.
Caesar's expectations were correct: Pius III was just elected when he sent him a safe-conduct to Rome. The duke returned with 250 heavy cavalry, 250 light cavalry, and 800 infantry, and took residence in his palace, with the soldiers camping around it.
Meanwhile the Orsini, pursuing their projects of vengeance against Caesar, had been levying many troops at Perugia and the neighbourhood to bring against him to Rome, and as they fancied that France, in whose service they were engaged, was humouring the duke for the sake of the twelve votes which were wanted to secure the election of Cardinal Amboise at the next Conclave, they went over to the service of Spain.
Meanwhile, the Orsini, looking for revenge against Caesar, had been gathering many troops in Perugia and the nearby areas to fight against him in Rome. They thought that France, which they were serving, was trying to win over the duke to secure the twelve votes needed for Cardinal Amboise's election at the upcoming Conclave, so they changed their loyalty to Spain.
Meanwhile Caesar was signing a new treaty with Louis XII, by which he engaged to support him with all his forces, and even with his person, so soon as he could ride, in maintaining his conquest of Naples: Louis, on his side, guaranteed that he should retain possession of the States he still held, and promised his help in recovering those he had lost.
Meanwhile, Caesar was finalizing a new deal with Louis XII, where he promised to support him with all his resources and even join him in person as soon as he was able to ride, to back his conquest of Naples. Louis, for his part, guaranteed that he would maintain control over the territories he still had and promised to help him reclaim those he had lost.
The day when this treaty was made known, Gonzalvo di Cordovo proclaimed to the sound of a trumpet in all the streets of Rome that every Spanish subject serving in a foreign army was at once to break his engagement on pain of being found guilty of high treason.
On the day this treaty was announced, Gonzalvo di Cordovo proclaimed with the sound of a trumpet throughout the streets of Rome that every Spanish citizen serving in a foreign army had to immediately break their commitment, under the threat of being accused of high treason.
This measure robbed Caesar of ten or twelve of his best officers and of nearly 300 men.
This decision cost Caesar ten or twelve of his best officers and nearly 300 soldiers.
Then the Orsini, seeing his army thus reduced, entered Rome, supported by the Spanish ambassador, and summoned Caesar to appear before the pope and the Sacred College and give an account of his crimes.
Then the Orsini, seeing that his army was so weakened, entered Rome, supported by the Spanish ambassador, and demanded that Caesar come before the pope and the Sacred College to explain his actions.
Faithful to his engagements, Pius III replied that in his quality of sovereign prince the duke in his temporal administration was quite independent and was answerable for his actions to God alone.
Staying true to his commitments, Pius III stated that as a sovereign prince, the duke was entirely independent in his secular governance and was answerable for his actions only to God.
But as the pope felt he could not much longer support Caesar against his enemies for all his goodwill, he advised him to try to join the French army, which was still advancing on Naples, in the midst of which he would alone find safety. Caesar resolved to retire to Bracciano, where Gian Giordano Orsino, who had once gone with him to France, and who was the only member of the family who had not declared against him, offered him an asylum in the name of Cardinal d'Amboise: so one morning he ordered his troops to march for this town, and, taking his place in their midst, he left Rome.
Since the pope realized he could no longer support Caesar against his enemies despite his good intentions, he recommended that Caesar try to join the French army, which was still advancing toward Naples, as that was his only option for safety. Caesar chose to retreat to Bracciano, where Gian Giordano Orsino, who had once traveled with him to France and was the only family member who hadn’t betrayed him, offered him shelter on behalf of Cardinal d'Amboise. One morning, he instructed his troops to march to this town, and positioning himself among them, he left Rome.
But though Caesar had kept his intentions quiet, the Orsini had been forewarned, and, taking out all the troops they had by the gate of San Pancracio, they had made a long detour and blocked Caesar's way; so, when the latter arrived at Storta, he found the Orsini's army drawn up awaiting him in numbers exceeding his own by at least one-half.
Even though Caesar kept his plans secret, the Orsini got wind of them. After withdrawing all their troops from the gate of San Pancracio, they took a longer route to cut off Caesar's path. So, when he reached Storta, he found the Orsini's army lined up to face him, outnumbering his own forces by at least fifty percent.
Caesar saw that to come to blows in his then feeble state was to rush on certain destruction; so he ordered his troops to retire, and, being a first-rate strategist, echelonned his retreat so skilfully that his enemies, though they followed, dared not attack him, and he re-entered the pontifical town without the loss of a single man.
Caesar understood that fighting in his weakened condition would result in certain defeat, so he ordered his troops to fall back. As a skilled strategist, he planned his retreat so effectively that even though his enemies chased him, they hesitated to attack. He made it back to the sacred city without losing a single soldier.
This time Caesar went straight to the Vatican, to put himself more directly under the pope's protection; he distributed his soldiers about the palace, so as to guard all its exits. Now the Orsini, resolved to make an end of Caesar, had determined to attack him wheresoever he might be, with no regard to the sanctity of the place: this they attempted, but without success, as Caesar's men kept a good guard on every side, and offered a strong defence.
This time, Caesar went straight to the Vatican to place himself under the pope's protection. He positioned his soldiers around the palace to guard all its entrances and exits. The Orsini, hell-bent on bringing down Caesar, planned to attack him no matter where he was, ignoring the importance of the location. They attempted to execute their plan, but it ultimately failed, as Caesar's men held a strong defense on all sides.
Then the Orsini, not being able to force the guard of the Castle Sant' Angelo, hoped to succeed better with the duke by leaving Rome and then returning by the Torione gate; but Caesar anticipated this move, and they found the gate guarded and barricaded. None the less, they pursued their design, seeking by open violence the vengeance that they had hoped to obtain by craft; and, having surprised the approaches to the gate, set fire to it: a passage gained, they made their way into the gardens of the castle, where they found Caesar awaiting them at the head of his cavalry.
The Orsini, unable to break past the guards at Castle Sant' Angelo, figured they’d have better success with the duke by leaving Rome and then reentering through the Torione gate. However, Caesar anticipated their move, and they discovered the gate was protected and blocked. Still, they pressed on with their plan, turning to open violence to get the revenge they had initially hoped to achieve through cleverness; and after surprising the area around the gate, they set it on fire. Once they created a passage, they made their way into the castle gardens, where they found Caesar waiting for them with his cavalry.
Face to face with danger, the duke had found his old strength: and he was the first to rush upon his enemies, loudly challenging Orsino in the hope of killing him should they meet; but either Orsino did not hear him or dared not fight; and after an exciting contest, Caesar, who was numerically two-thirds weaker than his enemy, saw his cavalry cut to pieces; and after performing miracles of personal strength and courage, was obliged to return to the Vatican. There he found the pope in mortal agony: the Orsini, tired of contending against the old man's word of honour pledged to the duke, had by the interposition of Pandolfo Petrucci, gained the ear of the pope's surgeon, who placed a poisoned plaster upon a wound in his leg.
Faced with danger, the duke found his old strength again: he was the first to charge at his enemies, loudly challenging Orsino, hoping to kill him if they came face to face; but either Orsino didn't hear him or was too scared to fight. After a fierce battle, Caesar, who was outnumbered two-to-one, watched as his cavalry was destroyed. Despite showing incredible strength and bravery, he was forced to retreat to the Vatican. There, he discovered the pope in intense pain: the Orsini, tired of fighting against the old man's promise to the duke, had, with the help of Pandolfo Petrucci, influenced the pope's surgeon, who applied a poisoned plaster to a wound on his leg.
The pope then was actually dying when Caesar, covered with dust and blood, entered his room, pursued by his enemies, who knew no check till they reached the palace walls, behind which the remnant of his army still held their ground.
The pope was actually dying when Caesar, covered in dust and blood, burst into his room, fleeing from his enemies, who showed no mercy until they reached the palace walls, where what remained of his army still stood firm.
Pius III, who knew he was about to die, sat up in his bed, gave Caesar the key of the corridor which led to the Castle of Sant' Angelo, and an order addressed to the governor to admit him and his family, to defend him to the last extremity, and to let him go wherever he thought fit; and then fell fainting on his bed.
Pius III, knowing that he was close to death, sat up in his bed, handed Caesar the key to the corridor leading to the Castle of Sant' Angelo, and instructed the governor to let him and his family in for protection until the very end, and to allow him to go wherever he saw fit; then he fainted and fell back onto his bed.
Caesar took his two daughters by the hand, and, followed by the little dukes of Sermaneta and Nepi, took refuge in the last asylum open to him.
Caesar took his two daughters by the hand and, followed by the young dukes of Sermaneta and Nepi, went to the only safe place left for him.
The same night the pope died: he had reigned only twenty-six days.
The same night the pope died: he had been in office for only twenty-six days.
After his death, Caesar, who had cast himself fully dressed upon his bed, heard his door open at two o'clock in the morning: not knowing what anyone might want of him at such an hour, he raised himself on one elbow and felt for the handle of his sword with his other hand; but at the first glance he recognised in his nocturnal visitor Giuliano della Rovere.
After he died, Caesar, who had thrown himself on his bed fully dressed, heard his door open at two in the morning. Not knowing what anyone would want from him at that hour, he propped himself up on one elbow and reached for the handle of his sword with his other hand. But at first glance, he recognized his nighttime visitor, Giuliano della Rovere.
Utterly exhausted by the poison, abandoned by his troops, fallen as he was from the height of his power, Caesar, who could now do nothing for himself, could yet make a pope: Giuliano della Rovere had come to buy the votes of his twelve cardinals.
Completely exhausted from the poison, abandoned by his soldiers, and having fallen from the height of his power, Caesar, who could no longer take care of himself, still managed to appoint a pope: Giuliano della Rovere had come to buy the votes of his twelve cardinals.
Caesar imposed his conditions, which were accepted.
Caesar outlined his terms, and they were accepted.
If elected, Giuliano della Rovere was to help Caesar to recover his territories in Romagna; Caesar was to remain general of the Church; and Francesco Maria della Rovere, prefect of Rome, was to marry one of Caesar's daughters.
If elected, Giuliano della Rovere would assist Caesar in regaining his lands in Romagna; Caesar would remain the general of the Church; and Francesco Maria della Rovere, the prefect of Rome, would marry one of Caesar's daughters.
On these conditions Caesar sold his twelve cardinals to Giuliano.
Under these circumstances, Caesar sold his twelve cardinals to Giuliano.
The next day, at Giuliano's request, the Sacred College ordered the Orsini to leave Rome for the whole time occupied by the Conclave.
The next day, at Giuliano's request, the Sacred College informed the Orsini to leave Rome for the entire duration of the Conclave.
On the 31st of October 1503, at the first scrutiny, Giuliano della Rovere was elected pope, and took the name of Julius II.
On October 31, 1503, during the first round of voting, Giuliano della Rovere was elected pope and took the name Julius II.
He was scarcely installed in the Vatican when he made it his first care to summon Caesar and give him his former rooms there; then, since the duke was fully restored to health, he began to busy himself with the re-establishment of his affairs, which had suffered sadly of late.
He had just gotten settled in the Vatican when he made it a priority to call Caesar and return his old rooms there; after that, since the duke had fully recovered, he began to focus on getting his affairs back in order, which had struggled recently.
The defeat of his army and his own escape to Sant' Angelo, where he was supposed to be a prisoner, had brought about great changes in Romagna. Sesena was once more in the power of the Church, as formerly it had been; Gian Sforza had again entered Pesaro; Ordelafi had seized Forli; Malatesta was laying claim to Rimini; the inhabitants of Imola had assassinated their governor, and the town was divided between two opinions, one that it should be put into the hands of the Riani, the other, into the hands of the Church; Faenza had remained loyal longer than any other place; but at last, losing hope of seeing Caesar recover his power, it had summoned Francesco, a natural son of Galeotto Manfredi, the last surviving heir of this unhappy family, all whose legitimate descendants had been massacred by Borgia.
The defeat of his army and his escape to Sant' Angelo, where he was meant to be imprisoned, caused major changes in Romagna. Sesena was once again under the Church's control, just like before; Gian Sforza had returned to Pesaro; Ordelafi had taken over Forli; Malatesta was claiming Rimini; the people of Imola had killed their governor, leading to a division in the town—some wanted to hand it over to the Riani, while others preferred the Church; Faenza had stayed loyal longer than anywhere else; but eventually, losing hope that Caesar would regain his power, it called for Francesco, an illegitimate son of Galeotto Manfredi, the last surviving heir of this unfortunate family, whose legitimate descendants had all been killed by Borgia.
It is true that the fortresses of these different places had taken no part in these revolutions, and had remained immutably faithful to the Duke of Valentinois.
It's true that the fortresses in these different areas didn't take part in these revolutions and remained completely loyal to the Duke of Valentinois.
So it was not precisely the defection of these towns, which, thanks to their fortresses, might be reconquered, that was the cause of uneasiness to Caesar and Julius II, it was the difficult situation that Venice had thrust upon them. Venice, in the spring of the same year, had signed a treaty of peace with the Turks: thus set free from her eternal enemy, she had just led her forces to the Romagna, which she had always coveted: these troops had been led towards Ravenna, the farthermost limit of the Papal estates, and put under the command of Giacopo Venieri, who had failed to capture Cesena, and had only failed through the courage of its inhabitants; but this check had been amply compensated by the surrender of the fortresses of Val di Lamane and Faenza, by the capture of Farlimpopoli, and the surrender of Rimini, which Pandolfo Malatesta, its lord, exchanged for the seigniory of Cittadella, in the State of Padua, and for the rank of gentleman of Venice.
It wasn't just the loss of these towns, which could be reclaimed due to their fortifications, that worried Caesar and Julius II; it was the complicated situation that Venice had created for them. In the spring of that same year, Venice signed a peace treaty with the Turks, and free from her long-time rival, she marched her forces into Romagna, a region she had always desired. These troops were headed toward Ravenna, the farthest point of Papal lands, and were put under the command of Giacopo Venieri, who failed to take Cesena only because of the courage of its residents. However, this setback was more than compensated for by the surrender of the fortresses in Val di Lamane and Faenza, the capture of Farlimpopoli, and the surrender of Rimini, which its lord Pandolfo Malatesta exchanged for the lordship of Cittadella in the State of Padua and for the title of gentleman of Venice.
Then Caesar made a proposition to Julius II: this was to make a momentary cession to the Church of his own estates in Romagna, so that the respect felt by the Venetians for the Church might save these towns from their aggressors; but, says Guicciardini, Julius II, whose ambition, so natural in sovereign rulers, had not yet extinguished the remains of rectitude, refused to accept the places, afraid of exposing himself to the temptation of keeping them later on, against his promises.
Then Caesar proposed to Julius II that he temporarily give up his estates in Romagna to the Church, so the Venetians’ respect for the Church could safeguard these towns from their attackers. However, Guicciardini points out that Julius II, whose ambition — like many rulers — hadn't entirely clouded his sense of integrity, declined to accept the territories, worried it would lead him to keep them later, breaking his promises.
But as the case was urgent, he proposed to Caesar that he should leave Rome, embark at Ostia, and cross over to Spezia, where Michelotto was to meet him at the head of 100 men-at-arms and 100 light horse, the only remnant of his magnificent army, thence by land to Ferrara, and from Ferrara to Imola, where, once arrived, he could utter his war-cry so loud that it would be heard through the length and breadth of Romagna.
But since the situation was urgent, he proposed to Caesar that he should leave Rome, sail from Ostia, and head to Spezia, where Michelotto would be waiting for him with 100 soldiers and 100 light cavalry, the remaining part of his formidable army. From there, they would travel by land to Ferrara, and then from Ferrara to Imola, where, once they arrived, he could shout his battle cry so loudly that it would resonate throughout all of Romagna.
This advice being after Caesar's own heart, he accepted it at once.
This advice struck a chord with Caesar, so he agreed to it right away.
The resolution submitted to the Sacred College was approved, and Caesar left for Ostia, accompanied by Bartolommeo della Rovere, nephew of His Holiness.
The resolution brought before the Sacred College was approved, and Caesar headed to Ostia with Bartolommeo della Rovere, His Holiness's nephew.
Caesar at last felt he was free, and fancied himself already on his good charger, a second time carrying war into all the places where he had formerly fought. When he reached Ostia, he was met by the cardinals of Sorrento and Volterra, who came in the name of Julius II to ask him to give up the very same citadels which he had refused three days before: the fact was that the pope had learned in the interim that the Venetians had made fresh aggressions, and recognised that the method proposed by Caesar was the only one that would check them. But this time it was Caesar's turn, to refuse, for he was weary of these tergiversations, and feared a trap; so he said that the surrender asked for would be useless, since by God's help he should be in Romagna before eight days were past. So the cardinals of Sorrento and Volterra returned to Rome with a refusal.
Caesar finally felt free and imagined himself riding his loyal horse again, bringing war to all the places he had fought before. When he arrived in Ostia, he was met by the cardinals from Sorrento and Volterra, who came on behalf of Julius II to ask him to give up the same strongholds he had declined just three days earlier. In the meantime, the pope had learned that the Venetians had launched new attacks and realized that Caesar's approach was the only way to stop them. But this time, it was Caesar's turn to refuse because he was tired of these inconsistencies and worried it was a trap; so he asserted that the surrender they were asking for would be pointless since, with God's help, he would be in Romagna within eight days. The cardinals from Sorrento and Volterra went back to Rome with a refusal.
The next morning, just as Caesar was setting foot on his vessel, he was arrested in the name of Julius II.
The next morning, just as Caesar was getting on his ship, he was arrested in the name of Julius II.
He thought at first that this was the end; he was used to this mode of action, and knew how short was the space between a prison and a tomb; the matter was all the easier in his case, because the pope, if he chose, would have plenty of pretext for making a case against him. But the heart of Julius was of another kind from his; swift to anger, but open to clemency; so, when the duke came back to Rome guarded, the momentary irritation his refusal had caused was already calmed, and the pope received him in his usual fashion at his palace, and with his ordinary courtesy, although from the beginning it was easy for the duke to see that he was being watched. In return for this kind reception, Caesar consented to yield the fortress of Cesena to the pope, as being a town which had once belonged to the Church, and now should return; giving the deed, signed by Caesar, to one of his captains, called Pietro d'Oviedo, he ordered him to take possession of the fortress in the name of the Holy See. Pietro obeyed, and starting at once for Cesena, presented himself armed with his warrant before Don Diego Chinon; a noble condottiere of Spain, who was holding the fortress in Caesar's name. But when he had read over the paper that Pietro d'Oviedo brought, Don Diego replied that as he knew his lord and master was a prisoner, it would be disgraceful in him to obey an order that had probably been wrested from him by violence, and that the bearer deserved to die for undertaking such a cowardly office. He therefore bade his soldiers seize d'Oviedo and fling him down from the top of the walls: this sentence was promptly executed.
Initially, he thought this was the end; he recognized the situation and knew how closely a prison resembled a tomb. It was even easier for him because the pope could easily find reasons to turn against him if he chose to. However, Julius had a different temperament; he could be quick to anger but was also generous in forgiveness. So when the duke returned to Rome under guard, the slight annoyance his refusal had caused was already forgotten, and the pope greeted him in his usual way at his palace, with his typical politeness, although it was clear from the beginning that the duke was being watched. In exchange for this warm welcome, Caesar agreed to return the fortress of Cesena to the pope, as it was a town that had once belonged to the Church and should be restored. He signed the deed and handed it to one of his captains, Pietro d'Oviedo, instructing him to take possession of the fortress on behalf of the Holy See. Pietro obliged and headed for Cesena, presenting himself armed with his order to Don Diego Chinon, a noble Spanish mercenary who was holding the fortress in Caesar's name. However, after reading the document Pietro d'Oviedo brought, Don Diego replied that since he knew his lord was a prisoner, it would be shameful for him to follow an order that had likely been secured through force, and that the messenger deserved to die for undertaking such a cowardly task. He then commanded his soldiers to capture d'Oviedo and throw him from the top of the walls: this verdict was swiftly executed.
This mark of fidelity might have proved fatal to Caesar: when the pope heard how his messenger had been treated, he flew into such a rage that the prisoner thought a second time that his hour was come; and in order to receive his liberty, he made the first of those new propositions to Julius II, which were drawn up in the form of a treaty and sanctioned by a bull. By these arrangements, the Duke of Valentinois was bound to hand over to His Holiness, within the space of forty days, the fortresses of Cesena and Bertinoro, and authorise the surrender of Forli. This arrangement was guaranteed by two bankers in Rome who were to be responsible for 15,000 ducats, the sum total of the expenses which the governor pretended he had incurred in the place on the duke's account. The pope on his part engaged to send Caesar to Ostia under the sole guard of the Cardinal of Santa Croce and two officers, who were to give him his full liberty on the very day when his engagements were fulfilled: should this not happen, Caesar was to be taken to Rome and imprisoned in the Castle of Sant' Angelo. In fulfilment of this treaty, Caesar went down the Tiber as far as Ostia, accompanied by the pope's treasurer and many of his servants. The Cardinal of Santa Croce followed, and the next day joined him there.
This act of loyalty could have cost Caesar his life: when the pope found out how his messenger had been treated, he became so enraged that the prisoner again feared for his life. To secure his release, he made his first new proposals to Julius II, which were formatted like a treaty and approved by a papal bull. Under this agreement, the Duke of Valentinois had to hand over the fortresses of Cesena and Bertinoro to His Holiness within forty days and allow the surrender of Forli. This deal was supported by two bankers in Rome, who were responsible for 15,000 ducats, the total expenses that the governor claimed he had incurred for the duke's benefit. The pope agreed to send Caesar to Ostia under the sole protection of the Cardinal of Santa Croce and two officers, who were to grant him full freedom on the day he fulfilled his obligations: if this didn't happen, Caesar would be taken to Rome and imprisoned in the Castle of Sant' Angelo. To carry out this treaty, Caesar traveled down the Tiber to Ostia, accompanied by the pope's treasurer and several of his servants. The Cardinal of Santa Croce followed him and joined him the next day.
But as Caesar feared that Julius II might keep him a prisoner, in spite of his pledged word, after he had yielded up the fortresses, he asked, through the mediation of Cardinals Borgia and Remolina, who, not feeling safe at Rome, had retired to Naples, for a safe-conduct to Gonzalva of Cordova, and for two ships to take him there; with the return of the courier the safe-conduct arrived, announcing that the ships would shortly follow.
Caesar was concerned that Julius II might imprison him despite his promise after he surrendered the fortresses. So, with the help of Cardinals Borgia and Remolina—who felt unsafe in Rome and had gone to Naples—he requested safe passage to Gonzalva of Cordova, along with two ships to take him there. When the courier returned, he brought news that the safe passage had been granted, stating that the ships would be arriving soon.
In the midst of all this, the Cardinal of Santa Croce, learning that by the duke's orders the governors of Cesena and Bertinoro had surrendered their fortresses to the captains of His Holiness, relaxed his rigour, and knowing that his prisoner would some day or other be free, began to let him go out without a guard. Then Caesar, feeling some fear lest when he started with Gonzalvo's ships the same thing might happen as on the occasion of his embarking on the pope's vessel—that is, that he might be arrested a second time—concealed himself in a house outside the town; and when night came on, mounting a wretched horse that belonged to a peasant, rode as far as Nettuno, and there hired a little boat, in which he embarked for Monte Dragone, and thence gained Naples. Gonzalvo received him with such joy that Caesar was deceived as to his intention, and this time believed that he was really saved. His confidence was redoubled when, opening his designs to Gonzalvo, and telling him that he counted upon gaining Pisa and thence going on into Romagna, Ganzalvo allowed him to recruit as many soldiers at Naples as he pleased, promising him two ships to embark with. Caesar, deceived by these appearances, stopped nearly six weeks at Naples, every day seeing the Spanish governor and discussing his plans. But Gonzalvo was only waiting to gain time to tell the King of Spain that his enemy was in his hands; and Caesar actually went to the castle to bid Gonzalvo good-bye, thinking he was just about to start after he had embarked his men on the two ships. The Spanish governor received him with his accustomed courtesy, wished him every kind of prosperity, and embraced him as he left; but at the door of the castle Caesar found one of Gonzalvo's captains, Nuno Campeja by name, who arrested him as a prisoner of Ferdinand the Catholic. Caesar at these words heaved a deep sigh, cursing the ill luck that had made him trust the word of an enemy when he had so often broken his own.
Amidst everything, the Cardinal of Santa Croce found out that, by the duke's orders, the governors of Cesena and Bertinoro had surrendered their fortresses to the captains of His Holiness. He eased up on the strictness and, realizing that his prisoner would eventually be released, began to allow him to go out without a guard. Then Caesar, worried that he might be arrested again when he boarded Gonzalvo's ships, like when he got onto the pope's vessel, hid in a house outside the town. When night came, he rode a rundown horse owned by a peasant as far as Nettuno, where he rented a small boat and set sail for Monte Dragone, then made his way to Naples. Gonzalvo welcomed him with such excitement that Caesar was fooled into thinking he was genuinely safe this time. His confidence grew when he shared his plans with Gonzalvo, explaining that he aimed to take Pisa and then move into Romagna. Gonzalvo let him recruit as many soldiers in Naples as he wanted, promising him two ships to set sail with. Misled by these appearances, Caesar stayed in Naples for nearly six weeks, meeting with the Spanish governor daily to discuss his plans. But Gonzalvo was just waiting for the right moment to inform the King of Spain that his enemy was in his grasp. Caesar even went to the castle to say goodbye to Gonzalvo, believing he was about to leave after boarding his men onto the two ships. The Spanish governor greeted him with his usual politeness, wished him much success, and embraced him as he left. However, at the castle door, Caesar ran into one of Gonzalvo's captains, Nuno Campeja, who arrested him as a prisoner of Ferdinand the Catholic. At those words, Caesar sighed deeply, cursing his bad luck for trusting the word of an enemy who had betrayed him so many times before.
He was at once taken to the castle, where the prison gate closed behind him, and he felt no hope that anyone would come to his aid; for the only being who was devoted to him in this world was Michelotto, and he had heard that Michelotto had been arrested near Pisa by order of Julius II. While Caesar was being taken to prison an officer came to him to deprive him of the safe-conduct given him by Gonzalvo.
He was quickly taken to the castle, where the prison gate shut behind him, and he felt no hope that anyone would rescue him; the only person who cared for him in this world was Michelotto, and he had learned that Michelotto had been arrested near Pisa by orders from Julius II. While Caesar was being taken to prison, an officer arrived to cancel the safe-conduct that Gonzalvo had provided him.
The day after his arrest, which occurred on the 27th of May, 1504, Caesar was taken on board a ship, which at once weighed anchor and set sail for Spain: during the whole voyage he had but one page to serve him, and as soon as he disembarked he was taken to the castle of Medina del Campo.
The day after his arrest on May 27, 1504, Caesar was put on a ship that quickly set sail for Spain. During the entire journey, he only had one servant to help him, and when he got off the ship, he was taken to the castle of Medina del Campo.
Ten years later, Gonzalvo, who at that time was himself proscribed, owned to Loxa on his dying bed that now, when he was to appear in the presence of God, two things weighed cruelly on his conscience: one was his treason to Ferdinand, the other his breach of faith towards Caesar.
Ten years later, Gonzalvo, who was still living in exile at that time, confessed to Loxa on his deathbed that now, as he was about to meet God, two things burdened his conscience: one was his betrayal of Ferdinand, and the other was his broken trust with Caesar.
CHAPTER 16
Caesar was in prison for two years, always hoping that Louis XII would reclaim him as peer of the kingdom of France; but Louis, much disturbed by the loss of the battle of Garigliano, which robbed him of the kingdom of Naples, had enough to do with his own affairs without busying himself with his cousin's. So the prisoner was beginning to despair, when one day as he broke his bread at breakfast he found a file and a little bottle containing a narcotic, with a letter from Michelotto, saying that he was out of prison and had left Italy for Spain, and now lay in hiding with the Count of Benevento in the neighbouring village: he added that from the next day forward he and the count would wait every night on the road between the fortress and the village with three excellent horses; it was now Caesar's part to do the best he could with his bottle and file. When the whole world had abandoned the Duke of Romagna he had been remembered by a sbirro.
CaesarHe was in prison for two years, always hoping that Louis XII would recognize him as a noble of the kingdom of France; but Louis, deeply troubled by losing the Battle of Garigliano, which cost him the kingdom of Naples, had too much on his mind to think about his cousin. Just when the prisoner was starting to lose hope, one morning while breaking his bread at breakfast, he found a file and a small bottle containing a sleeping potion, along with a letter from Michelotto. The letter said Michelotto was out of prison and had fled Italy for Spain, where he was hiding with the Count of Benevento in a nearby village. He mentioned that starting the next night, he and the Count would wait on the road between the fortress and the village with three excellent horses. It was now up to Caesar to make the best use of his bottle and file. When the whole world had forgotten the Duke of Romagna, he had still been remembered by a sbirro.
The prison where he had been shut up for two years was so hateful to Caesar that he lost not a single moment: the same day he attacked one of the bars of a window that looked out upon an inner court, and soon contrived so to manipulate it that it would need only a final push to come out. But not only was the window nearly seventy feet from the ground, but one could only get out of the court by using an exit reserved for the governor, of which he alone had the key; also this key never left him; by day it hung at his waist, by night it was under his pillow: this then was the chief difficulty.
The prison where Caesar had been held for two years was so miserable for him that he wasted no time: the very same day, he started working on one of the bars of a window that faced an inner courtyard and quickly figured out how to adjust it so that it would only need one final push to come out. However, not only was the window almost seventy feet up, but the only way to exit the courtyard was through an exit reserved for the governor, who was the only one with the key; and this key was always in his possession; during the day, it hung from his waist, and at night, it was under his pillow: this was the main obstacle.
But prisoner though he was, Caesar had always been treated with the respect due to his name and rank: every day at the dinner-hour he was conducted from the room that served as his prison to the governor, who did the honours of the table in a grand and courteous fashion. The fact was that Dan Manuel had served with honour under King Ferdinand, and therefore, while he guarded Caesar rigorously, according to orders, he had a great respect for so brave a general, and took pleasure in listening to the accounts of his battles. So he had often insisted that Caesar should not only dine but also breakfast with him; happily the prisoner, yielding perhaps to some presentiment, had till now refused this favour. This was of great advantage to him, since, thanks to his solitude, he had been able to receive the instruments of escape sent by Michelotto. The same day he received them, Caesar, on going back to his room, made a false step and sprained his foot; at the dinner-hour he tried to go down, but he pretended to be suffering so cruelly that he gave it up. The governor came to see him in his room, and found him stretched upon the bed.
Even though he was a prisoner, Caesar was always treated with the respect due to his name and rank. Every day at dinner, he was taken from his prison room to the governor, who hosted the meal in a grand and courteous manner. The truth was that Dan Manuel had served honorably under King Ferdinand, and while he strictly followed orders in guarding Caesar, he had great respect for such a brave general and enjoyed listening to his battle stories. He often insisted that Caesar should not only have dinner but also breakfast with him; fortunately, the prisoner, perhaps sensing something, had thus far declined this offer. This turned out to be very helpful for him since, thanks to his solitude, he was able to receive the escape tools sent by Michelotto. On the same day he got them, Caesar, upon returning to his room, misstepped and twisted his foot; at dinner time, he tried to go down but pretended to be in such severe pain that he gave it up. The governor came to check on him in his room and found him lying on the bed.
The day after, he was no better; the governor had his dinner sent in, and came to see him, as on the night before; he found his prisoner so dejected and gloomy in his solitude that he offered to come and sup with him: Caesar gratefully accepted.
The next day, he still wasn't doing any better; the governor sent in his dinner and came to visit him, just like the night before. He found his prisoner looking so dejected and unhappy in his isolation that he offered to join him for dinner: Caesar gratefully accepted.
This time it was the prisoner who did the honours: Caesar was charmingly courteous; the governor thought he would profit by this lack of restraint to put to him certain questions as to the manner of his arrest, and asked him as an Old Castilian, for whom honour is still of some account, what the truth really was as to Gonzalvo's and Ferdinand's breach of faith, with him. Caesar appeared extremely inclined to give him his entire confidence, but showed by a sign that the attendants were in the way. This precaution appeared quite natural, and the governor took no offense, but hastened to send them all away, so as to be sooner alone with his companion. When the door was shut, Caesar filled his glass and the governor's, proposing the king's health: the governor honoured the toast: Caesar at once began his tale; but he had scarcely uttered a third part of it when, interesting as it was, the eyes of his host shut as though by magic, and he slid under the table in a profound sleep.
This time, the prisoner took the initiative: Caesar was remarkably polite; the governor thought he could use this openness to ask a few questions about his arrest. He asked Caesar, as an Old Castilian who still values honor, what the real story was regarding Gonzalvo's and Ferdinand's betrayal. Caesar seemed willing to trust him completely but noted that the attendants were in the way. This caution seemed perfectly reasonable, and the governor wasn't offended. He quickly sent everyone away so he could be alone with his guest. Once the door was closed, Caesar filled both his glass and the governor's and proposed a toast to the king's health; the governor raised his glass in appreciation of the toast. Caesar immediately began his story, but he had barely shared a third of it when, despite its interest, the host's eyes closed as if by magic, and he slipped under the table into a deep sleep.
After half a hour had passed, the servants, hearing no noise, entered and found the two, one on the table, the other under it: this event was not so extraordinary that they paid any great attention to it: all they did was to carry Don Manuel to his room and lift Caesar on the bed; then they put away the remnant of the meal for the next day's supper, shut the door very carefully, and left their prisoner alone.
After half an hour, the servants, hearing no noise, came in and found the two—one on the table and the other underneath it. This situation wasn’t unusual enough for them to pay much attention. All they did was carry Don Manuel to his room and lift Caesar onto the bed. Then, they packed up the leftovers from the meal for the next day's dinner, carefully closed the door, and left their prisoner alone.
Caesar stayed for a minute motionless and apparently plunged in the deepest sleep; but when he had heard the steps retreating, he quietly raised his head, opened his eyes, slipped off the bed, walked to the door, slowly indeed, but not to all appearance feeling the accident of the night before, and applied his ear for some minutes to the keyhole; then lifting his head with an expression of indescribable pride, he wiped his brow with his hand, and for the first time since his guards went out, breathed freely with full-drawn breaths.
Caesar stayed quiet for a moment, appearing to be in a deep sleep. But as soon as he heard the footsteps disappear, he slowly lifted his head, opened his eyes, got off the bed, and walked to the door. He moved slowly, but he didn’t seem affected by what had happened the night before. He pressed his ear to the keyhole for a few minutes. Then, raising his head with an expression of indescribable pride, he wiped his brow with his hand and, for the first time since his guards left, took deep, steady breaths.
There was no time to lose: his first care was to shut the door as securely on the inside as it was already shut on the outside, to blow out the lamp, to open the window, and to finish sawing through the bar. When this was done, he undid the bandages on his leg, took down the window and bed curtains, tore them into strips, joined the sheets, table napkins and cloth, and with all these things tied together end to end, formed a rope fifty or sixty feet long, with knots every here and there. This rope he fixed securely to the bar next to the one he had just cut through; then he climbed up to the window and began what was really the hardest part of his perilous enterprise, clinging with hands and feet to this fragile support. Luckily he was both strong and skilful, and he went down the whole length of the rope without accident; but when he reached the end and was hanging on the last knot, he sought in vain to touch the ground with his feet; his rope was too short.
There was no time to waste: his first priority was to securely shut the door from the inside, just like it was already closed on the outside, blow out the lamp, open the window, and finish sawing through the bar. Once that was done, he removed the bandages from his leg, took down the window and bed curtains, ripped them into strips, combined the sheets, table napkins, and cloth, and tied everything together end to end, creating a rope around fifty or sixty feet long, with knots spaced along it. He securely fastened this rope to the bar next to the one he had just cut through; then he climbed up to the window and started what was truly the toughest part of his risky plan, gripping this fragile support with his hands and feet. Luckily, he was both strong and skilled, and he descended the entire length of the rope without any issues; however, when he reached the bottom and was hanging on the last knot, he tried unsuccessfully to touch the ground with his feet; the rope was too short.
The situation was a terrible one: the darkness of the night prevented the fugitive from seeing how far off he was from the ground, and his fatigue prevented him from even attempting to climb up again. Caesar put up a brief prayer, whether to God or Satan he alone could say; then letting go the rope, he dropped from a height of twelve or fifteen feet.
The situation was extremely serious: the night’s darkness prevented the fugitive from seeing how far he was from the ground, and his fatigue stopped him from attempting to climb back up. Caesar quickly prayed, unsure if it was to God or the Devil; then, letting go of the rope, he fell from a height of twelve to fifteen feet.
The danger was too great for the fugitive to trouble about a few trifling contusions: he at once rose, and guiding himself by the direction of his window, he went straight to the little door of exit; he then put his hand into the pocket of his doublet, and a cold sweat damped his brow; either he had forgotten and left it in his room or had lost it in his fall; anyhow, he had not the key.
The danger was too great for the fugitive to think about a few minor bruises: he quickly got up and, using the direction of his window as a guide, went straight for the small exit door. Then he reached into his coat pocket, and a cold sweat broke out on his forehead; either he had left it in his room or lost it during his fall; either way, he didn’t have the key.
But summoning his recollections, he quite gave up the first idea for the second, which was the only likely one: again he crossed the court, looking for the place where the key might have fallen, by the aid of the wall round a tank on which he had laid his hand when he got up; but the object of search was so small and the night so dark that there was little chance of getting any result; still Caesar sought for it, for in this key was his last hope: suddenly a door was opened, and a night watch appeared, preceded by two torches. Caesar for the moment thought he was lost, but remembering the tank behind him, he dropped into it, and with nothing but his head above water anxiously watched the movements of the soldiers, as they advanced beside him, passed only a few feet away, crossed the court, and then disappeared by an opposite door. But short as their luminous apparition had been, it had lighted up the ground, and Caesar by the glare of the torches had caught the glitter of the long-sought key, and as soon as the door was shut behind the men, was again master of his liberty.
As he thought back on the situation, he completely abandoned his first idea for the second one, which was the only possible solution: he crossed the courtyard again, looking for the place where the key might have fallen, guided by the wall around a tank he had touched when he got up; however, the item he was looking for was so small and the night so dark that the chances of finding it were slim; still, Caesar kept searching for it, as this key was his last hope: suddenly, a door swung open, and a night watch appeared, carrying two torches. For a moment, Caesar thought he was finished, but remembering the tank behind him, he jumped into it, keeping only his head above water and anxiously watching the soldiers as they moved beside him, passing just a few feet away, crossing the courtyard, and then disappearing through a door on the other side. But even though their brief presence was quick, it lit up the ground, and Caesar, in the light of the torches, spotted the long-sought key. As soon as the door closed behind the men, he regained his freedom.
Half-way between the castle and the village two cavaliers and a led horse were waiting for him: the two men were Michelotto and the Count of Benevento. Caesar sprang upon the riderless horse, pressed with fervour the hand of the count and the sbirro; then all three galloped to the frontier of Navarre, where they arrived three days later, and were honourably received by the king, Jean d'Albret, the brother of Caesar's wife.
Halfway between the castle and the village, two horsemen and a riderless horse waited for him: the two men were Michelotto and the Count of Benevento. Caesar jumped onto the riderless horse, shook hands warmly with the Count and the sbirro; then they all rode off at full speed to the border of Navarre, where they arrived three days later and received a warm welcome from King Jean d'Albret, the brother of Caesar's wife.
From Navarre he thought to pass into France, and from France to make an attempt upon Italy, with the aid of Louis XII; but during Caesar's detention in the castle of Medina del Campo, Louis had made peace with the King of Spain; and when he heard of Caesar's flight; instead of helping him, as there was some reason to expect he would, since he was a relative by marriage, he took away the duchy of Valentinois and also his pension. Still, Caesar had nearly 200,000 ducats in the charge of bankers at Genoa; he wrote asking for this sum, with which he hoped to levy troops in Spain and in Navarre, and make an attempt upon Pisa: 500 men, 200,000 ducats, his name and his word were more than enough to save him from despair.
From Navarre, he planned to move into France and then try to invade Italy with the help of Louis XII. However, while Caesar was imprisoned in the castle of Medina del Campo, Louis made peace with the King of Spain. When he found out about Caesar's escape, instead of helping him as one might expect because of their family connection through marriage, he took away the Duchy of Valentinois and his pension. Nonetheless, Caesar had nearly 200,000 ducats with bankers in Genoa. He wrote to request this amount, hoping to gather troops in Spain and Navarre and launch an attack on Pisa: 500 men, 200,000 ducats, his name, and his promise were more than enough to keep him from falling into despair.
The bankers denied the deposit.
The bankers rejected the deposit.
Caesar was at the mercy of his brother-in-law.
Caesar was at the mercy of his brother-in-law.
One of the vassals of the King of Navarre, named Prince Alarino, had just then revolted: Caesar then took command of the army which Jean d'Albret was sending out against him, followed by Michelotto, who was as faithful in adversity as ever before. Thanks to Caesar's courage and skilful tactics, Prince Alarino was beaten in a first encounter; but the day after his defeat he rallied his army, and offered battle about three o'clock in the afternoon. Caesar accepted it.
One of the King of Navarre's vassals, Prince Alarino, had just revolted. Caesar then took command of the army that Jean d'Albret was sending against him, along with Michelotto, who remained loyal during tough times as always. Thanks to Caesar's bravery and smart strategies, Prince Alarino was defeated in their first battle. However, the day after his loss, he regrouped his army and challenged them to a fight around three o'clock in the afternoon. Caesar accepted the challenge.
For nearly four hours they fought obstinately on both sides; but at length, as the day was going down, Caesar proposed to decide the issue by making a charge himself, at the head of a hundred men-at-arms, upon a body of cavalry which made his adversary's chief force. To his great astonishment, this cavalry at the first shock gave way and took flight in the direction of a little wood, where they seemed to be seeking refuge. Caesar followed close on their heels up to the edge of the forest; then suddenly the pursued turned right about face, three or four hundred archers came out of the wood to help them, and Caesar's men, seeing that they had fallen into an ambush, took to their heels like cowards, and abandoned their leader.
For nearly four hours, both sides fought tenaciously. But as the day was winding down, Caesar proposed that he lead a charge himself, at the front of a hundred soldiers, against a group of cavalry that was the main force of his opponent. To his surprise, this cavalry initially broke and fled toward a nearby woods, where they seemed to be seeking refuge. Caesar chased them right to the edge of the forest; then suddenly, the fleeing soldiers turned around, and three or four hundred archers came out from the woods to back them up. Realizing they had walked into an ambush, Caesar's men panicked and ran off like cowards, leaving their leader behind.
Left alone, Caesar would not budge one step; possibly he had had enough of life, and his heroism was rather the result of satiety than courage: however that may be, he defended himself like a lion; but, riddled with arrows and bolts, his horse at last fell, with Caesar's leg under him. His adversaries rushed upon him, and one of them thrusting a sharp and slender iron pike through a weak place in his armour, pierced his breast; Caesar cursed God and died.
Left alone, Caesar wouldn’t budge; maybe he was just tired of life, and his bravery came more from exhaustion than true courage. Still, he fought back fiercely like a lion; but, covered in arrows and bolts, his horse eventually went down, pinning Caesar’s leg beneath it. His enemies rushed at him, and one of them drove a sharp, narrow iron spear through a gap in his armor, stabbing his chest. Caesar cursed God and died.
But the rest of the enemy's army was defeated, thanks to the courage of Michelotto, who fought like a valiant condottiere, but learned, on returning to the camp in the evening, from those who had fled that they had abandoned Caesar and that he had never reappeared. Then only too certain, from his master's well-known courage, that disaster had occurred, he desired to give one last proof of his devotion by not leaving his body to the wolves and birds of prey. Torches were lighted, for it was dark, and with ten or twelve of those who had gone with Caesar as far as the little wood, he went to seek his master. On reaching the spot they pointed out, he beheld five men stretched side by side; four of them were dressed, but the fifth had been stripped of his clothing and lay completely naked. Michelotto dismounted, lifted the head upon his knees, and by the light of the torches recognised Caesar.
But the rest of the enemy's army was defeated, thanks to Michelotto's bravery, who fought like a fearless mercenary. However, when he returned to the camp in the evening, he learned from those who had fled that they had left Caesar behind and that he had never come back. Realizing, from his master's well-known courage, that something terrible had happened, he wanted to demonstrate one last act of loyalty by not leaving his body for the wolves and birds of prey. They lit torches since it was dark, and with ten or twelve of those who had accompanied Caesar as far as the small woods, he set out to find his master. Upon reaching the spot they pointed out, he saw five men lying side by side; four of them were dressed, but the fifth had been stripped of his clothing and lay completely naked. Michelotto dismounted, cradled the man's head on his knees, and recognized Caesar by the light of the torches.
Thus fell, on the 10th of March, 1507, on an unknown field, near an obscure village called Viane, in a wretched skirmish with the vassal of a petty king, the man whom Macchiavelli presents to all princes as the model of ability, diplomacy, and courage.
On March 10, 1507, in an unmarked field near a small village called Viane, during a difficult skirmish with the servant of a minor king, fell the man whom Machiavelli presents to all rulers as the perfect example of skill, diplomacy, and courage.
As to Lucrezia, the fair Duchess of Ferrara, she died full of years, and honours, adored as a queen by her subjects, and sung as a goddess by Ariosto and by Bembo.
Lucrezia, the beautiful Duchess of Ferrara, passed away at an old age, honored and respected, loved like a queen by her people and celebrated like a goddess by Ariosto and Bembo.
EPILOGUE
There was once in Paris, says Boccaccio, a brave and good merchant named Jean de Civigny, who did a great trade in drapery, and was connected in business with a neighbour and fellow-merchant, a very rich man called Abraham, who, though a Jew, enjoyed a good reputation. Jean de Civigny, appreciating the qualities of the worthy Israelite; feared lest, good man as he was, his false religion would bring his soul straight to eternal perdition; so he began to urge him gently as a friend to renounce his errors and open his eyes to the Christian faith, which he could see for himself was prospering and spreading day by day, being the only true and good religion; whereas his own creed, it was very plain, was so quickly diminishing that it would soon disappear from the face of the earth. The Jew replied that except in his own religion there was no salvation, that he was born in it, proposed to live and die in it, and that he knew nothing in the world that could change his opinion. Still, in his proselytising fervour Jean would not think himself beaten, and never a day passed but he demonstrated with those fair words the merchant uses to seduce a customer, the superiority of the Christian religion above the Jewish; and although Abraham was a great master of Mosaic law, he began to enjoy his friend's preaching, either because of the friendship he felt for him or because the Holy Ghost descended upon the tongue of the new apostle; still obstinate in his own belief, he would not change. The more he persisted in his error, the more excited was Jean about converting him, so that at last, by God's help, being somewhat shaken by his friend's urgency, Abraham one day said—
ThereOnce in Paris, Boccaccio tells us, there was a brave and good merchant named Jean de Civigny who ran a successful drapery business and had trade connections with a wealthy neighbor named Abraham. Although Abraham was Jewish, he had a solid reputation. Jean de Civigny recognized the virtues of his worthy Israelite friend and worried that, despite being a good man, Abraham's faith might lead his soul to eternal damnation. So, he gently encouraged him, as a true friend would, to abandon his mistakes and embrace Christianity, which he viewed as the only true and good religion, thriving and growing every day. He pointed out that Abraham's own faith was clearly fading and would soon disappear from the earth. Abraham replied that salvation could only be found in his own religion, that he was born into it, intended to live and die by it, and that nothing in the world could change his mind. Still determined to convert him, Jean refused to give up. Each day, he used persuasive language, like merchants do to attract customers, to highlight Christianity's superiority over Judaism. Even though Abraham was well-versed in Mosaic law, he began to appreciate his friend's preaching, whether out of friendship or because Jean's words were inspired by the Holy Spirit. Nonetheless, he remained firm in his beliefs. The more Jean pressed him, the more determined he became to convert Abraham, until finally, with God's help, Abraham, feeling somewhat swayed by his friend's persistence, said one day—
"Listen, Jean: since you have it so much at heart that I should be converted, behold me disposed to satisfy you; but before I go to Rome to see him whom you call God's vicar on earth, I must study his manner of life and his morals, as also those of his brethren the cardinals; and if, as I doubt not, they are in harmony with what you preach, I will admit that, as you have taken such pains to show me, your faith is better than mine, and I will do as you desire; but if it should prove otherwise, I shall remain a Jew, as I was before; for it is not worth while, at my age, to change my belief for a worse one."
"Listen, Jean: since you really want me to convert, I'm open to considering it; but before I go to Rome to meet the person you call God's representative on earth, I need to look into his lifestyle and morals, as well as those of his fellow cardinals. If, as I have no doubt, they reflect what you preach, I'll acknowledge that, since you've worked so hard to show me, your faith is stronger than mine, and I will do as you wish; but if it turns out to be the opposite, I'll stay a Jew, just like I was before; because at my age, it's not worth changing my beliefs for a worse one."
Jean was very sad when he heard these words; and he said mournfully to himself, "Now I have lost my time and pains, which I thought I had spent so well when I was hoping to convert this unhappy Abraham; for if he unfortunately goes, as he says he will, to the court of Rome, and there sees the shameful life led by the servants of the Church, instead of becoming a Christian the Jew will be more of a Jew than ever." Then turning to Abraham, he said, "Ah, friend, why do you wish to incur such fatigue and expense by going to Rome, besides the fact that travelling by sea or by land must be very dangerous for so rich a man as you are? Do you suppose there is no one here to baptize you? If you have any doubts concerning the faith I have expounded, where better than here will you find theologians capable of contending with them and allaying them? So, you see, this voyage seems to me quite unnecessary: just imagine that the priests there are such as you see here, and all the better in that they are nearer to the supreme pastor. If you are guided by my advice, you will postpone this toil till you have committed some grave sin and need absolution; then you and I will go together."
Jean felt really sad when he heard those words, and he thought to himself, "I've wasted my time and effort, which I believed I had invested wisely in trying to convert this unfortunate Abraham; because if he truly goes, as he says he will, to the court of Rome, and sees the shameful lives of the Church's servants, instead of becoming a Christian, the Jew will be more Jewish than ever." Then, turning to Abraham, he said, "Ah, friend, why do you want to put yourself through such trouble and expense by going to Rome? Besides, traveling by sea or land must be quite dangerous for a wealthy man like you. Do you think there’s no one here who can baptize you? If you have any doubts about the faith I’ve explained, where better than here will you find theologians who can challenge them and ease your concerns? So, it seems to me this trip is completely unnecessary: just imagine that the priests there are just like the ones you find here, if not better since they’re closer to the top leader. If you take my advice, you should save this journey for when you’ve committed a serious sin and need absolution; then you and I can go together."
But the Jew replied—
But the Jewish person replied—
"I believe, dear Jean, that everything is as you tell me; but you know how obstinate I am. I will go to Rome, or I will never be a Christian."
"I believe you, dear Jean, that everything is as you say; but you know how stubborn I am. I will go to Rome, or I will never become a Christian."
Then Jean, seeing his great wish, resolved that it was no use trying to thwart him, and wished him good luck; but in his heart he gave up all hope; for it was certain that his friend would come back from his pilgrimage more of a Jew than ever, if the court of Rome was still as he had seen it.
Then Jean, realizing his strong desire, decided it was useless to try to stop him and wished him good luck; but deep down he lost all hope; for it was obvious that his friend would come back from his pilgrimage more of a Jew than ever, if the court of Rome was still as he had seen it.
But Abraham mounted his horse, and at his best speed took the road to Rome, where on his arrival he was wonderfully well received by his coreligionists; and after staying there a good long time, he began to study the behaviour of the pope, the cardinals and other prelates, and of the whole court. But much to his surprise he found out, partly by what passed under his eyes and partly by what he was told, that all from the pope downward to the lowest sacristan of St. Peter's were committing the sins of luxurious living in a most disgraceful and unbridled manner, with no remorse and no shame, so that pretty women and handsome youths could obtain any favours they pleased. In addition to this sensuality which they exhibited in public, he saw that they were gluttons and drunkards, so much so that they were more the slaves of the belly than are the greediest of animals. When he looked a little further, he found them so avaricious and fond of money that they sold for hard cash both human bodies and divine offices, and with less conscience than a man in Paris would sell cloth or any other merchandise. Seeing this and much more that it would not be proper to set down here, it seemed to Abraham, himself a chaste, sober, and upright man, that he had seen enough. So he resolved to return to Paris, and carried out the resolution with his usual promptitude. Jean de Civigny held a great fete in honour of his return, although he had lost hope of his coming back converted. But he left time for him to settle down before he spoke of anything, thinking there would be plenty of time to hear the bad news he expected. But, after a few days of rest, Abraham himself came to see his friend, and Jean ventured to ask what he thought of the Holy Father, the cardinals, and the other persons at the pontifical court. At these words the Jew exclaimed, "God damn them all! I never once succeeded in finding among them any holiness, any devotion, any good works; but, on the contrary, luxurious living, avarice, greed, fraud, envy, pride, and even worse, if there is worse; all the machine seemed to be set in motion by an impulse less divine than diabolical. After what I saw, it is my firm conviction that your pope, and of course the others as well, are using all their talents, art, endeavours, to banish the Christian religion from the face of the earth, though they ought to be its foundation and support; and since, in spite of all the care and trouble they expend to arrive at this end, I see that your religion is spreading every day and becoming more brilliant and more pure, it is borne in upon me that the Holy Spirit Himself protects it as the only true and the most holy religion; this is why, deaf as you found me to your counsel and rebellious to your wish, I am now, ever since I returned from this Sodom, firmly resolved on becoming a Christian. So let us go at once to the church, for I am quite ready to be baptized."
Abraham got on his horse and quickly rode to Rome, where he was warmly welcomed by his fellow believers. After spending a significant amount of time there, he started to observe the behavior of the pope, the cardinals, and other church leaders, along with the entire court. To his surprise, he discovered through both direct observation and what he was told that everyone from the pope down to the lowest sacristan of St. Peter's was living a shameful and unrestrained lifestyle, showing no remorse or shame, allowing attractive women and good-looking young men to indulge in whatever favors they wanted. Beyond this public sensuality, he noticed they were gluttonous and heavy drinkers, so much so that they were more slaves to their appetites than the greediest animals. Upon looking deeper, he found them so greedy for money that they sold human bodies and church positions for cash, doing this with less conscience than a vendor in Paris would sell cloth or other goods. Witnessing this and much more that isn't appropriate to mention here, Abraham, a chaste, sober, and honest man, felt he had seen enough. So he decided to return to Paris and acted on that decision immediately. Jean de Civigny threw a big celebration for his return, even though he had lost hope of Abraham coming back converted. He gave Abraham time to settle in before discussing anything, thinking there would be plenty of opportunity to hear the bad news he expected. However, after a few days of rest, Abraham visited his friend, and Jean dared to ask what he thought of the Holy Father, the cardinals, and the others at the papal court. At these words, the Jew exclaimed, "God damn them all! I never found any holiness, devotion, or good deeds among them; instead, I saw luxurious living, greed, fraud, envy, pride, and even worse, if worse exists; the whole operation seemed driven by a force more demonic than divine. After what I witnessed, I'm convinced that your pope, along with the others, is using all their skills and efforts to eliminate Christianity from the world, despite being meant to be its foundation and support. Yet, despite all their attempts to achieve this, I see your religion spreading daily and becoming more radiant and pure, leading me to believe that the Holy Spirit Himself is protecting it as the only true and most holy faith; this is why, as stubborn as I was about your advice and resistant to your wishes, I am now, ever since returning from this Sodom, firmly set on becoming a Christian. So let’s go to the church right away because I’m ready to be baptized."
There is no need to say if Jean de Civigny, who expected a refusal, was pleased at this consent. Without delay he went with his godson to Notre Dame de Paris, where he prayed the first priest he met to administer baptism to his friend, and this was speedily done; and the new convert changed his Jewish name of Abraham into the Christian name of Jean; and as the neophyte, thanks to his journey to Rome, had gained a profound belief, his natural good qualities increased so greatly in the practice of our holy religion, that after leading an exemplary life he died in the full odour of sanctity.
There's no need to say whether Jean de Civigny, who expected a rejection, was pleased with this agreement. Without hesitation, he took his godson to Notre Dame de Paris, where he asked the first priest he saw to baptize his friend, and it was done quickly; the new convert changed his Jewish name of Abraham to the Christian name of Jean. As the new believer had developed a strong faith during his trip to Rome, his natural good qualities flourished significantly as he practiced our holy religion, leading him to live an exemplary life and pass away in a state of great holiness.
This tale of Boccaccio's gives so admirable an answer to the charge of irreligion which some might make against us if they mistook our intentions, that as we shall not offer any other reply, we have not hesitated to present it entire as it stands to the eyes of our readers.
This story by Boccaccio offers a strong answer to accusations of irreligion that some might direct at us if they misunderstand our intentions. Since we won't provide any other response, we've decided to share it in its entirety for our readers.
And let us never forget that if the papacy has had an Innocent VIII and an Alexander VI who are its shame, it has also had a Pius VII and a Gregory XVI who are its honour and glory.
And let’s not forget that while the papacy has had its disgraceful figures like Innocent VIII and Alexander VI, it has also had respected ones like Pius VII and Gregory XVI who bring it pride and honor.
――――
――――
THE BORGIAS ***
THE BORGIAS ***
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!